11775 lines
470 KiB
Plaintext
11775 lines
470 KiB
Plaintext
[pg/etext93/tarzan10.txt]
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes by Burroughs
|
|
|
|
This etext was originally made by Judith Boss, Omaha, Nebraska.
|
|
|
|
The equipment: an IBM-compatible 486/33, a Hewlett-Packard Scan
|
|
Jet IIc flatbed scanner, and, donated by Calera:
|
|
|
|
M/Series Profesional Software
|
|
M/Series Accelerator Card
|
|
|
|
TARZAN of the Apes
|
|
|
|
Edgar Rice Burroughs
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS
|
|
|
|
I Out to Sea
|
|
II The Savage Home
|
|
III Life and Death
|
|
IV The Apes
|
|
V The White Ape
|
|
VI Jungle Battles
|
|
VII The Light of Knowledge
|
|
VIII The Tree-top Hunter
|
|
IX Man and Man
|
|
X The Fear-Phantom
|
|
XI "King of the Apes"
|
|
XII Man's Reason
|
|
XIII His Own Kind
|
|
XIV At the Mercy of the Jungle
|
|
XV The Forest God
|
|
XVI "Most Remarkable"
|
|
XVII Burials
|
|
XVIII The Jungle Toll
|
|
XIX The Call of the Primitive
|
|
XX Heredity
|
|
XXI The Village of Torture
|
|
XXII The Search Party
|
|
XXIII Brother Men
|
|
XXIV Lost Treasure
|
|
XXV The Outpost of the World
|
|
XXVI The Height of Civilization
|
|
XXVII The Giant Again
|
|
XXVIII Conclusion
|
|
|
|
Chapter 1
|
|
|
|
Out to Sea
|
|
|
|
I had this story from one who had no business to tell it to
|
|
me, or to any other. I may credit the seductive influence
|
|
of an old vintage upon the narrator for the beginning of it,
|
|
and my own skeptical incredulity during the days that followed
|
|
for the balance of the strange tale.
|
|
|
|
When my convivial host discovered that he had told me so
|
|
much, and that I was prone to doubtfulness, his foolish pride
|
|
assumed the task the old vintage had commenced, and so he
|
|
unearthed written evidence in the form of musty manuscript,
|
|
and dry official records of the British Colonial Office to support
|
|
many of the salient features of his remarkable narrative.
|
|
|
|
I do not say the story is true, for I did not witness the
|
|
happenings which it portrays, but the fact that in the telling
|
|
of it to you I have taken fictitious names for the principal
|
|
characters quite sufficiently evidences the sincerity of my own
|
|
belief that it MAY be true.
|
|
|
|
The yellow, mildewed pages of the diary of a man long dead, and
|
|
the records of the Colonial Office dovetail perfectly with the
|
|
narrative of my convivial host, and so I give you the story as
|
|
I painstakingly pieced it out from these several various agencies.
|
|
|
|
If you do not find it credible you will at least be as one
|
|
with me in acknowledging that it is unique, remarkable, and
|
|
interesting.
|
|
|
|
From the records of the Colonial Office and from the dead
|
|
man's diary we learn that a certain young English nobleman,
|
|
whom we shall call John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, was
|
|
commissioned to make a peculiarly delicate investigation of
|
|
conditions in a British West Coast African Colony from whose
|
|
simple native inhabitants another European power was
|
|
known to be recruiting soldiers for its native army, which it
|
|
used solely for the forcible collection of rubber and ivory
|
|
from the savage tribes along the Congo and the Aruwimi.
|
|
The natives of the British Colony complained that many of
|
|
their young men were enticed away through the medium of
|
|
fair and glowing promises, but that few if any ever returned
|
|
to their families.
|
|
|
|
The Englishmen in Africa went even further, saying that
|
|
these poor blacks were held in virtual slavery, since after
|
|
their terms of enlistment expired their ignorance was imposed
|
|
upon by their white officers, and they were told that they had
|
|
yet several years to serve.
|
|
|
|
And so the Colonial Office appointed John Clayton to a new
|
|
post in British West Africa, but his confidential instructions
|
|
centered on a thorough investigation of the unfair treatment
|
|
of black British subjects by the officers of a friendly
|
|
European power. Why he was sent, is, however, of little moment
|
|
to this story, for he never made an investigation, nor,
|
|
in fact, did he ever reach his destination.
|
|
|
|
Clayton was the type of Englishman that one likes best to
|
|
associate with the noblest monuments of historic achievement
|
|
upon a thousand victorious battlefields--a strong, virile man
|
|
--mentally, morally, and physically.
|
|
|
|
In stature he was above the average height; his eyes were
|
|
gray, his features regular and strong; his carriage that of
|
|
perfect, robust health influenced by his years of army training.
|
|
|
|
Political ambition had caused him to seek transference
|
|
from the army to the Colonial Office and so we find him, still
|
|
young, entrusted with a delicate and important commission in
|
|
the service of the Queen.
|
|
|
|
When he received this appointment he was both elated and
|
|
appalled. The preferment seemed to him in the nature of a
|
|
well-merited reward for painstaking and intelligent service,
|
|
and as a stepping stone to posts of greater importance and
|
|
responsibility; but, on the other hand, he had been married to
|
|
the Hon. Alice Rutherford for scarce a three months, and it
|
|
was the thought of taking this fair young girl into the dangers
|
|
and isolation of tropical Africa that appalled him.
|
|
|
|
For her sake he would have refused the appointment, but she
|
|
would not have it so. Instead she insisted that he accept,
|
|
and, indeed, take her with him.
|
|
|
|
There were mothers and brothers and sisters, and aunts
|
|
and cousins to express various opinions on the subject, but as
|
|
to what they severally advised history is silent.
|
|
|
|
We know only that on a bright May morning in 1888,
|
|
John, Lord Greystoke, and Lady Alice sailed from Dover on
|
|
their way to Africa.
|
|
|
|
A month later they arrived at Freetown where they chartered
|
|
a small sailing vessel, the Fuwalda, which was to bear
|
|
them to their final destination.
|
|
|
|
And here John, Lord Greystoke, and Lady Alice, his wife,
|
|
vanished from the eyes and from the knowledge of men.
|
|
|
|
Two months after they weighed anchor and cleared from
|
|
the port of Freetown a half dozen British war vessels were
|
|
scouring the south Atlantic for trace of them or their little
|
|
vessel, and it was almost immediately that the wreckage was
|
|
found upon the shores of St. Helena which convinced the
|
|
world that the Fuwalda had gone down with all on board,
|
|
and hence the search was stopped ere it had scarce begun;
|
|
though hope lingered in longing hearts for many years.
|
|
|
|
The Fuwalda, a barkentine of about one hundred tons,
|
|
was a vessel of the type often seen in coastwise trade
|
|
in the far southern Atlantic, their crews composed of
|
|
the offscourings of the sea--unhanged murderers and
|
|
cutthroats of every race and every nation.
|
|
|
|
The Fuwalda was no exception to the rule. Her officers
|
|
were swarthy bullies, hating and hated by their crew.
|
|
The captain, while a competent seaman, was a brute in his
|
|
treatment of his men. He knew, or at least he used, but two
|
|
arguments in his dealings with them--a belaying pin and a
|
|
revolver--nor is it likely that the motley aggregation
|
|
he signed would have understood aught else.
|
|
|
|
So it was that from the second day out from Freetown
|
|
John Clayton and his young wife witnessed scenes upon the
|
|
deck of the Fuwalda such as they had believed were never
|
|
enacted outside the covers of printed stories of the sea.
|
|
|
|
It was on the morning of the second day that the first link
|
|
was forged in what was destined to form a chain of circumstances
|
|
ending in a life for one then unborn such as has never been
|
|
paralleled in the history of man.
|
|
|
|
Two sailors were washing down the decks of the Fuwalda,
|
|
the first mate was on duty, and the captain had stopped to
|
|
speak with John Clayton and Lady Alice.
|
|
|
|
The men were working backwards toward the little party
|
|
who were facing away from the sailors. Closer and closer
|
|
they came, until one of them was directly behind the captain.
|
|
In another moment he would have passed by and this strange
|
|
narrative would never have been recorded.
|
|
|
|
But just that instant the officer turned to leave Lord and
|
|
Lady Greystoke, and, as he did so, tripped against the sailor
|
|
and sprawled headlong upon the deck, overturning the water-
|
|
pail so that he was drenched in its dirty contents.
|
|
|
|
For an instant the scene was ludicrous; but only for an instant.
|
|
With a volley of awful oaths, his face suffused with the
|
|
scarlet of mortification and rage, the captain regained his
|
|
feet, and with a terrific blow felled the sailor to the deck.
|
|
|
|
The man was small and rather old, so that the brutality of
|
|
the act was thus accentuated. The other seaman, however,
|
|
was neither old nor small--a huge bear of a man, with fierce
|
|
black mustachios, and a great bull neck set between massive
|
|
shoulders.
|
|
|
|
As he saw his mate go down he crouched, and, with a low
|
|
snarl, sprang upon the captain crushing him to his knees with
|
|
a single mighty blow.
|
|
|
|
From scarlet the officer's face went white, for this was mutiny;
|
|
and mutiny he had met and subdued before in his brutal
|
|
career. Without waiting to rise he whipped a revolver from
|
|
his pocket, firing point blank at the great mountain of muscle
|
|
towering before him; but, quick as he was, John Clayton was
|
|
almost as quick, so that the bullet which was intended for the
|
|
sailor's heart lodged in the sailor's leg instead, for Lord
|
|
Greystoke had struck down the captain's arm as he had seen
|
|
the weapon flash in the sun.
|
|
|
|
Words passed between Clayton and the captain, the former
|
|
making it plain that he was disgusted with the brutality
|
|
displayed toward the crew, nor would he countenance anything
|
|
further of the kind while he and Lady Greystoke remained
|
|
passengers.
|
|
|
|
The captain was on the point of making an angry reply,
|
|
but, thinking better of it, turned on his heel and black and
|
|
scowling, strode aft.
|
|
|
|
He did not care to antagonize an English official, for the
|
|
Queen's mighty arm wielded a punitive instrument which he could
|
|
appreciate, and which he feared--England's far-reaching navy.
|
|
|
|
The two sailors picked themselves up, the older man assisting
|
|
his wounded comrade to rise. The big fellow, who was
|
|
known among his mates as Black Michael, tried his leg gingerly,
|
|
and, finding that it bore his weight, turned to Clayton
|
|
with a word of gruff thanks.
|
|
|
|
Though the fellow's tone was surly, his words were evidently
|
|
well meant. Ere he had scarce finished his little speech he
|
|
had turned and was limping off toward the forecastle with the
|
|
very apparent intention of forestalling any further conversation.
|
|
|
|
They did not see him again for several days, nor did the
|
|
captain accord them more than the surliest of grunts when he
|
|
was forced to speak to them.
|
|
|
|
They took their meals in his cabin, as they had before the
|
|
unfortunate occurrence; but the captain was careful to see
|
|
that his duties never permitted him to eat at the same time.
|
|
|
|
The other officers were coarse, illiterate fellows, but little
|
|
above the villainous crew they bullied, and were only too
|
|
glad to avoid social intercourse with the polished English
|
|
noble and his lady, so that the Claytons were left very much
|
|
to themselves.
|
|
|
|
This in itself accorded perfectly with their desires, but it
|
|
also rather isolated them from the life of the little ship so
|
|
that they were unable to keep in touch with the daily happenings
|
|
which were to culminate so soon in bloody tragedy.
|
|
|
|
There was in the whole atmosphere of the craft that undefinable
|
|
something which presages disaster. Outwardly, to the
|
|
knowledge of the Claytons, all went on as before upon the
|
|
little vessel; but that there was an undertow leading them
|
|
toward some unknown danger both felt, though they did not
|
|
speak of it to each other.
|
|
|
|
On the second day after the wounding of Black Michael,
|
|
Clayton came on deck just in time to see the limp body of
|
|
one of the crew being carried below by four of his fellows
|
|
while the first mate, a heavy belaying pin in his hand, stood
|
|
glowering at the little party of sullen sailors.
|
|
|
|
Clayton asked no questions--he did not need to--and the
|
|
following day, as the great lines of a British battleship grew
|
|
out of the distant horizon, he half determined to demand that
|
|
he and Lady Alice be put aboard her, for his fears were
|
|
steadily increasing that nothing but harm could result from
|
|
remaining on the lowering, sullen Fuwalda.
|
|
|
|
Toward noon they were within speaking distance of the
|
|
British vessel, but when Clayton had nearly decided to ask
|
|
the captain to put them aboard her, the obvious ridiculousness
|
|
of such a request became suddenly apparent. What reason
|
|
could he give the officer commanding her majesty's ship
|
|
for desiring to go back in the direction from which he had
|
|
just come!
|
|
|
|
What if he told them that two insubordinate seamen had
|
|
been roughly handled by their officers? They would but laugh
|
|
in their sleeves and attribute his reason for wishing to leave
|
|
the ship to but one thing--cowardice.
|
|
|
|
John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, did not ask to be transferred
|
|
to the British man-of-war. Late in the afternoon he saw
|
|
her upper works fade below the far horizon, but not before
|
|
he learned that which confirmed his greatest fears, and
|
|
caused him to curse the false pride which had restrained him
|
|
from seeking safety for his young wife a few short hours
|
|
before, when safety was within reach--a safety which was now
|
|
gone forever.
|
|
|
|
It was mid-afternoon that brought the little old sailor, who
|
|
had been felled by the captain a few days before, to where
|
|
Clayton and his wife stood by the ship's side watching the
|
|
ever diminishing outlines of the great battleship. The old
|
|
fellow was polishing brasses, and as he came edging along until
|
|
close to Clayton he said, in an undertone:
|
|
|
|
"'Ell's to pay, sir, on this 'ere craft, an' mark my word for
|
|
it, sir. 'Ell's to pay."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean, my good fellow?" asked Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"Wy, hasn't ye seen wats goin' on? Hasn't ye 'eard that
|
|
devil's spawn of a capting an' is mates knockin' the bloomin'
|
|
lights outen 'arf the crew?
|
|
|
|
"Two busted 'eads yeste'day, an' three to-day. Black
|
|
Michael's as good as new agin an' 'e's not the bully to
|
|
stand fer it, not 'e; an' mark my word for it, sir."
|
|
|
|
"You mean, my man, that the crew contemplates mutiny?"
|
|
asked Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"Mutiny!" exclaimed the old fellow. "Mutiny! They means
|
|
murder, sir, an' mark my word for it, sir."
|
|
|
|
"When?"
|
|
|
|
"Hit's comin', sir; hit's comin' but I'm not a-sayin' wen, an'
|
|
I've said too damned much now, but ye was a good sort
|
|
t'other day an' I thought it no more'n right to warn ye. But
|
|
keep a still tongue in yer 'ead an' when ye 'ear shootin' git
|
|
below an' stay there.
|
|
|
|
"That's all, only keep a still tongue in yer 'ead, or they'll
|
|
put a pill between yer ribs, an' mark my word for it, sir," and
|
|
the old fellow went on with his polishing, which carried him
|
|
away from where the Claytons were standing.
|
|
|
|
"Deuced cheerful outlook, Alice," said Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"You should warn the captain at once, John. Possibly the
|
|
trouble may yet be averted," she said.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose I should, but yet from purely selfish motives I
|
|
am almost prompted to `keep a still tongue in my 'ead.'
|
|
Whatever they do now they will spare us in recognition of
|
|
my stand for this fellow Black Michael, but should they find
|
|
that I had betrayed them there would be no mercy shown us, Alice."
|
|
|
|
"You have but one duty, John, and that lies in the interest
|
|
of vested authority. If you do not warn the captain you are
|
|
as much a party to whatever follows as though you had helped
|
|
to plot and carry it out with your own head and hands."
|
|
|
|
"You do not understand, dear," replied Clayton. "It is of
|
|
you I am thinking--there lies my first duty. The captain has
|
|
brought this condition upon himself, so why then should I
|
|
risk subjecting my wife to unthinkable horrors in a probably
|
|
futile attempt to save him from his own brutal folly? You
|
|
have no conception, dear, of what would follow were this
|
|
pack of cutthroats to gain control of the Fuwalda."
|
|
|
|
"Duty is duty, John, and no amount of sophistries may
|
|
change it. I would be a poor wife for an English lord were I
|
|
to be responsible for his shirking a plain duty. I realize the
|
|
danger which must follow, but I can face it with you."
|
|
|
|
"Have it as you will then, Alice," he answered, smiling.
|
|
"Maybe we are borrowing trouble. While I do not like the
|
|
looks of things on board this ship, they may not be so bad
|
|
after all, for it is possible that the `Ancient Mariner' was but
|
|
voicing the desires of his wicked old heart rather than speaking
|
|
of real facts.
|
|
|
|
"Mutiny on the high sea may have been common a hundred
|
|
years ago, but in this good year 1888 it is the least likely
|
|
of happenings.
|
|
|
|
"But there goes the captain to his cabin now. If I am going
|
|
to warn him I might as well get the beastly job over for I
|
|
have little stomach to talk with the brute at all."
|
|
|
|
So saying he strolled carelessly in the direction of the
|
|
companionway through which the captain had passed, and a
|
|
moment later was knocking at his door.
|
|
|
|
"Come in," growled the deep tones of that surly officer.
|
|
|
|
And when Clayton had entered, and closed the door behind him:
|
|
|
|
"Well?"
|
|
|
|
"I have come to report the gist of a conversation I heard
|
|
to-day, because I feel that, while there may be nothing to it,
|
|
it is as well that you be forearmed. In short, the men
|
|
contemplate mutiny and murder."
|
|
|
|
"It's a lie!" roared the captain. "And if you have been
|
|
interfering again with the discipline of this ship, or meddling
|
|
in affairs that don't concern you you can take the consequences,
|
|
and be damned. I don't care whether you are an English lord
|
|
or not. I'm captain of this here ship, and from now on you
|
|
keep your meddling nose out of my business."
|
|
|
|
The captain had worked himself up to such a frenzy of
|
|
rage that he was fairly purple of face, and he shrieked the
|
|
last words at the top of his voice, emphasizing his remarks by
|
|
a loud thumping of the table with one huge fist, and shaking
|
|
the other in Clayton's face.
|
|
|
|
Greystoke never turned a hair, but stood eying the excited
|
|
man with level gaze.
|
|
|
|
"Captain Billings," he drawled finally, "if you will pardon
|
|
my candor, I might remark that you are something of an ass."
|
|
|
|
Whereupon he turned and left the captain with the same
|
|
indifferent ease that was habitual with him, and which was
|
|
more surely calculated to raise the ire of a man of Billings'
|
|
class than a torrent of invective.
|
|
|
|
So, whereas the captain might easily have been brought to
|
|
regret his hasty speech had Clayton attempted to conciliate
|
|
him, his temper was now irrevocably set in the mold in which
|
|
Clayton had left it, and the last chance of their working
|
|
together for their common good was gone.
|
|
|
|
"Well, Alice," said Clayton, as he rejoined his wife, "I might
|
|
have saved my breath. The fellow proved most ungrateful.
|
|
Fairly jumped at me like a mad dog.
|
|
|
|
"He and his blasted old ship may hang, for aught I care;
|
|
and until we are safely off the thing I shall spend my energies
|
|
in looking after our own welfare. And I rather fancy the first
|
|
step to that end should be to go to our cabin and look over
|
|
my revolvers. I am sorry now that we packed the larger guns
|
|
and the ammunition with the stuff below."
|
|
|
|
They found their quarters in a bad state of disorder. Clothing
|
|
from their open boxes and bags strewed the little apartment,
|
|
and even their beds had been torn to pieces.
|
|
|
|
"Evidently someone was more anxious about our belongings
|
|
than we," said Clayton. "Let's have a look around, Alice,
|
|
and see what's missing."
|
|
|
|
A thorough search revealed the fact that nothing had been
|
|
taken but Clayton's two revolvers and the small supply of
|
|
ammunition he had saved out for them.
|
|
|
|
"Those are the very things I most wish they had left us,"
|
|
said Clayton, "and the fact that they wished for them and
|
|
them alone is most sinister."
|
|
|
|
"What are we to do, John?" asked his wife. "Perhaps you
|
|
were right in that our best chance lies in maintaining a
|
|
neutral position.
|
|
|
|
"If the officers are able to prevent a mutiny, we have nothing
|
|
to fear, while if the mutineers are victorious our one slim
|
|
hope lies in not having attempted to thwart or antagonize them."
|
|
|
|
"Right you are, Alice. We'll keep in the middle of the road."
|
|
|
|
As they started to straighten up their cabin, Clayton and
|
|
his wife simultaneously noticed the corner of a piece of paper
|
|
protruding from beneath the door of their quarters. As Clayton
|
|
stooped to reach for it he was amazed to see it move
|
|
further into the room, and then he realized that it was being
|
|
pushed inward by someone from without.
|
|
|
|
Quickly and silently he stepped toward the door, but, as
|
|
he reached for the knob to throw it open, his wife's hand fell
|
|
upon his wrist.
|
|
|
|
"No, John," she whispered. "They do not wish to be seen,
|
|
and so we cannot afford to see them. Do not forget that we
|
|
are keeping to the middle of the road."
|
|
|
|
Clayton smiled and dropped his hand to his side. Thus
|
|
they stood watching the little bit of white paper until it
|
|
finally remained at rest upon the floor just inside the door.
|
|
|
|
Then Clayton stooped and picked it up. It was a bit of
|
|
grimy, white paper roughly folded into a ragged square.
|
|
Opening it they found a crude message printed almost
|
|
illegibly, and with many evidences of an unaccustomed task.
|
|
|
|
Translated, it was a warning to the Claytons to refrain
|
|
from reporting the loss of the revolvers, or from repeating
|
|
what the old sailor had told them--to refrain on pain of death.
|
|
|
|
"I rather imagine we'll be good," said Clayton with a rueful
|
|
smile. "About all we can do is to sit tight and wait for
|
|
whatever may come."
|
|
|
|
Chapter 2
|
|
|
|
The Savage Home
|
|
|
|
Nor did they have long to wait, for the next morning as
|
|
Clayton was emerging on deck for his accustomed walk before
|
|
breakfast, a shot rang out, and then another, and another.
|
|
|
|
The sight which met his eyes confirmed his worst fears.
|
|
Facing the little knot of officers was the entire motley crew
|
|
of the Fuwalda, and at their head stood Black Michael.
|
|
|
|
At the first volley from the officers the men ran for shelter,
|
|
and from points of vantage behind masts, wheel-house and
|
|
cabin they returned the fire of the five men who represented
|
|
the hated authority of the ship.
|
|
|
|
Two of their number had gone down before the captain's
|
|
revolver. They lay where they had fallen between the
|
|
combatants. But then the first mate lunged forward upon his
|
|
face, and at a cry of command from Black Michael the mutineers
|
|
charged the remaining four. The crew had been able to muster
|
|
but six firearms, so most of them were armed with boat
|
|
hooks, axes, hatchets and crowbars.
|
|
|
|
The captain had emptied his revolver and was reloading as
|
|
the charge was made. The second mate's gun had jammed,
|
|
and so there were but two weapons opposed to the mutineers
|
|
as they bore down upon the officers, who now started to give
|
|
back before the infuriated rush of their men.
|
|
|
|
Both sides were cursing and swearing in a frightful manner,
|
|
which, together with the reports of the firearms and the
|
|
screams and groans of the wounded, turned the deck of the
|
|
Fuwalda to the likeness of a madhouse.
|
|
|
|
Before the officers had taken a dozen backward steps the
|
|
men were upon them. An ax in the hands of a burly Negro
|
|
cleft the captain from forehead to chin, and an instant later
|
|
the others were down: dead or wounded from dozens of
|
|
blows and bullet wounds.
|
|
|
|
Short and grisly had been the work of the mutineers of the
|
|
Fuwalda, and through it all John Clayton had stood leaning
|
|
carelessly beside the companionway puffing meditatively upon
|
|
his pipe as though he had been but watching an indifferent
|
|
cricket match.
|
|
|
|
As the last officer went down he thought it was time that
|
|
he returned to his wife lest some members of the crew find
|
|
her alone below.
|
|
|
|
Though outwardly calm and indifferent, Clayton was inwardly
|
|
apprehensive and wrought up, for he feared for his wife's
|
|
safety at the hands of these ignorant, half-brutes into
|
|
whose hands fate had so remorselessly thrown them.
|
|
|
|
As he turned to descend the ladder he was surprised to see
|
|
his wife standing on the steps almost at his side.
|
|
|
|
"How long have you been here, Alice?"
|
|
|
|
"Since the beginning," she replied. "How awful, John. Oh,
|
|
how awful! What can we hope for at the hands of such as those?"
|
|
|
|
"Breakfast, I hope," he answered, smiling bravely in an
|
|
attempt to allay her fears.
|
|
|
|
"At least," he added, "I'm going to ask them. Come with
|
|
me, Alice. We must not let them think we expect any but
|
|
courteous treatment."
|
|
|
|
The men had by this time surrounded the dead and wounded
|
|
officers, and without either partiality or compassion
|
|
proceeded to throw both living and dead over the sides of
|
|
the vessel. With equal heartlessness they disposed of their
|
|
own dead and dying.
|
|
|
|
Presently one of the crew spied the approaching Claytons,
|
|
and with a cry of: "Here's two more for the fishes," rushed
|
|
toward them with uplifted ax.
|
|
|
|
But Black Michael was even quicker, so that the fellow
|
|
went down with a bullet in his back before he had taken a
|
|
half dozen steps.
|
|
|
|
With a loud roar, Black Michael attracted the attention of
|
|
the others, and, pointing to Lord and Lady Greystoke, cried:
|
|
|
|
"These here are my friends, and they are to be left alone.
|
|
D'ye understand?
|
|
|
|
"I'm captain of this ship now, an' what I says goes," he
|
|
added, turning to Clayton. "Just keep to yourselves, and
|
|
nobody'll harm ye," and he looked threateningly on his fellows.
|
|
|
|
The Claytons heeded Black Michael's instructions so well
|
|
that they saw but little of the crew and knew nothing of the
|
|
plans the men were making.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally they heard faint echoes of brawls and quarreling
|
|
among the mutineers, and on two occasions the vicious
|
|
bark of firearms rang out on the still air. But Black Michael
|
|
was a fit leader for this band of cutthroats, and, withal held
|
|
them in fair subjection to his rule.
|
|
|
|
On the fifth day following the murder of the ship's officers,
|
|
land was sighted by the lookout. Whether island or mainland,
|
|
Black Michael did not know, but he announced to Clayton
|
|
that if investigation showed that the place was habitable he
|
|
and Lady Greystoke were to be put ashore with their belongings.
|
|
|
|
"You'll be all right there for a few months," he explained,
|
|
"and by that time we'll have been able to make an inhabited
|
|
coast somewhere and scatter a bit. Then I'll see that yer
|
|
gover'ment's notified where you be an' they'll soon send a man-
|
|
o'war to fetch ye off.
|
|
|
|
"It would be a hard matter to land you in civilization without
|
|
a lot o' questions being asked, an' none o' us here has any
|
|
very convincin' answers up our sleeves."
|
|
|
|
Clayton remonstrated against the inhumanity of landing
|
|
them upon an unknown shore to be left to the mercies of
|
|
savage beasts, and, possibly, still more savage men.
|
|
|
|
But his words were of no avail, and only tended to anger
|
|
Black Michael, so he was forced to desist and make the best
|
|
he could of a bad situation.
|
|
|
|
About three o'clock in the afternoon they came about off a
|
|
beautiful wooded shore opposite the mouth of what appeared
|
|
to be a land-locked harbor.
|
|
|
|
Black Michael sent a small boat filled with men to sound
|
|
the entrance in an effort to determine if the Fuwalda
|
|
could be safely worked through the entrance.
|
|
|
|
In about an hour they returned and reported deep water
|
|
through the passage as well as far into the little basin.
|
|
|
|
Before dark the barkentine lay peacefully at anchor upon
|
|
the bosom of the still, mirror-like surface of the harbor.
|
|
|
|
The surrounding shores were beautiful with semitropical
|
|
verdure, while in the distance the country rose from the
|
|
ocean in hill and tableland, almost uniformly clothed by
|
|
primeval forest.
|
|
|
|
No signs of habitation were visible, but that the land might
|
|
easily support human life was evidenced by the abundant bird
|
|
and animal life of which the watchers on the Fuwalda's deck
|
|
caught occasional glimpses, as well as by the shimmer of a
|
|
little river which emptied into the harbor, insuring fresh
|
|
water in plenitude.
|
|
|
|
As darkness settled upon the earth, Clayton and Lady
|
|
Alice still stood by the ship's rail in silent contemplation of
|
|
their future abode. From the dark shadows of the mighty forest
|
|
came the wild calls of savage beasts--the deep roar of the
|
|
lion, and, occasionally, the shrill scream of a panther.
|
|
|
|
The woman shrank closer to the man in terror-stricken
|
|
anticipation of the horrors lying in wait for them in the awful
|
|
blackness of the nights to come, when they should be alone
|
|
upon that wild and lonely shore.
|
|
|
|
Later in the evening Black Michael joined them long
|
|
enough to instruct them to make their preparations for landing
|
|
on the morrow. They tried to persuade him to take them
|
|
to some more hospitable coast near enough to civilization so
|
|
that they might hope to fall into friendly hands. But no pleas,
|
|
or threats, or promises of reward could move him.
|
|
|
|
"I am the only man aboard who would not rather see ye
|
|
both safely dead, and, while I know that's the sensible way to
|
|
make sure of our own necks, yet Black Michael's not the
|
|
man to forget a favor. Ye saved my life once, and in return
|
|
I'm goin' to spare yours, but that's all I can do.
|
|
|
|
"The men won't stand for any more, and if we don't get ye
|
|
landed pretty quick they may even change their minds about
|
|
giving ye that much show. I'll put all yer stuff ashore with ye
|
|
as well as cookin' utensils an' some old sails for tents, an'
|
|
enough grub to last ye until ye can find fruit and game.
|
|
|
|
"With yer guns for protection, ye ought to be able to live
|
|
here easy enough until help comes. When I get safely hid
|
|
away I'll see to it that the British gover'ment learns about
|
|
where ye be; for the life of me I couldn't tell 'em exactly
|
|
where, for I don't know myself. But they'll find ye all right."
|
|
|
|
After he had left them they went silently below, each
|
|
wrapped in gloomy forebodings.
|
|
|
|
Clayton did not believe that Black Michael had the slightest
|
|
intention of notifying the British government of their
|
|
whereabouts, nor was he any too sure but that some treachery
|
|
was contemplated for the following day when they should
|
|
be on shore with the sailors who would have to accompany
|
|
them with their belongings.
|
|
|
|
Once out of Black Michael's sight any of the men might strike
|
|
them down, and still leave Black Michael's conscience clear.
|
|
|
|
And even should they escape that fate was it not but to be
|
|
faced with far graver dangers? Alone, he might hope to survive
|
|
for years; for he was a strong, athletic man.
|
|
|
|
But what of Alice, and that other little life so soon to be
|
|
launched amidst the hardships and grave dangers of a primeval world?
|
|
|
|
The man shuddered as he meditated upon the awful gravity,
|
|
the fearful helplessness, of their situation. But it was a
|
|
merciful Providence which prevented him from foreseeing
|
|
the hideous reality which awaited them in the grim depths of
|
|
that gloomy wood.
|
|
|
|
Early next morning their numerous chests and boxes were
|
|
hoisted on deck and lowered to waiting small boats for
|
|
transportation to shore.
|
|
|
|
There was a great quantity and variety of stuff, as the
|
|
Claytons had expected a possible five to eight years' residence
|
|
in their new home. Thus, in addition to the many necessities
|
|
they had brought, there were also many luxuries.
|
|
|
|
Black Michael was determined that nothing belonging to
|
|
the Claytons should be left on board. Whether out of
|
|
compassion for them, or in furtherance of his own self-interests,
|
|
it would be difficult to say.
|
|
|
|
There was no question but that the presence of property of a
|
|
missing British official upon a suspicious vessel would have been
|
|
a difficult thing to explain in any civilized port in the world.
|
|
|
|
So zealous was he in his efforts to carry out his intentions
|
|
that he insisted upon the return of Clayton's revolvers to him
|
|
by the sailors in whose possession they were.
|
|
|
|
Into the small boats were also loaded salt meats and biscuit,
|
|
with a small supply of potatoes and beans, matches, and
|
|
cooking vessels, a chest of tools, and the old sails which
|
|
Black Michael had promised them.
|
|
|
|
As though himself fearing the very thing which Clayton
|
|
had suspected, Black Michael accompanied them to shore,
|
|
and was the last to leave them when the small boats, having
|
|
filled the ship's casks with fresh water, were pushed out
|
|
toward the waiting Fuwalda.
|
|
|
|
As the boats moved slowly over the smooth waters of the
|
|
bay, Clayton and his wife stood silently watching their
|
|
departure--in the breasts of both a feeling of impending
|
|
disaster and utter hopelessness.
|
|
|
|
And behind them, over the edge of a low ridge, other eyes
|
|
watched--close set, wicked eyes, gleaming beneath shaggy brows.
|
|
|
|
As the Fuwalda passed through the narrow entrance to the
|
|
harbor and out of sight behind a projecting point, Lady Alice
|
|
threw her arms about Clayton's neck and burst into uncontrolled sobs.
|
|
|
|
Bravely had she faced the dangers of the mutiny; with heroic
|
|
fortitude she had looked into the terrible future; but now
|
|
that the horror of absolute solitude was upon them, her
|
|
overwrought nerves gave way, and the reaction came.
|
|
|
|
He did not attempt to check her tears. It were better that
|
|
nature have her way in relieving these long-pent emotions, and
|
|
it was many minutes before the girl--little more than a child
|
|
she was--could again gain mastery of herself.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, John," she cried at last, "the horror of it. What are we
|
|
to do? What are we to do?"
|
|
|
|
"There is but one thing to do, Alice," and he spoke as quietly
|
|
as though they were sitting in their snug living room at home,
|
|
"and that is work. Work must be our salvation. We must not
|
|
give ourselves time to think, for in that direction lies madness.
|
|
|
|
"We must work and wait. I am sure that relief will come,
|
|
and come quickly, when once it is apparent that the Fuwalda
|
|
has been lost, even though Black Michael does not keep his
|
|
word to us."
|
|
|
|
"But John, if it were only you and I," she sobbed, "we
|
|
could endure it I know; but--"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, dear," he answered, gently, "I have been thinking of
|
|
that, also; but we must face it, as we must face whatever
|
|
comes, bravely and with the utmost confidence in our ability
|
|
to cope with circumstances whatever they may be.
|
|
|
|
"Hundreds of thousands of years ago our ancestors of the
|
|
dim and distant past faced the same problems which we must
|
|
face, possibly in these same primeval forests. That we are
|
|
here today evidences their victory.
|
|
|
|
"What they did may we not do? And even better, for are
|
|
we not armed with ages of superior knowledge, and have we
|
|
not the means of protection, defense, and sustenance which
|
|
science has given us, but of which they were totally ignorant?
|
|
What they accomplished, Alice, with instruments and weapons
|
|
of stone and bone, surely that may we accomplish also."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, John, I wish that I might be a man with a man's
|
|
philosophy, but I am but a woman, seeing with my heart rather
|
|
than my head, and all that I can see is too horrible, too
|
|
unthinkable to put into words.
|
|
|
|
"I only hope you are right, John. I will do my best to be a
|
|
brave primeval woman, a fit mate for the primeval man."
|
|
|
|
Clayton's first thought was to arrange a sleeping shelter for
|
|
the night; something which might serve to protect them from
|
|
prowling beasts of prey.
|
|
|
|
He opened the box containing his rifles and ammunition,
|
|
that they might both be armed against possible attack while
|
|
at work, and then together they sought a location for their
|
|
first night's sleeping place.
|
|
|
|
A hundred yards from the beach was a little level spot,
|
|
fairly free of trees; here they decided eventually to build a
|
|
permanent house, but for the time being they both thought it
|
|
best to construct a little platform in the trees out of reach of
|
|
the larger of the savage beasts in whose realm they were.
|
|
|
|
To this end Clayton selected four trees which formed a
|
|
rectangle about eight feet square, and cutting long branches
|
|
from other trees he constructed a framework around them,
|
|
about ten feet from the ground, fastening the ends of the
|
|
branches securely to the trees by means of rope, a quantity
|
|
of which Black Michael had furnished him from the hold of
|
|
the Fuwalda.
|
|
|
|
Across this framework Clayton placed other smaller
|
|
branches quite close together. This platform he paved with
|
|
the huge fronds of elephant's ear which grew in profusion
|
|
about them, and over the fronds he laid a great sail folded
|
|
into several thicknesses.
|
|
|
|
Seven feet higher he constructed a similar, though lighter
|
|
platform to serve as roof, and from the sides of this he
|
|
suspended the balance of his sailcloth for walls.
|
|
|
|
When completed he had a rather snug little nest, to which
|
|
he carried their blankets and some of the lighter luggage.
|
|
|
|
It was now late in the afternoon, and the balance of the
|
|
daylight hours were devoted to the building of a rude ladder
|
|
by means of which Lady Alice could mount to her new home.
|
|
|
|
All during the day the forest about them had been filled with
|
|
excited birds of brilliant plumage, and dancing, chattering
|
|
monkeys, who watched these new arrivals and their wonderful
|
|
nest building operations with every mark of keenest interest
|
|
and fascination.
|
|
|
|
Notwithstanding that both Clayton and his wife kept a
|
|
sharp lookout they saw nothing of larger animals, though on
|
|
two occasions they had seen their little simian neighbors
|
|
come screaming and chattering from the near-by ridge, casting
|
|
frightened glances back over their little shoulders, and
|
|
evincing as plainly as though by speech that they were fleeing
|
|
some terrible thing which lay concealed there.
|
|
|
|
Just before dusk Clayton finished his ladder, and, filling a
|
|
great basin with water from the near-by stream, the two
|
|
mounted to the comparative safety of their aerial chamber.
|
|
|
|
As it was quite warm, Clayton had left the side curtains
|
|
thrown back over the roof, and as they sat, like Turks, upon
|
|
their blankets, Lady Alice, straining her eyes into the darkening
|
|
shadows of the wood, suddenly reached out and grasped
|
|
Clayton's arms.
|
|
|
|
"John," she whispered, "look! What is it, a man?"
|
|
|
|
As Clayton turned his eyes in the direction she indicated,
|
|
he saw silhouetted dimly against the shadows beyond, a great
|
|
figure standing upright upon the ridge.
|
|
|
|
For a moment it stood as though listening and then turned
|
|
slowly, and melted into the shadows of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
"What is it, John?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know, Alice," he answered gravely, "it is too
|
|
dark to see so far, and it may have been but a shadow cast by
|
|
the rising moon."
|
|
|
|
"No, John, if it was not a man it was some huge and grotesque
|
|
mockery of man. Oh, I am afraid."
|
|
|
|
He gathered her in his arms, whispering words of courage
|
|
and love into her ears.
|
|
|
|
Soon after, he lowered the curtain walls, tying them securely
|
|
to the trees so that, except for a little opening toward
|
|
the beach, they were entirely enclosed.
|
|
|
|
As it was now pitch dark within their tiny aerie they lay
|
|
down upon their blankets to try to gain, through sleep, a
|
|
brief respite of forgetfulness.
|
|
|
|
Clayton lay facing the opening at the front, a rifle and a
|
|
brace of revolvers at his hand.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had they closed their eyes than the terrifying cry
|
|
of a panther rang out from the jungle behind them. Closer
|
|
and closer it came until they could hear the great beast
|
|
directly beneath them. For an hour or more they heard it
|
|
sniffing and clawing at the trees which supported their platform,
|
|
but at last it roamed away across the beach, where Clayton
|
|
could see it clearly in the brilliant moonlight--a great, handsome
|
|
beast, the largest he had ever seen.
|
|
|
|
During the long hours of darkness they caught but fitful
|
|
snatches of sleep, for the night noises of a great jungle
|
|
teeming with myriad animal life kept their overwrought nerves
|
|
on edge, so that a hundred times they were startled to
|
|
wakefulness by piercing screams, or the stealthy moving of
|
|
great bodies beneath them.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 3
|
|
|
|
Life and Death
|
|
|
|
Morning found them but little, if at all refreshed, though
|
|
it was with a feeling of intense relief that they saw the
|
|
day dawn.
|
|
|
|
As soon as they had made their meager breakfast of salt
|
|
pork, coffee and biscuit, Clayton commenced work upon their
|
|
house, for he realized that they could hope for no safety and
|
|
no peace of mind at night until four strong walls effectually
|
|
barred the jungle life from them.
|
|
|
|
The task was an arduous one and required the better part of
|
|
a month, though he built but one small room. He constructed
|
|
his cabin of small logs about six inches in diameter,
|
|
stopping the chinks with clay which he found at the depth of
|
|
a few feet beneath the surface soil.
|
|
|
|
At one end he built a fireplace of small stones from the
|
|
beach. These also he set in clay and when the house had been
|
|
entirely completed he applied a coating of the clay to the
|
|
entire outside surface to the thickness of four inches.
|
|
|
|
In the window opening he set small branches about an inch in
|
|
diameter both vertically and horizontally, and so woven that they
|
|
formed a substantial grating that could withstand the strength
|
|
of a powerful animal. Thus they obtained air and proper
|
|
ventilation without fear of lessening the safety of their cabin.
|
|
|
|
The A-shaped roof was thatched with small branches laid
|
|
close together and over these long jungle grass and palm
|
|
fronds, with a final coating of clay.
|
|
|
|
The door he built of pieces of the packing-boxes which
|
|
had held their belongings, nailing one piece upon another, the
|
|
grain of contiguous layers running transversely, until he had
|
|
a solid body some three inches thick and of such great
|
|
strength that they were both moved to laughter as they gazed
|
|
upon it.
|
|
|
|
Here the greatest difficulty confronted Clayton, for he had
|
|
no means whereby to hang his massive door now that he had
|
|
built it. After two days' work, however, he succeeded in
|
|
fashioning two massive hardwood hinges, and with these he
|
|
hung the door so that it opened and closed easily.
|
|
|
|
The stuccoing and other final touches were added after
|
|
they moved into the house, which they had done as soon as
|
|
the roof was on, piling their boxes before the door at night
|
|
and thus having a comparatively safe and comfortable habitation.
|
|
|
|
The building of a bed, chairs, table, and shelves was a
|
|
relatively easy matter, so that by the end of the second month
|
|
they were well settled, and, but for the constant dread of
|
|
attack by wild beasts and the ever growing loneliness, they
|
|
were not uncomfortable or unhappy.
|
|
|
|
At night great beasts snarled and roared about their tiny
|
|
cabin, but, so accustomed may one become to oft repeated
|
|
noises, that soon they paid little attention to them, sleeping
|
|
soundly the whole night through.
|
|
|
|
Thrice had they caught fleeting glimpses of great man-like
|
|
figures like that of the first night, but never at sufficiently
|
|
close range to know positively whether the half-seen forms
|
|
were those of man or brute.
|
|
|
|
The brilliant birds and the little monkeys had become accustomed
|
|
to their new acquaintances, and as they had evidently never
|
|
seen human beings before they presently, after their first
|
|
fright had worn off, approached closer and closer, impelled
|
|
by that strange curiosity which dominates the wild creatures
|
|
of the forest and the jungle and the plain, so that within
|
|
the first month several of the birds had gone so far as even
|
|
to accept morsels of food from the friendly hands of the Claytons.
|
|
|
|
One afternoon, while Clayton was working upon an addition
|
|
to their cabin, for he contemplated building several more
|
|
rooms, a number of their grotesque little friends came shrieking
|
|
and scolding through the trees from the direction of the
|
|
ridge. Ever as they fled they cast fearful glances back of
|
|
them, and finally they stopped near Clayton jabbering excitedly
|
|
to him as though to warn him of approaching danger.
|
|
|
|
At last he saw it, the thing the little monkeys so feared--
|
|
the man-brute of which the Claytons had caught occasional
|
|
fleeting glimpses.
|
|
|
|
It was approaching through the jungle in a semi-erect position,
|
|
now and then placing the backs of its closed fists upon the
|
|
ground--a great anthropoid ape, and, as it advanced, it emitted
|
|
deep guttural growls and an occasional low barking sound.
|
|
|
|
Clayton was at some distance from the cabin, having come
|
|
to fell a particularly perfect tree for his building operations.
|
|
Grown careless from months of continued safety, during
|
|
which time he had seen no dangerous animals during the daylight
|
|
hours, he had left his rifles and revolvers all within the
|
|
little cabin, and now that he saw the great ape crashing
|
|
through the underbrush directly toward him, and from a
|
|
direction which practically cut him off from escape, he
|
|
felt a vague little shiver play up and down his spine.
|
|
|
|
He knew that, armed only with an ax, his chances with this
|
|
ferocious monster were small indeed--and Alice; O God, he
|
|
thought, what will become of Alice?
|
|
|
|
There was yet a slight chance of reaching the cabin. He
|
|
turned and ran toward it, shouting an alarm to his wife to run
|
|
in and close the great door in case the ape cut off his retreat.
|
|
|
|
Lady Greystoke had been sitting a little way from the
|
|
cabin, and when she heard his cry she looked up to see the
|
|
ape springing with almost incredible swiftness, for so large
|
|
and awkward an animal, in an effort to head off Clayton.
|
|
|
|
With a low cry she sprang toward the cabin, and, as she
|
|
entered, gave a backward glance which filled her soul with
|
|
terror, for the brute had intercepted her husband, who now
|
|
stood at bay grasping his ax with both hands ready to swing
|
|
it upon the infuriated animal when he should make his final
|
|
charge.
|
|
|
|
"Close and bolt the door, Alice," cried Clayton. "I can
|
|
finish this fellow with my ax."
|
|
|
|
But he knew he was facing a horrible death, and so did she.
|
|
|
|
The ape was a great bull, weighing probably three hundred
|
|
pounds. His nasty, close-set eyes gleamed hatred from beneath
|
|
his shaggy brows, while his great canine fangs were bared
|
|
in a horrid snarl as he paused a moment before his prey.
|
|
|
|
Over the brute's shoulder Clayton could see the doorway
|
|
of his cabin, not twenty paces distant, and a great wave of
|
|
horror and fear swept over him as he saw his young wife
|
|
emerge, armed with one of his rifles.
|
|
|
|
She had always been afraid of firearms, and would never
|
|
touch them, but now she rushed toward the ape with the
|
|
fearlessness of a lioness protecting its young.
|
|
|
|
"Back, Alice," shouted Clayton, "for God's sake, go back."
|
|
|
|
But she would not heed, and just then the ape charged, so
|
|
that Clayton could say no more.
|
|
|
|
The man swung his ax with all his mighty strength, but the
|
|
powerful brute seized it in those terrible hands, and tearing it
|
|
from Clayton's grasp hurled it far to one side.
|
|
|
|
With an ugly snarl he closed upon his defenseless victim,
|
|
but ere his fangs had reached the throat they thirsted for,
|
|
there was a sharp report and a bullet entered the ape's back
|
|
between his shoulders.
|
|
|
|
Throwing Clayton to the ground the beast turned upon his
|
|
new enemy. There before him stood the terrified girl vainly
|
|
trying to fire another bullet into the animal's body; but she
|
|
did not understand the mechanism of the firearm, and the
|
|
hammer fell futilely upon an empty cartridge.
|
|
|
|
Almost simultaneously Clayton regained his feet, and without
|
|
thought of the utter hopelessness of it, he rushed forward
|
|
to drag the ape from his wife's prostrate form.
|
|
|
|
With little or no effort he succeeded, and the great bulk
|
|
rolled inertly upon the turf before him--the ape was dead.
|
|
The bullet had done its work.
|
|
|
|
A hasty examination of his wife revealed no marks upon
|
|
her, and Clayton decided that the huge brute had died the
|
|
instant he had sprung toward Alice.
|
|
|
|
Gently he lifted his wife's still unconscious form, and bore
|
|
her to the little cabin, but it was fully two hours before she
|
|
regained consciousness.
|
|
|
|
Her first words filled Clayton with vague apprehension.
|
|
For some time after regaining her senses, Alice gazed
|
|
wonderingly about the interior of the little cabin, and
|
|
then, with a satisfied sigh, said:
|
|
|
|
"O, John, it is so good to be really home! I have had an
|
|
awful dream, dear. I thought we were no longer in London,
|
|
but in some horrible place where great beasts attacked us."
|
|
|
|
"There, there, Alice," he said, stroking her forehead, "try
|
|
to sleep again, and do not worry your head about bad dreams."
|
|
|
|
That night a little son was born in the tiny cabin beside the
|
|
primeval forest, while a leopard screamed before the door, and
|
|
the deep notes of a lion's roar sounded from beyond the ridge.
|
|
|
|
Lady Greystoke never recovered from the shock of the
|
|
great ape's attack, and, though she lived for a year after her
|
|
baby was born, she was never again outside the cabin, nor
|
|
did she ever fully realize that she was not in England.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes she would question Clayton as to the strange
|
|
noises of the nights; the absence of servants and friends, and
|
|
the strange rudeness of the furnishings within her room, but,
|
|
though he made no effort to deceive her, never could she
|
|
grasp the meaning of it all.
|
|
|
|
In other ways she was quite rational, and the joy and happiness
|
|
she took in the possession of her little son and the constant
|
|
attentions of her husband made that year a very happy
|
|
one for her, the happiest of her young life.
|
|
|
|
That it would have been beset by worries and apprehension
|
|
had she been in full command of her mental faculties Clayton
|
|
well knew; so that while he suffered terribly to see her so,
|
|
there were times when he was almost glad, for her sake, that
|
|
she could not understand.
|
|
|
|
Long since had he given up any hope of rescue, except
|
|
through accident. With unremitting zeal he had worked to
|
|
beautify the interior of the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Skins of lion and panther covered the floor. Cupboards and
|
|
bookcases lined the walls. Odd vases made by his own hand
|
|
from the clay of the region held beautiful tropical flowers.
|
|
Curtains of grass and bamboo covered the windows, and,
|
|
most arduous task of all, with his meager assortment of tools
|
|
he had fashioned lumber to neatly seal the walls and ceiling
|
|
and lay a smooth floor within the cabin.
|
|
|
|
That he had been able to turn his hands at all to such
|
|
unaccustomed labor was a source of mild wonder to him.
|
|
But he loved the work because it was for her and the tiny life
|
|
that had come to cheer them, though adding a hundredfold
|
|
to his responsibilities and to the terribleness of their situation.
|
|
|
|
During the year that followed, Clayton was several times
|
|
attacked by the great apes which now seemed to continually
|
|
infest the vicinity of the cabin; but as he never again
|
|
ventured outside without both rifle and revolvers he had
|
|
little fear of the huge beasts.
|
|
|
|
He had strengthened the window protections and fitted a
|
|
unique wooden lock to the cabin door, so that when he
|
|
hunted for game and fruits, as it was constantly necessary for
|
|
him to do to insure sustenance, he had no fear that any animal
|
|
could break into the little home.
|
|
|
|
At first he shot much of the game from the cabin windows,
|
|
but toward the end the animals learned to fear the strange
|
|
lair from whence issued the terrifying thunder of his rifle.
|
|
|
|
In his leisure Clayton read, often aloud to his wife, from
|
|
the store of books he had brought for their new home.
|
|
Among these were many for little children--picture books,
|
|
primers, readers--for they had known that their little child
|
|
would be old enough for such before they might hope to return
|
|
to England.
|
|
|
|
At other times Clayton wrote in his diary, which he had
|
|
always been accustomed to keep in French, and in which he
|
|
recorded the details of their strange life. This book he kept
|
|
locked in a little metal box.
|
|
|
|
A year from the day her little son was born Lady Alice
|
|
passed quietly away in the night. So peaceful was her end
|
|
that it was hours before Clayton could awake to a realization
|
|
that his wife was dead.
|
|
|
|
The horror of the situation came to him very slowly, and it
|
|
is doubtful that he ever fully realized the enormity of his
|
|
sorrow and the fearful responsibility that had devolved upon
|
|
him with the care of that wee thing, his son, still a nursing babe.
|
|
|
|
The last entry in his diary was made the morning following
|
|
her death, and there he recites the sad details in a matter-of-
|
|
fact way that adds to the pathos of it; for it breathes a tired
|
|
apathy born of long sorrow and hopelessness, which even this
|
|
cruel blow could scarcely awake to further suffering:
|
|
|
|
My little son is crying for nourishment--O Alice, Alice,
|
|
what shall I do?
|
|
|
|
And as John Clayton wrote the last words his hand was
|
|
destined ever to pen, he dropped his head wearily upon his
|
|
outstretched arms where they rested upon the table he had
|
|
built for her who lay still and cold in the bed beside him.
|
|
|
|
For a long time no sound broke the deathlike stillness of
|
|
the jungle midday save the piteous wailing of the tiny man-child.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 4
|
|
|
|
The Apes
|
|
|
|
In the forest of the table-land a mile back from the ocean
|
|
old Kerchak the Ape was on a rampage of rage among his people.
|
|
|
|
The younger and lighter members of his tribe scampered to
|
|
the higher branches of the great trees to escape his wrath;
|
|
risking their lives upon branches that scarce supported their
|
|
weight rather than face old Kerchak in one of his fits of
|
|
uncontrolled anger.
|
|
|
|
The other males scattered in all directions, but not before
|
|
the infuriated brute had felt the vertebra of one snap between
|
|
his great, foaming jaws.
|
|
|
|
A luckless young female slipped from an insecure hold
|
|
upon a high branch and came crashing to the ground almost
|
|
at Kerchak's feet.
|
|
|
|
With a wild scream he was upon her, tearing a great piece
|
|
from her side with his mighty teeth, and striking her viciously
|
|
upon her head and shoulders with a broken tree limb until
|
|
her skull was crushed to a jelly.
|
|
|
|
And then he spied Kala, who, returning from a search for
|
|
food with her young babe, was ignorant of the state of the
|
|
mighty male's temper until suddenly the shrill warnings of
|
|
her fellows caused her to scamper madly for safety.
|
|
|
|
But Kerchak was close upon her, so close that he had almost
|
|
grasped her ankle had she not made a furious leap far into
|
|
space from one tree to another--a perilous chance which
|
|
apes seldom if ever take, unless so closely pursued by danger
|
|
that there is no alternative.
|
|
|
|
She made the leap successfully, but as she grasped the limb
|
|
of the further tree the sudden jar loosened the hold of the
|
|
tiny babe where it clung frantically to her neck, and she saw
|
|
the little thing hurled, turning and twisting, to the ground
|
|
thirty feet below.
|
|
|
|
With a low cry of dismay Kala rushed headlong to its side,
|
|
thoughtless now of the danger from Kerchak; but when she
|
|
gathered the wee, mangled form to her bosom life had left it.
|
|
|
|
With low moans, she sat cuddling the body to her; nor did
|
|
Kerchak attempt to molest her. With the death of the babe his
|
|
fit of demoniacal rage passed as suddenly as it had seized him.
|
|
|
|
Kerchak was a huge king ape, weighing perhaps three hundred
|
|
and fifty pounds. His forehead was extremely low and receding,
|
|
his eyes bloodshot, small and close set to his coarse, flat
|
|
nose; his ears large and thin, but smaller than most of his kind.
|
|
|
|
His awful temper and his mighty strength made him supreme
|
|
among the little tribe into which he had been born some
|
|
twenty years before.
|
|
|
|
Now that he was in his prime, there was no simian in all the
|
|
mighty forest through which he roved that dared contest his
|
|
right to rule, nor did the other and larger animals molest him.
|
|
|
|
Old Tantor, the elephant, alone of all the wild savage life,
|
|
feared him not--and he alone did Kerchak fear. When Tantor
|
|
trumpeted, the great ape scurried with his fellows high
|
|
among the trees of the second terrace.
|
|
|
|
The tribe of anthropoids over which Kerchak ruled with an
|
|
iron hand and bared fangs, numbered some six or eight families,
|
|
each family consisting of an adult male with his females and
|
|
their young, numbering in all some sixty or seventy apes.
|
|
|
|
Kala was the youngest mate of a male called Tublat,
|
|
meaning broken nose, and the child she had seen dashed to
|
|
death was her first; for she was but nine or ten years old.
|
|
|
|
Notwithstanding her youth, she was large and powerful--a
|
|
splendid, clean-limbed animal, with a round, high forehead,
|
|
which denoted more intelligence than most of her kind
|
|
possessed. So, also, she had a great capacity for mother love
|
|
and mother sorrow.
|
|
|
|
But she was still an ape, a huge, fierce, terrible beast of a
|
|
species closely allied to the gorilla, yet more intelligent;
|
|
which, with the strength of their cousin, made her kind the
|
|
most fearsome of those awe-inspiring progenitors of man.
|
|
|
|
When the tribe saw that Kerchak's rage had ceased they
|
|
came slowly down from their arboreal retreats and pursued
|
|
again the various occupations which he had interrupted.
|
|
|
|
The young played and frolicked about among the trees and
|
|
bushes. Some of the adults lay prone upon the soft mat of
|
|
dead and decaying vegetation which covered the ground,
|
|
while others turned over pieces of fallen branches and clods
|
|
of earth in search of the small bugs and reptiles which
|
|
formed a part of their food.
|
|
|
|
Others, again, searched the surrounding trees for fruit,
|
|
nuts, small birds, and eggs.
|
|
|
|
They had passed an hour or so thus when Kerchak called
|
|
them together, and, with a word of command to them to
|
|
follow him, set off toward the sea.
|
|
|
|
They traveled for the most part upon the ground, where it
|
|
was open, following the path of the great elephants whose
|
|
comings and goings break the only roads through those
|
|
tangled mazes of bush, vine, creeper, and tree. When they
|
|
walked it was with a rolling, awkward motion, placing the
|
|
knuckles of their closed hands upon the ground and swinging
|
|
their ungainly bodies forward.
|
|
|
|
But when the way was through the lower trees they moved
|
|
more swiftly, swinging from branch to branch with the agility
|
|
of their smaller cousins, the monkeys. And all the way Kala
|
|
carried her little dead baby hugged closely to her breast.
|
|
|
|
It was shortly after noon when they reached a ridge
|
|
overlooking the beach where below them lay the tiny cottage
|
|
which was Kerchak's goal.
|
|
|
|
He had seen many of his kind go to their deaths before the
|
|
loud noise made by the little black stick in the hands of the
|
|
strange white ape who lived in that wonderful lair, and Kerchak
|
|
had made up his brute mind to own that death-dealing
|
|
contrivance, and to explore the interior of the mysterious den.
|
|
|
|
He wanted, very, very much, to feel his teeth sink into the
|
|
neck of the queer animal that he had learned to hate and
|
|
fear, and because of this, he came often with his tribe to
|
|
reconnoiter, waiting for a time when the white ape should be
|
|
off his guard.
|
|
|
|
Of late they had quit attacking, or even showing themselves;
|
|
for every time they had done so in the past the little
|
|
stick had roared out its terrible message of death to some
|
|
member of the tribe.
|
|
|
|
Today there was no sign of the man about, and from
|
|
where they watched they could see that the cabin door was
|
|
open. Slowly, cautiously, and noiselessly they crept through
|
|
the jungle toward the little cabin.
|
|
|
|
There were no growls, no fierce screams of rage--the little
|
|
black stick had taught them to come quietly lest they awaken it.
|
|
|
|
On, on they came until Kerchak himself slunk stealthily to the
|
|
very door and peered within. Behind him were two males, and
|
|
then Kala, closely straining the little dead form to her breast.
|
|
|
|
Inside the den they saw the strange white ape lying half
|
|
across a table, his head buried in his arms; and on the bed
|
|
lay a figure covered by a sailcloth, while from a tiny rustic
|
|
cradle came the plaintive wailing of a babe.
|
|
|
|
Noiselessly Kerchak entered, crouching for the charge; and
|
|
then John Clayton rose with a sudden start and faced them.
|
|
|
|
The sight that met his eyes must have frozen him with horror,
|
|
for there, within the door, stood three great bull apes,
|
|
while behind them crowded many more; how many he never
|
|
knew, for his revolvers were hanging on the far wall beside
|
|
his rifle, and Kerchak was charging.
|
|
|
|
When the king ape released the limp form which had been
|
|
John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, he turned his attention toward
|
|
the little cradle; but Kala was there before him, and
|
|
when he would have grasped the child she snatched it herself,
|
|
and before he could intercept her she had bolted through the
|
|
door and taken refuge in a high tree.
|
|
|
|
As she took up the little live baby of Alice Clayton she
|
|
dropped the dead body of her own into the empty cradle; for
|
|
the wail of the living had answered the call of universal
|
|
motherhood within her wild breast which the dead could not still.
|
|
|
|
High up among the branches of a mighty tree she hugged
|
|
the shrieking infant to her bosom, and soon the instinct that
|
|
was as dominant in this fierce female as it had been in the
|
|
breast of his tender and beautiful mother--the instinct of
|
|
mother love--reached out to the tiny man-child's half-formed
|
|
understanding, and he became quiet.
|
|
|
|
Then hunger closed the gap between them, and the son of
|
|
an English lord and an English lady nursed at the breast of
|
|
Kala, the great ape.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime the beasts within the cabin were warily
|
|
examining the contents of this strange lair.
|
|
|
|
Once satisfied that Clayton was dead, Kerchak turned his
|
|
attention to the thing which lay upon the bed, covered by a
|
|
piece of sailcloth.
|
|
|
|
Gingerly he lifted one corner of the shroud, but when he
|
|
saw the body of the woman beneath he tore the cloth roughly
|
|
from her form and seized the still, white throat in his huge,
|
|
hairy hands.
|
|
|
|
A moment he let his fingers sink deep into the cold flesh,
|
|
and then, realizing that she was already dead, he turned from
|
|
her, to examine the contents of the room; nor did he again
|
|
molest the body of either Lady Alice or Sir John.
|
|
|
|
The rifle hanging upon the wall caught his first attention; it
|
|
was for this strange, death-dealing thunder-stick that he had
|
|
yearned for months; but now that it was within his grasp he
|
|
scarcely had the temerity to seize it.
|
|
|
|
Cautiously he approached the thing, ready to flee
|
|
precipitately should it speak in its deep roaring tones,
|
|
as he had heard it speak before, the last words to those
|
|
of his kind who, through ignorance or rashness, had attacked
|
|
the wonderful white ape that had borne it.
|
|
|
|
Deep in the beast's intelligence was something which assured
|
|
him that the thunder-stick was only dangerous when in the
|
|
hands of one who could manipulate it, but yet it was several
|
|
minutes ere he could bring himself to touch it.
|
|
|
|
Instead, he walked back and forth along the floor before it,
|
|
turning his head so that never once did his eyes leave the
|
|
object of his desire.
|
|
|
|
Using his long arms as a man uses crutches, and rolling his
|
|
huge carcass from side to side with each stride, the great king
|
|
ape paced to and fro, uttering deep growls, occasionally
|
|
punctuated with the ear-piercing scream, than?? which there is
|
|
no more terrifying noise in all the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Presently he halted before the rifle. Slowly he raised a
|
|
huge hand until it almost touched the shining barrel, only to
|
|
withdraw it once more and continue his hurried pacing.
|
|
|
|
It was as though the great brute by this show of fearlessness,
|
|
and through the medium of his wild voice, was endeavoring
|
|
to bolster up his courage to the point which would permit
|
|
him to take the rifle in his hand.
|
|
|
|
Again he stopped, and this time succeeded in forcing his
|
|
reluctant hand to the cold steel, only to snatch it away almost
|
|
immediately and resume his restless beat.
|
|
|
|
Time after time this strange ceremony was repeated, but on each
|
|
occasion with increased confidence, until, finally, the rifle
|
|
was torn from its hook and lay in the grasp of the great brute.
|
|
|
|
Finding that it harmed him not, Kerchak began to examine
|
|
it closely. He felt of it from end to end, peered down the
|
|
black depths of the muzzle, fingered the sights, the breech,
|
|
the stock, and finally the trigger.
|
|
|
|
During all these operations the apes who had entered sat
|
|
huddled near the door watching their chief, while those outside
|
|
strained and crowded to catch a glimpse of what transpired within.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly Kerchak's finger closed upon the trigger. There was
|
|
a deafening roar in the little room and the apes at and beyond
|
|
the door fell over one another in their wild anxiety to escape.
|
|
|
|
Kerchak was equally frightened, so frightened, in fact, that he
|
|
quite forgot to throw aside the author of that fearful noise,
|
|
but bolted for the door with it tightly clutched in one hand.
|
|
|
|
As he passed through the opening, the front sight of the
|
|
rifle caught upon the edge of the inswung door with sufficient
|
|
force to close it tightly after the fleeing ape.
|
|
|
|
When Kerchak came to a halt a short distance from the cabin
|
|
and discovered that he still held the rifle, he dropped it
|
|
as he might have dropped a red hot iron, nor did he again
|
|
attempt to recover it--the noise was too much for his brute
|
|
nerves; but he was now quite convinced that the terrible stick
|
|
was quite harmless by itself if left alone.
|
|
|
|
It was an hour before the apes could again bring themselves
|
|
to approach the cabin to continue their investigations,
|
|
and when they finally did so, they found to their chagrin that
|
|
the door was closed and so securely fastened that they could
|
|
not force it.
|
|
|
|
The cleverly constructed latch which Clayton had made for
|
|
the door had sprung as Kerchak passed out; nor could the
|
|
apes find means of ingress through the heavily barred windows.
|
|
|
|
After roaming about the vicinity for a short time, they
|
|
started back for the deeper forests and the higher land from
|
|
whence they had come.
|
|
|
|
Kala had not once come to earth with her little adopted
|
|
babe, but now Kerchak called to her to descend with the rest,
|
|
and as there was no note of anger in his voice she dropped
|
|
lightly from branch to branch and joined the others on their
|
|
homeward march.
|
|
|
|
Those of the apes who attempted to examine Kala's
|
|
strange baby were repulsed with bared fangs and low
|
|
menacing growls, accompanied by words of warning from Kala.
|
|
|
|
When they assured her that they meant the child no harm
|
|
she permitted them to come close, but would not allow them
|
|
to touch her charge.
|
|
|
|
It was as though she knew that her baby was frail and delicate
|
|
and feared lest the rough hands of her fellows might injure
|
|
the little thing.
|
|
|
|
Another thing she did, and which made traveling an onerous
|
|
trial for her. Remembering the death of her own little
|
|
one, she clung desperately to the new babe, with one hand,
|
|
whenever they were upon the march.
|
|
|
|
The other young rode upon their mothers' backs; their little
|
|
arms tightly clasping the hairy necks before them, while
|
|
their legs were locked beneath their mothers' armpits.
|
|
|
|
Not so with Kala; she held the small form of the little
|
|
Lord Greystoke tightly to her breast, where the dainty hands
|
|
clutched the long black hair which covered that portion of
|
|
her body. She had seen one child fall from her back to a
|
|
terrible death, and she would take no further chances with this.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 5
|
|
|
|
The White Ape
|
|
|
|
Tenderly Kala nursed her little waif, wondering silently
|
|
why it did not gain strength and agility as did the little
|
|
apes of other mothers. It was nearly a year from the time the
|
|
little fellow came into her possession before he would walk
|
|
alone, and as for climbing--my, but how stupid he was!
|
|
|
|
Kala sometimes talked with the older females about her
|
|
young hopeful, but none of them could understand how a
|
|
child could be so slow and backward in learning to care for
|
|
itself. Why, it could not even find food alone, and more
|
|
than twelve moons had passed since Kala had come upon it.
|
|
|
|
Had they known that the child had seen thirteen moons
|
|
before it had come into Kala's possession they would have
|
|
considered its case as absolutely hopeless, for the little apes
|
|
of their own tribe were as far advanced in two or three
|
|
moons as was this little stranger after twenty-five.
|
|
|
|
Tublat, Kala's husband, was sorely vexed, and but for the female's
|
|
careful watching would have put the child out of the way.
|
|
|
|
"He will never be a great ape," he argued. "Always will
|
|
you have to carry him and protect him. What good will he be
|
|
to the tribe? None; only a burden.
|
|
|
|
"Let us leave him quietly sleeping among the tall grasses,
|
|
that you may bear other and stronger apes to guard us in our
|
|
old age."
|
|
|
|
"Never, Broken Nose," replied Kala. "If I must carry him
|
|
forever, so be it."
|
|
|
|
And then Tublat went to Kerchak to urge him to use his
|
|
authority with Kala, and force her to give up little Tarzan,
|
|
which was the name they had given to the tiny Lord Greystoke,
|
|
and which meant "White-Skin."
|
|
|
|
But when Kerchak spoke to her about it Kala threatened
|
|
to run away from the tribe if they did not leave her in peace
|
|
with the child; and as this is one of the inalienable rights of
|
|
the jungle folk, if they be dissatisfied among their own people,
|
|
they bothered her no more, for Kala was a fine clean-limbed
|
|
young female, and they did not wish to lose her.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan grew he made more rapid strides, so that by the
|
|
time he was ten years old he was an excellent climber, and on
|
|
the ground could do many wonderful things which were beyond
|
|
the powers of his little brothers and sisters.
|
|
|
|
In many ways did he differ from them, and they often
|
|
marveled at his superior cunning, but in strength and size he
|
|
was deficient; for at ten the great anthropoids were fully
|
|
grown, some of them towering over six feet in height, while
|
|
little Tarzan was still but a half-grown boy.
|
|
|
|
Yet such a boy!
|
|
|
|
From early childhood he had used his hands to swing from
|
|
branch to branch after the manner of his giant mother, and
|
|
as he grew older he spent hour upon hour daily speeding
|
|
through the tree tops with his brothers and sisters.
|
|
|
|
He could spring twenty feet across space at the dizzy
|
|
heights of the forest top, and grasp with unerring precision,
|
|
and without apparent jar, a limb waving wildly in the path of
|
|
an approaching tornado.
|
|
|
|
He could drop twenty feet at a stretch from limb to limb
|
|
in rapid descent to the ground, or he could gain the utmost
|
|
pinnacle of the loftiest tropical giant with the ease and
|
|
swiftness of a squirrel.
|
|
|
|
Though but ten years old he was fully as strong as the
|
|
average man of thirty, and far more agile than the most
|
|
practiced athlete ever becomes. And day by day his strength
|
|
was increasing.
|
|
|
|
His life among these fierce apes had been happy; for his
|
|
recollection held no other life, nor did he know that there
|
|
existed within the universe aught else than his little forest
|
|
and the wild jungle animals with which he was familiar.
|
|
|
|
He was nearly ten before he commenced to realize that a
|
|
great difference existed between himself and his fellows. His
|
|
little body, burned brown by exposure, suddenly caused him
|
|
feelings of intense shame, for he realized that it was entirely
|
|
hairless, like some low snake, or other reptile.
|
|
|
|
He attempted to obviate this by plastering himself from
|
|
head to foot with mud, but this dried and fell off. Besides it
|
|
felt so uncomfortable that he quickly decided that he
|
|
preferred the shame to the discomfort.
|
|
|
|
In the higher land which his tribe frequented was a little
|
|
lake, and it was here that Tarzan first saw his face in the
|
|
clear, still waters of its bosom.
|
|
|
|
It was on a sultry day of the dry season that he and one of
|
|
his cousins had gone down to the bank to drink. As they
|
|
leaned over, both little faces were mirrored on the placid
|
|
pool; the fierce and terrible features of the ape beside those
|
|
of the aristocratic scion of an old English house.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was appalled. It had been bad enough to be hairless,
|
|
but to own such a countenance! He wondered that the
|
|
other apes could look at him at all.
|
|
|
|
That tiny slit of a mouth and those puny white teeth! How
|
|
they looked beside the mighty lips and powerful fangs of his
|
|
more fortunate brothers!
|
|
|
|
And the little pinched nose of his; so thin was it that it
|
|
looked half starved. He turned red as he compared it with the
|
|
beautiful broad nostrils of his companion. Such a generous nose!
|
|
Why it spread half across his face! It certainly must be
|
|
fine to be so handsome, thought poor little Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
But when he saw his own eyes; ah, that was the final blow
|
|
--a brown spot, a gray circle and then blank whiteness!
|
|
Frightful! not even the snakes had such hideous eyes as he.
|
|
|
|
So intent was he upon this personal appraisement of his
|
|
features that he did not hear the parting of the tall grass
|
|
behind him as a great body pushed itself stealthily through
|
|
the jungle; nor did his companion, the ape, hear either, for
|
|
he was drinking and the noise of his sucking lips and gurgles
|
|
of satisfaction drowned the quiet approach of the intruder.
|
|
|
|
Not thirty paces behind the two she crouched--Sabor, the
|
|
huge lioness--lashing her tail. Cautiously she moved a great
|
|
padded paw forward, noiselessly placing it before she lifted
|
|
the next. Thus she advanced; her belly low, almost touching
|
|
the surface of the ground--a great cat preparing to spring
|
|
upon its prey.
|
|
|
|
Now she was within ten feet of the two unsuspecting little
|
|
playfellows--carefully she drew her hind feet well up beneath
|
|
her body, the great muscles rolling under the beautiful skin.
|
|
|
|
So low she was crouching now that she seemed flattened to
|
|
the earth except for the upward bend of the glossy back as it
|
|
gathered for the spring.
|
|
|
|
No longer the tail lashed--quiet and straight behind her it lay.
|
|
|
|
An instant she paused thus, as though turned to stone, and
|
|
then, with an awful scream, she sprang.
|
|
|
|
Sabor, the lioness, was a wise hunter. To one less wise the
|
|
wild alarm of her fierce cry as she sprang would have seemed
|
|
a foolish thing, for could she not more surely have fallen upon
|
|
her victims had she but quietly leaped without that loud shriek?
|
|
|
|
But Sabor knew well the wondrous quickness of the jungle
|
|
folk and their almost unbelievable powers of hearing. To
|
|
them the sudden scraping of one blade of grass across
|
|
another was as effectual a warning as her loudest cry, and
|
|
Sabor knew that she could not make that mighty leap without
|
|
a little noise.
|
|
|
|
Her wild scream was not a warning. It was voiced to
|
|
freeze her poor victims in a paralysis of terror for the tiny
|
|
fraction of an instant which would suffice for her mighty
|
|
claws to sink into their soft flesh and hold them beyond hope
|
|
of escape.
|
|
|
|
So far as the ape was concerned, Sabor reasoned correctly.
|
|
The little fellow crouched trembling just an instant, but that
|
|
instant was quite long enough to prove his undoing.
|
|
|
|
Not so, however, with Tarzan, the man-child. His life
|
|
amidst the dangers of the jungle had taught him to meet
|
|
emergencies with self-confidence, and his higher intelligence
|
|
resulted in a quickness of mental action far beyond the powers
|
|
of the apes.
|
|
|
|
So the scream of Sabor, the lioness, galvanized the brain
|
|
and muscles of little Tarzan into instant action.
|
|
|
|
Before him lay the deep waters of the little lake, behind
|
|
him certain death; a cruel death beneath tearing claws and
|
|
rending fangs.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had always hated water except as a medium for
|
|
quenching his thirst. He hated it because he connected it with
|
|
the chill and discomfort of the torrential rains, and he feared
|
|
it for the thunder and lightning and wind which accompanied them.
|
|
|
|
The deep waters of the lake he had been taught by his wild
|
|
mother to avoid, and further, had he not seen little Neeta
|
|
sink beneath its quiet surface only a few short weeks before
|
|
never to return to the tribe?
|
|
|
|
But of the two evils his quick mind chose the lesser ere the
|
|
first note of Sabor's scream had scarce broken the quiet of
|
|
the jungle, and before the great beast had covered half her
|
|
leap Tarzan felt the chill waters close above his head.
|
|
|
|
He could not swim, and the water was very deep; but still he
|
|
lost no particle of that self-confidence and resourcefulness
|
|
which were the badges of his superior being.
|
|
|
|
Rapidly he moved his hands and feet in an attempt to
|
|
scramble upward, and, possibly more by chance than design,
|
|
he fell into the stroke that a dog uses when swimming, so
|
|
that within a few seconds his nose was above water and he
|
|
found that he could keep it there by continuing his strokes,
|
|
and also make progress through the water.
|
|
|
|
He was much surprised and pleased with this new acquirement
|
|
which had been so suddenly thrust upon him, but he had no
|
|
time for thinking much upon it.
|
|
|
|
He was now swimming parallel to the bank and there he
|
|
saw the cruel beast that would have seized him crouching
|
|
upon the still form of his little playmate.
|
|
|
|
The lioness was intently watching Tarzan, evidently expecting
|
|
him to return to shore, but this the boy had no intention
|
|
of doing.
|
|
|
|
Instead he raised his voice in the call of distress common
|
|
to his tribe, adding to it the warning which would prevent
|
|
would-be rescuers from running into the clutches of Sabor.
|
|
|
|
Almost immediately there came an answer from the distance,
|
|
and presently forty or fifty great apes swung rapidly and
|
|
majestically through the trees toward the scene of tragedy.
|
|
|
|
In the lead was Kala, for she had recognized the tones of
|
|
her best beloved, and with her was the mother of the little
|
|
ape who lay dead beneath cruel Sabor.
|
|
|
|
Though more powerful and better equipped for fighting than
|
|
the apes, the lioness had no desire to meet these enraged
|
|
adults, and with a snarl of hatred she sprang quickly
|
|
into the brush and disappeared.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan now swam to shore and clambered quickly upon
|
|
dry land. The feeling of freshness and exhilaration which the
|
|
cool waters had imparted to him, filled his little being with
|
|
grateful surprise, and ever after he lost no opportunity to
|
|
take a daily plunge in lake or stream or ocean when it was
|
|
possible to do so.
|
|
|
|
For a long time Kala could not accustom herself to the
|
|
sight; for though her people could swim when forced to it,
|
|
they did not like to enter water, and never did so voluntarily.
|
|
|
|
The adventure with the lioness gave Tarzan food for
|
|
pleasurable memories, for it was such affairs which broke
|
|
the monotony of his daily life--otherwise but a dull round of
|
|
searching for food, eating, and sleeping.
|
|
|
|
The tribe to which he belonged roamed a tract extending,
|
|
roughly, twenty-five miles along the seacoast and some fifty
|
|
miles inland. This they traversed almost continually,
|
|
occasionally remaining for months in one locality; but as they
|
|
moved through the trees with great speed they often covered
|
|
the territory in a very few days.
|
|
|
|
Much depended upon food supply, climatic conditions, and
|
|
the prevalence of animals of the more dangerous species;
|
|
though Kerchak often led them on long marches for no other
|
|
reason than that he had tired of remaining in the same place.
|
|
|
|
At night they slept where darkness overtook them, lying
|
|
upon the ground, and sometimes covering their heads, and
|
|
more seldom their bodies, with the great leaves of the
|
|
elephant's ear. Two or three might lie cuddled in each other's
|
|
arms for additional warmth if the night were chill, and thus
|
|
Tarzan had slept in Kala's arms nightly for all these years.
|
|
|
|
That the huge, fierce brute loved this child of another race
|
|
is beyond question, and he, too, gave to the great, hairy beast
|
|
all the affection that would have belonged to his fair young
|
|
mother had she lived.
|
|
|
|
When he was disobedient she cuffed him, it is true, but she
|
|
was never cruel to him, and was more often caressing him
|
|
than chastising him.
|
|
|
|
Tublat, her mate, always hated Tarzan, and on several
|
|
occasions had come near ending his youthful career.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan on his part never lost an opportunity to show that
|
|
he fully reciprocated his foster father's sentiments, and
|
|
whenever he could safely annoy him or make faces at him or hurl
|
|
insults upon him from the safety of his mother's arms, or the
|
|
slender branches of the higher trees, he did so.
|
|
|
|
His superior intelligence and cunning permitted him to invent
|
|
a thousand diabolical tricks to add to the burdens of
|
|
Tublat's life.
|
|
|
|
Early in his boyhood he had learned to form ropes by
|
|
twisting and tying long grasses together, and with these he
|
|
was forever tripping Tublat or attempting to hang him from
|
|
some overhanging branch.
|
|
|
|
By constant playing and experimenting with these he learned
|
|
to tie rude knots, and make sliding nooses; and with these he
|
|
and the younger apes amused themselves. What Tarzan did they
|
|
tried to do also, but he alone originated and became proficient.
|
|
|
|
One day while playing thus Tarzan had thrown his rope at
|
|
one of his fleeing companions, retaining the other end in his
|
|
grasp. By accident the noose fell squarely about the running
|
|
ape's neck, bringing him to a sudden and surprising halt.
|
|
|
|
Ah, here was a new game, a fine game, thought Tarzan, and
|
|
immediately he attempted to repeat the trick. And thus, by
|
|
painstaking and continued practice, he learned the art of roping.
|
|
|
|
Now, indeed, was the life of Tublat a living nightmare. In
|
|
sleep, upon the march, night or day, he never knew when
|
|
that quiet noose would slip about his neck and nearly choke
|
|
the life out of him.
|
|
|
|
Kala punished, Tublat swore dire vengeance, and old Kerchak
|
|
took notice and warned and threatened; but all to no avail.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan defied them all, and the thin, strong noose continued
|
|
to settle about Tublat's neck whenever he least expected it.
|
|
|
|
The other apes derived unlimited amusement from Tublat's
|
|
discomfiture, for Broken Nose was a disagreeable old fellow,
|
|
whom no one liked, anyway.
|
|
|
|
In Tarzan's clever little mind many thoughts revolved, and
|
|
back of these was his divine power of reason.
|
|
|
|
If he could catch his fellow apes with his long arm of
|
|
many grasses, why not Sabor, the lioness?
|
|
|
|
It was the germ of a thought, which, however, was destined
|
|
to mull around in his conscious and subconscious mind
|
|
until it resulted in magnificent achievement.
|
|
|
|
But that came in later years.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 6
|
|
|
|
Jungle Battles
|
|
|
|
The wanderings of the tribe brought them often near the
|
|
closed and silent cabin by the little land-locked harbor.
|
|
To Tarzan this was always a source of never-ending mystery
|
|
and pleasure.
|
|
|
|
He would peek into the curtained windows, or, climbing
|
|
upon the roof, peer down the black depths of the chimney in
|
|
vain endeavor to solve the unknown wonders that lay within
|
|
those strong walls.
|
|
|
|
His child-like imagination pictured wonderful creatures
|
|
within, and the very impossibility of forcing entrance
|
|
added a thousandfold to his desire to do so.
|
|
|
|
He could clamber about the roof and windows for hours
|
|
attempting to discover means of ingress, but to the door he paid
|
|
little attention, for this was apparently as solid as the walls.
|
|
|
|
It was in the next visit to the vicinity, following the
|
|
adventure with old Sabor, that, as he approached the cabin,
|
|
Tarzan noticed that from a distance the door appeared to be an
|
|
independent part of the wall in which it was set, and for the first
|
|
time it occurred to him that this might prove the means of
|
|
entrance which had so long eluded him.
|
|
|
|
He was alone, as was often the case when he visited the
|
|
cabin, for the apes had no love for it; the story of the
|
|
thunder-stick having lost nothing in the telling during these
|
|
ten years had quite surrounded the white man's deserted abode
|
|
with an atmosphere of weirdness and terror for the simians.
|
|
|
|
The story of his own connection with the cabin had never
|
|
been told him. The language of the apes had so few words
|
|
that they could talk but little of what they had seen in the
|
|
cabin, having no words to accurately describe either the
|
|
strange people or their belongings, and so, long before
|
|
Tarzan was old enough to understand, the subject had been
|
|
forgotten by the tribe.
|
|
|
|
Only in a dim, vague way had Kala explained to him that
|
|
his father had been a strange white ape, but he did not know
|
|
that Kala was not his own mother.
|
|
|
|
On this day, then, he went directly to the door and spent
|
|
hours examining it and fussing with the hinges, the knob and
|
|
the latch. Finally he stumbled upon the right combination,
|
|
and the door swung creakingly open before his astonished eyes.
|
|
|
|
For some minutes he did not dare venture within, but finally,
|
|
as his eyes became accustomed to the dim light of the
|
|
interior he slowly and cautiously entered.
|
|
|
|
In the middle of the floor lay a skeleton, every vestige of
|
|
flesh gone from the bones to which still clung the mildewed
|
|
and moldered remnants of what had once been clothing.
|
|
Upon the bed lay a similar gruesome thing, but smaller, while
|
|
in a tiny cradle near-by was a third, a wee mite of a skeleton.
|
|
|
|
To none of these evidences of a fearful tragedy of a long
|
|
dead day did little Tarzan give but passing heed. His wild
|
|
jungle life had inured him to the sight of dead and dying
|
|
animals, and had he known that he was looking upon the remains
|
|
of his own father and mother he would have been no more
|
|
greatly moved.
|
|
|
|
The furnishings and other contents of the room it was
|
|
which riveted his attention. He examined many things
|
|
minutely--strange tools and weapons, books, paper, clothing--
|
|
what little had withstood the ravages of time in the humid
|
|
atmosphere of the jungle coast.
|
|
|
|
He opened chests and cupboards, such as did not baffle his
|
|
small experience, and in these he found the contents much
|
|
better preserved.
|
|
|
|
Among other things he found a sharp hunting knife, on the
|
|
keen blade of which he immediately proceeded to cut his
|
|
finger. Undaunted he continued his experiments, finding that
|
|
he could hack and hew splinters of wood from the table and
|
|
chairs with this new toy.
|
|
|
|
For a long time this amused him, but finally tiring he
|
|
continued his explorations. In a cupboard filled with books
|
|
he came across one with brightly colored pictures--it was a
|
|
child's illustrated alphabet--
|
|
|
|
A is for Archer
|
|
Who shoots with a bow.
|
|
B is for Boy,
|
|
His first name is Joe.
|
|
|
|
The pictures interested him greatly.
|
|
|
|
There were many apes with faces similar to his own, and
|
|
further over in the book he found, under "M," some little
|
|
monkeys such as he saw daily flitting through the trees of his
|
|
primeval forest. But nowhere was pictured any of his own
|
|
people; in all the book was none that resembled Kerchak, or
|
|
Tublat, or Kala.
|
|
|
|
At first he tried to pick the little figures from the leaves,
|
|
but he soon saw that they were not real, though he knew not
|
|
what they might be, nor had he any words to describe them.
|
|
|
|
The boats, and trains, and cows and horses were quite
|
|
meaningless to him, but not quite so baffling as the odd little
|
|
figures which appeared beneath and between the colored
|
|
pictures--some strange kind of bug he thought they might be,
|
|
for many of them had legs though nowhere could he find one
|
|
with eyes and a mouth. It was his first introduction to the
|
|
letters of the alphabet, and he was over ten years old.
|
|
|
|
Of course he had never before seen print, or ever had
|
|
spoken with any living thing which had the remotest idea that
|
|
such a thing as a written language existed, nor ever had he
|
|
seen anyone reading.
|
|
|
|
So what wonder that the little boy was quite at a loss to
|
|
guess the meaning of these strange figures.
|
|
|
|
Near the middle of the book he found his old enemy,
|
|
Sabor, the lioness, and further on, coiled Histah, the snake.
|
|
|
|
Oh, it was most engrossing! Never before in all his ten
|
|
years had he enjoyed anything so much. So absorbed was he
|
|
that he did not note the approaching dusk, until it was quite
|
|
upon him and the figures were blurred.
|
|
|
|
He put the book back in the cupboard and closed the door,
|
|
for he did not wish anyone else to find and destroy his
|
|
treasure, and as he went out into the gathering darkness he closed
|
|
the great door of the cabin behind him as it had been before
|
|
he discovered the secret of its lock, but before he left he had
|
|
noticed the hunting knife lying where he had thrown it upon
|
|
the floor, and this he picked up and took with him to show to
|
|
his fellows.
|
|
|
|
He had taken scarce a dozen steps toward the jungle when
|
|
a great form rose up before him from the shadows of a low
|
|
bush. At first he thought it was one of his own people but in
|
|
another instant he realized that it was Bolgani, the huge gorilla.
|
|
|
|
So close was he that there was no chance for flight and
|
|
little Tarzan knew that he must stand and fight for his life;
|
|
for these great beasts were the deadly enemies of his tribe, and
|
|
neither one nor the other ever asked or gave quarter.
|
|
|
|
Had Tarzan been a full-grown bull ape of the species of
|
|
his tribe he would have been more than a match for the gorilla,
|
|
but being only a little English boy, though enormously
|
|
muscular for such, he stood no chance against his cruel
|
|
antagonist. In his veins, though, flowed the blood of the best
|
|
of a race of mighty fighters, and back of this was the training
|
|
of his short lifetime among the fierce brutes of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
He knew no fear, as we know it; his little heart beat the
|
|
faster but from the excitement and exhilaration of adventure.
|
|
Had the opportunity presented itself he would have escaped,
|
|
but solely because his judgment told him he was no match
|
|
for the great thing which confronted him. And since reason
|
|
showed him that successful flight was impossible he met the
|
|
gorilla squarely and bravely without a tremor of a single
|
|
muscle, or any sign of panic.
|
|
|
|
In fact he met the brute midway in its charge, striking its
|
|
huge body with his closed fists and as futilely as he had been
|
|
a fly attacking an elephant. But in one hand he still clutched
|
|
the knife he had found in the cabin of his father, and as the
|
|
brute, striking and biting, closed upon him the boy accidentally
|
|
turned the point toward the hairy breast. As the knife
|
|
sank deep into its body the gorilla shrieked in pain and rage.
|
|
|
|
But the boy had learned in that brief second a use for his
|
|
sharp and shining toy, so that, as the tearing, striking beast
|
|
dragged him to earth he plunged the blade repeatedly and to
|
|
the hilt into its breast.
|
|
|
|
The gorilla, fighting after the manner of its kind, struck
|
|
terrific blows with its open hand, and tore the flesh at the
|
|
boy's throat and chest with its mighty tusks.
|
|
|
|
For a moment they rolled upon the ground in the fierce
|
|
frenzy of combat. More and more weakly the torn and bleeding
|
|
arm struck home with the long sharp blade, then the little
|
|
figure stiffened with a spasmodic jerk, and Tarzan, the young
|
|
Lord Greystoke, rolled unconscious upon the dead and decaying
|
|
vegetation which carpeted his jungle home.
|
|
|
|
A mile back in the forest the tribe had heard the fierce
|
|
challenge of the gorilla, and, as was his custom when any
|
|
danger threatened, Kerchak called his people together, partly
|
|
for mutual protection against a common enemy, since this
|
|
gorilla might be but one of a party of several, and also to see
|
|
that all members of the tribe were accounted for.
|
|
|
|
It was soon discovered that Tarzan was missing, and Tublat
|
|
was strongly opposed to sending assistance. Kerchak himself
|
|
had no liking for the strange little waif, so he listened to
|
|
Tublat, and, finally, with a shrug of his shoulders, turned
|
|
back to the pile of leaves on which he had made his bed.
|
|
|
|
But Kala was of a different mind; in fact, she had not
|
|
waited but to learn that Tarzan was absent ere she was fairly
|
|
flying through the matted branches toward the point from
|
|
which the cries of the gorilla were still plainly audible.
|
|
|
|
Darkness had now fallen, and an early moon was sending
|
|
its faint light to cast strange, grotesque shadows among the
|
|
dense foliage of the forest.
|
|
|
|
Here and there the brilliant rays penetrated to earth, but
|
|
for the most part they only served to accentuate the Stygian
|
|
blackness of the jungle's depths.
|
|
|
|
Like some huge phantom, Kala swung noiselessly from
|
|
tree to tree; now running nimbly along a great branch, now
|
|
swinging through space at the end of another, only to grasp
|
|
that of a farther tree in her rapid progress toward the scene
|
|
of the tragedy her knowledge of jungle life told her was being
|
|
enacted a short distance before her.
|
|
|
|
The cries of the gorilla proclaimed that it was in mortal
|
|
combat with some other denizen of the fierce wood. Suddenly
|
|
these cries ceased, and the silence of death reigned throughout
|
|
the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Kala could not understand, for the voice of Bolgani had at
|
|
last been raised in the agony of suffering and death, but
|
|
no sound had come to her by which she possibly could determine
|
|
the nature of his antagonist.
|
|
|
|
That her little Tarzan could destroy a great bull gorilla she
|
|
knew to be improbable, and so, as she neared the spot from
|
|
which the sounds of the struggle had come, she moved more
|
|
warily and at last slowly and with extreme caution she
|
|
traversed the lowest branches, peering eagerly into the moon-
|
|
splashed blackness for a sign of the combatants.
|
|
|
|
Presently she came upon them, lying in a little open space
|
|
full under the brilliant light of the moon--little Tarzan's torn
|
|
and bloody form, and beside it a great bull gorilla, stone dead.
|
|
|
|
With a low cry Kala rushed to Tarzan's side, and gathering the
|
|
poor, blood-covered body to her breast, listened for a sign of
|
|
life. Faintly she heard it--the weak beating of the little heart.
|
|
|
|
Tenderly she bore him back through the inky jungle to
|
|
where the tribe lay, and for many days and nights she sat
|
|
guard beside him, bringing him food and water, and brushing
|
|
the flies and other insects from his cruel wounds.
|
|
|
|
Of medicine or surgery the poor thing knew nothing. She
|
|
could but lick the wounds, and thus she kept them cleansed,
|
|
that healing nature might the more quickly do her work.
|
|
|
|
At first Tarzan would eat nothing, but rolled and tossed in
|
|
a wild delirium of fever. All he craved was water, and this
|
|
she brought him in the only way she could, bearing it in her
|
|
own mouth.
|
|
|
|
No human mother could have shown more unselfish and
|
|
sacrificing devotion than did this poor, wild brute for the
|
|
little orphaned waif whom fate had thrown into her keeping.
|
|
|
|
At last the fever abated and the boy commenced to mend.
|
|
No word of complaint passed his tight set lips, though the
|
|
pain of his wounds was excruciating.
|
|
|
|
A portion of his chest was laid bare to the ribs, three of
|
|
which had been broken by the mighty blows of the gorilla.
|
|
One arm was nearly severed by the giant fangs, and a great
|
|
piece had been torn from his neck, exposing his jugular vein,
|
|
which the cruel jaws had missed but by a miracle.
|
|
|
|
With the stoicism of the brutes who had raised him he endured
|
|
his suffering quietly, preferring to crawl away from the
|
|
others and lie huddled in some clump of tall grasses rather
|
|
than to show his misery before their eyes.
|
|
|
|
Kala, alone, he was glad to have with him, but now that he
|
|
was better she was gone longer at a time, in search of food;
|
|
for the devoted animal had scarcely eaten enough to support
|
|
her own life while Tarzan had been so low, and was in
|
|
consequence, reduced to a mere shadow of her former self.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 7
|
|
|
|
The Light of Knowledge
|
|
|
|
After what seemed an eternity to the little sufferer he was
|
|
able to walk once more, and from then on his recovery
|
|
was so rapid that in another month he was as strong and
|
|
active as ever.
|
|
|
|
During his convalescence he had gone over in his mind
|
|
many times the battle with the gorilla, and his first thought
|
|
was to recover the wonderful little weapon which had transformed
|
|
him from a hopelessly outclassed weakling to the superior
|
|
of the mighty terror of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Also, he was anxious to return to the cabin and continue
|
|
his investigations of its wondrous contents.
|
|
|
|
So, early one morning, he set forth alone upon his quest.
|
|
After a little search he located the clean-picked bones of his
|
|
late adversary, and close by, partly buried beneath the fallen
|
|
leaves, he found the knife, now red with rust from its exposure
|
|
to the dampness of the ground and from the dried blood
|
|
of the gorilla.
|
|
|
|
He did not like the change in its former bright and gleaming
|
|
surface; but it was still a formidable weapon, and one
|
|
which he meant to use to advantage whenever the opportunity
|
|
presented itself. He had in mind that no more would he
|
|
run from the wanton attacks of old Tublat.
|
|
|
|
In another moment he was at the cabin, and after a short
|
|
time had again thrown the latch and entered. His first concern
|
|
was to learn the mechanism of the lock, and this he did
|
|
by examining it closely while the door was open, so that he
|
|
could learn precisely what caused it to hold the door, and by
|
|
what means it released at his touch.
|
|
|
|
He found that he could close and lock the door from
|
|
within, and this he did so that there would be no chance
|
|
of his being molested while at his investigation.
|
|
|
|
He commenced a systematic search of the cabin; but his
|
|
attention was soon riveted by the books which seemed to
|
|
exert a strange and powerful influence over him, so that he
|
|
could scarce attend to aught else for the lure of the wondrous
|
|
puzzle which their purpose presented to him.
|
|
|
|
Among the other books were a primer, some child's readers,
|
|
numerous picture books, and a great dictionary. All of
|
|
these he examined, but the pictures caught his fancy most,
|
|
though the strange little bugs which covered the pages where
|
|
there were no pictures excited his wonder and deepest thought.
|
|
|
|
Squatting upon his haunches on the table top in the cabin
|
|
his father had built--his smooth, brown, naked little body
|
|
bent over the book which rested in his strong slender hands, and
|
|
his great shock of long, black hair falling about his well-
|
|
shaped head and bright, intelligent eyes--Tarzan of the apes,
|
|
little primitive man, presented a picture filled, at once, with
|
|
pathos and with promise--an allegorical figure of the primordial
|
|
groping through the black night of ignorance toward the
|
|
light of learning.
|
|
|
|
His little face was tense in study, for he had partially
|
|
grasped, in a hazy, nebulous way, the rudiments of a thought
|
|
which was destined to prove the key and the solution to the
|
|
puzzling problem of the strange little bugs.
|
|
|
|
In his hands was a primer opened at a picture of a little
|
|
ape similar to himself, but covered, except for hands and
|
|
face, with strange, colored fur, for such he thought the jacket
|
|
and trousers to be. Beneath the picture were three little bugs--
|
|
|
|
BOY.
|
|
|
|
And now he had discovered in the text upon the page that
|
|
these three were repeated many times in the same sequence.
|
|
|
|
Another fact he learned--that there were comparatively
|
|
few individual bugs; but these were repeated many times,
|
|
occasionally alone, but more often in company with others.
|
|
|
|
Slowly he turned the pages, scanning the pictures and the
|
|
text for a repetition of the combination B-O-Y. Presently he
|
|
found it beneath a picture of another little ape and a strange
|
|
animal which went upon four legs like the jackal and resembled
|
|
him not a little. Beneath this picture the bugs appeared as:
|
|
|
|
A BOY AND A DOG
|
|
|
|
There they were, the three little bugs which always accompanied
|
|
the little ape.
|
|
|
|
And so he progressed very, very slowly, for it was a hard
|
|
and laborious task which he had set himself without knowing
|
|
it--a task which might seem to you or me impossible--learning
|
|
to read without having the slightest knowledge of letters or
|
|
written language, or the faintest idea that such things existed.
|
|
|
|
He did not accomplish it in a day, or in a week, or in a
|
|
month, or in a year; but slowly, very slowly, he learned after
|
|
he had grasped the possibilities which lay in those little bugs,
|
|
so that by the time he was fifteen he knew the various
|
|
combinations of letters which stood for every pictured figure
|
|
in the little primer and in one or two of the picture books.
|
|
|
|
Of the meaning and use of the articles and conjunctions, verbs
|
|
and adverbs and pronouns he had but the faintest conception.
|
|
|
|
One day when he was about twelve he found a number of
|
|
lead pencils in a hitherto undiscovered drawer beneath the
|
|
table, and in scratching upon the table top with one of them
|
|
he was delighted to discover the black line it left behind it.
|
|
|
|
He worked so assiduously with this new toy that the table
|
|
top was soon a mass of scrawly loops and irregular lines and
|
|
his pencil-point worn down to the wood. Then he took another
|
|
pencil, but this time he had a definite object in view.
|
|
|
|
He would attempt to reproduce some of the little bugs that
|
|
scrambled over the pages of his books.
|
|
|
|
It was a difficult task, for he held the pencil as one would
|
|
grasp the hilt of a dagger, which does not add greatly to ease
|
|
in writing or to the legibility of the results.
|
|
|
|
But he persevered for months, at such times as he was able
|
|
to come to the cabin, until at last by repeated experimenting
|
|
he found a position in which to hold the pencil that best
|
|
permitted him to guide and control it, so that at last he could
|
|
roughly reproduce any of the little bugs.
|
|
|
|
Thus he made a beginning of writing.
|
|
|
|
Copying the bugs taught him another thing--their number;
|
|
and though he could not count as we understand it, yet he
|
|
had an idea of quantity, the base of his calculations being
|
|
the number of fingers upon one of his hands.
|
|
|
|
His search through the various books convinced him that
|
|
he had discovered all the different kinds of bugs most often
|
|
repeated in combination, and these he arranged in proper
|
|
order with great ease because of the frequency with which he
|
|
had perused the fascinating alphabet picture book.
|
|
|
|
His education progressed; but his greatest finds were in the
|
|
inexhaustible storehouse of the huge illustrated dictionary, for
|
|
he learned more through the medium of pictures than text,
|
|
even after he had grasped the significance of the bugs.
|
|
|
|
When he discovered the arrangement of words in alphabetical
|
|
order he delighted in searching for and finding the
|
|
combinations with which he was familiar, and the words which
|
|
followed them, their definitions, led him still further into the
|
|
mazes of erudition.
|
|
|
|
By the time he was seventeen he had learned to read the
|
|
simple, child's primer and had fully realized the true and
|
|
wonderful purpose of the little bugs.
|
|
|
|
No longer did he feel shame for his hairless body or his
|
|
human features, for now his reason told him that he was of a
|
|
different race from his wild and hairy companions. He was a
|
|
M-A-N, they were A-P-E-S, and the little apes which scurried
|
|
through the forest top were M-O-N-K-E-Y-S. He knew, too,
|
|
that old Sabor was a L-I-O-N-E-S-S, and Histah a S-N-A-K-E,
|
|
and Tantor an E-L-E-P-H-A-N-T. And so he learned to read.
|
|
From then on his progress was rapid. With the help of the
|
|
great dictionary and the active intelligence of a healthy mind
|
|
endowed by inheritance with more than ordinary reasoning
|
|
powers he shrewdly guessed at much which he could not
|
|
really understand, and more often than not his guesses were
|
|
close to the mark of truth.
|
|
|
|
There were many breaks in his education, caused by the
|
|
migratory habits of his tribe, but even when removed from
|
|
his books his active brain continued to search out the
|
|
mysteries of his fascinating avocation.
|
|
|
|
Pieces of bark and flat leaves and even smooth stretches of
|
|
bare earth provided him with copy books whereon to scratch
|
|
with the point of his hunting knife the lessons he was learning.
|
|
|
|
Nor did he neglect the sterner duties of life while following
|
|
the bent of his inclination toward the solving of the mystery
|
|
of his library.
|
|
|
|
He practiced with his rope and played with his sharp knife,
|
|
which he had learned to keep keen by whetting upon flat stones.
|
|
|
|
The tribe had grown larger since Tarzan had come among
|
|
them, for under the leadership of Kerchak they had been
|
|
able to frighten the other tribes from their part of the jungle
|
|
so that they had plenty to eat and little or no loss from
|
|
predatory incursions of neighbors.
|
|
|
|
Hence the younger males as they became adult found it
|
|
more comfortable to take mates from their own tribe, or if
|
|
they captured one of another tribe to bring her back to
|
|
Kerchak's band and live in amity with him rather than attempt
|
|
to set up new establishments of their own, or fight with the
|
|
redoubtable Kerchak for supremacy at home.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally one more ferocious than his fellows would
|
|
attempt this latter alternative, but none had come yet who
|
|
could wrest the palm of victory from the fierce and brutal ape.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan held a peculiar position in the tribe. They seemed
|
|
to consider him one of them and yet in some way different.
|
|
The older males either ignored him entirely or else hated him
|
|
so vindictively that but for his wondrous agility and speed
|
|
and the fierce protection of the huge Kala he would have
|
|
been dispatched at an early age.
|
|
|
|
Tublat was his most consistent enemy, but it was through
|
|
Tublat that, when he was about thirteen, the persecution of
|
|
his enemies suddenly ceased and he was left severely alone,
|
|
except on the occasions when one of them ran amuck in the
|
|
throes of one of those strange, wild fits of insane rage which
|
|
attacks the males of many of the fiercer animals of the jungle.
|
|
Then none was safe.
|
|
|
|
On the day that Tarzan established his right to respect, the
|
|
tribe was gathered about a small natural amphitheater which
|
|
the jungle had left free from its entangling vines and creepers
|
|
in a hollow among some low hills.
|
|
|
|
The open space was almost circular in shape. Upon every
|
|
hand rose the mighty giants of the untouched forest, with the
|
|
matted undergrowth banked so closely between the huge
|
|
trunks that the only opening into the little, level arena was
|
|
through the upper branches of the trees.
|
|
|
|
Here, safe from interruption, the tribe often gathered. In
|
|
the center of the amphitheater was one of those strange
|
|
earthen drums which the anthropoids build for the queer rites
|
|
the sounds of which men have heard in the fastnesses of the
|
|
jungle, but which none has ever witnessed.
|
|
|
|
Many travelers have seen the drums of the great apes, and
|
|
some have heard the sounds of their beating and the noise of
|
|
the wild, weird revelry of these first lords of the jungle, but
|
|
Tarzan, Lord Greystoke, is, doubtless, the only human being
|
|
who ever joined in the fierce, mad, intoxicating revel of the
|
|
Dum-Dum.
|
|
|
|
From this primitive function has arisen, unquestionably, all
|
|
the forms and ceremonials of modern church and state, for
|
|
through all the countless ages, back beyond the uttermost
|
|
ramparts of a dawning humanity our fierce, hairy forebears
|
|
danced out the rites of the Dum-Dum to the sound of their
|
|
earthen drums, beneath the bright light of a tropical moon in
|
|
the depth of a mighty jungle which stands unchanged today
|
|
as it stood on that long forgotten night in the dim, unthinkable
|
|
vistas of the long dead past when our first shaggy ancestor
|
|
swung from a swaying bough and dropped lightly upon
|
|
the soft turf of the first meeting place.
|
|
|
|
On the day that Tarzan won his emancipation from the
|
|
persecution that had followed him remorselessly for twelve of
|
|
his thirteen years of life, the tribe, now a full hundred strong,
|
|
trooped silently through the lower terrace of the jungle trees
|
|
and dropped noiselessly upon the floor of the amphitheater.
|
|
|
|
The rites of the Dum-Dum marked important events in the
|
|
life of the tribe--a victory, the capture of a prisoner, the
|
|
killing of some large fierce denizen of the jungle, the death or
|
|
accession of a king, and were conducted with set ceremonialism.
|
|
|
|
Today it was the killing of a giant ape, a member of another
|
|
tribe, and as the people of Kerchak entered the arena
|
|
two mighty bulls were seen bearing the body of the
|
|
vanquished between them.
|
|
|
|
They laid their burden before the earthen drum and then
|
|
squatted there beside it as guards, while the other members of
|
|
the community curled themselves in grassy nooks to sleep
|
|
until the rising moon should give the signal for the
|
|
commencement of their savage orgy.
|
|
|
|
For hours absolute quiet reigned in the little clearing,
|
|
except as it was broken by the discordant notes of brilliantly
|
|
feathered parrots, or the screeching and twittering of the
|
|
thousand jungle birds flitting ceaselessly amongst the vivid
|
|
orchids and flamboyant blossoms which festooned the myriad,
|
|
moss-covered branches of the forest kings.
|
|
|
|
At length as darkness settled upon the jungle the apes
|
|
commenced to bestir themselves, and soon they formed a great
|
|
circle about the earthen drum. The females and young squatted
|
|
in a thin line at the outer periphery of the circle, while
|
|
just in front of them ranged the adult males. Before the drum
|
|
sat three old females, each armed with a knotted branch fifteen
|
|
or eighteen inches in length.
|
|
|
|
Slowly and softly they began tapping upon the resounding
|
|
surface of the drum as the first faint rays of the ascending
|
|
moon silvered the encircling tree tops.
|
|
|
|
As the light in the amphitheater increased the females
|
|
augmented the frequency and force of their blows until presently
|
|
a wild, rhythmic din pervaded the great jungle for miles in
|
|
every direction. Huge, fierce brutes stopped in their hunting,
|
|
with up-pricked ears and raised heads, to listen to the dull
|
|
booming that betokened the Dum-Dum of the apes.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally one would raise his shrill scream or thunderous
|
|
roar in answering challenge to the savage din of the
|
|
anthropoids, but none came near to investigate or attack, for
|
|
the great apes, assembled in all the power of their numbers,
|
|
filled the breasts of their jungle neighbors with deep respect.
|
|
|
|
As the din of the drum rose to almost deafening volume
|
|
Kerchak sprang into the open space between the squatting
|
|
males and the drummers.
|
|
|
|
Standing erect he threw his head far back and looking full
|
|
into the eye of the rising moon he beat upon his breast with
|
|
his great hairy paws and emitted his fearful roaring shriek.
|
|
|
|
One--twice--thrice that terrifying cry rang out across the
|
|
teeming solitude of that unspeakably quick, yet unthinkably
|
|
dead, world.
|
|
|
|
Then, crouching, Kerchak slunk noiselessly around the
|
|
open circle, veering far away from the dead body lying before
|
|
the altar-drum, but, as he passed, keeping his little,
|
|
fierce, wicked, red eyes upon the corpse.
|
|
|
|
Another male then sprang into the arena, and, repeating
|
|
the horrid cries of his king, followed stealthily in his wake.
|
|
Another and another followed in quick succession until the
|
|
jungle reverberated with the now almost ceaseless notes of
|
|
their bloodthirsty screams.
|
|
|
|
It was the challenge and the hunt.
|
|
|
|
When all the adult males had joined in the thin line of
|
|
circling dancers the attack commenced.
|
|
|
|
Kerchak, seizing a huge club from the pile which lay at
|
|
hand for the purpose, rushed furiously upon the dead ape,
|
|
dealing the corpse a terrific blow, at the same time emitting
|
|
the growls and snarls of combat. The din of the drum was
|
|
now increased, as well as the frequency of the blows, and the
|
|
warriors, as each approached the victim of the hunt and
|
|
delivered his bludgeon blow, joined in the mad whirl of the
|
|
Death Dance.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was one of the wild, leaping horde. His brown,
|
|
sweat-streaked, muscular body, glistening in the moonlight,
|
|
shone supple and graceful among the uncouth, awkward,
|
|
hairy brutes about him.
|
|
|
|
None was more stealthy in the mimic hunt, none more
|
|
ferocious than he in the wild ferocity of the attack, none
|
|
who leaped so high into the air in the Dance of Death.
|
|
|
|
As the noise and rapidity of the drumbeats increased the
|
|
dancers apparently became intoxicated with the wild rhythm
|
|
and the savage yells. Their leaps and bounds increased, their
|
|
bared fangs dripped saliva, and their lips and breasts were
|
|
flecked with foam.
|
|
|
|
For half an hour the weird dance went on, until, at a sign
|
|
from Kerchak, the noise of the drums ceased, the female
|
|
drummers scampering hurriedly through the line of dancers
|
|
toward the outer rim of squatting spectators. Then, as one,
|
|
the males rushed headlong upon the thing which their terrific
|
|
blows had reduced to a mass of hairy pulp.
|
|
|
|
Flesh seldom came to their jaws in satisfying quantities, so
|
|
a fit finale to their wild revel was a taste of fresh killed meat,
|
|
and it was to the purpose of devouring their late enemy that
|
|
they now turned their attention.
|
|
|
|
Great fangs sunk into the carcass tearing away huge hunks,
|
|
the mightiest of the apes obtaining the choicest morsels,
|
|
while the weaker circled the outer edge of the fighting,
|
|
snarling pack awaiting their chance to dodge in and snatch a
|
|
dropped tidbit or filch a remaining bone before all was gone.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan, more than the apes, craved and needed flesh.
|
|
Descended from a race of meat eaters, never in his life, he
|
|
thought, had he once satisfied his appetite for animal food;
|
|
and so now his agile little body wormed its way far into the
|
|
mass of struggling, rending apes in an endeavor to obtain a
|
|
share which his strength would have been unequal to the task
|
|
of winning for him.
|
|
|
|
At his side hung the hunting knife of his unknown father
|
|
in a sheath self-fashioned in copy of one he had seen among
|
|
the pictures of his treasure-books.
|
|
|
|
At last he reached the fast disappearing feast and with his
|
|
sharp knife slashed off a more generous portion than he had
|
|
hoped for, an entire hairy forearm, where it protruded from
|
|
beneath the feet of the mighty Kerchak, who was so busily
|
|
engaged in perpetuating the royal prerogative of gluttony that
|
|
he failed to note the act of LESE-MAJESTE.
|
|
|
|
So little Tarzan wriggled out from beneath the struggling
|
|
mass, clutching his grisly prize close to his breast.
|
|
|
|
Among those circling futilely the outskirts of the banqueters
|
|
was old Tublat. He had been among the first at the feast,
|
|
but had retreated with a goodly share to eat in quiet, and was
|
|
now forcing his way back for more.
|
|
|
|
So it was that he spied Tarzan as the boy emerged from
|
|
the clawing, pushing throng with that hairy forearm hugged
|
|
firmly to his body.
|
|
|
|
Tublat's little, close-set, bloodshot, pig-eyes shot wicked
|
|
gleams of hate as they fell upon the object of his loathing. In
|
|
them, too, was greed for the toothsome dainty the boy carried.
|
|
|
|
But Tarzan saw his arch enemy as quickly, and divining
|
|
what the great beast would do he leaped nimbly away toward
|
|
the females and the young, hoping to hide himself among
|
|
them. Tublat, however, was close upon his heels, so that he
|
|
had no opportunity to seek a place of concealment, but saw
|
|
that he would be put to it to escape at all.
|
|
|
|
Swiftly he sped toward the surrounding trees and with an
|
|
agile bound gained a lower limb with one hand, and then,
|
|
transferring his burden to his teeth, he climbed rapidly
|
|
upward, closely followed by Tublat.
|
|
|
|
Up, up he went to the waving pinnacle of a lofty monarch
|
|
of the forest where his heavy pursuer dared not follow him.
|
|
There he perched, hurling taunts and insults at the raging,
|
|
foaming beast fifty feet below him.
|
|
|
|
And then Tublat went mad.
|
|
|
|
With horrifying screams and roars he rushed to the
|
|
ground, among the females and young, sinking his great
|
|
fangs into a dozen tiny necks and tearing great pieces from
|
|
the backs and breasts of the females who fell into his
|
|
clutches.
|
|
|
|
In the brilliant moonlight Tarzan witnessed the whole mad
|
|
carnival of rage. He saw the females and the young scamper
|
|
to the safety of the trees. Then the great bulls in the center of
|
|
the arena felt the mighty fangs of their demented fellow, and
|
|
with one accord they melted into the black shadows of the
|
|
overhanging forest.
|
|
|
|
There was but one in the amphitheater beside Tublat, a
|
|
belated female running swiftly toward the tree where Tarzan
|
|
perched, and close behind her came the awful Tublat.
|
|
|
|
It was Kala, and as quickly as Tarzan saw that Tublat was
|
|
gaining on her he dropped with the rapidity of a falling
|
|
stone, from branch to branch, toward his foster mother.
|
|
|
|
Now she was beneath the overhanging limbs and close
|
|
above her crouched Tarzan, waiting the outcome of the race.
|
|
|
|
She leaped into the air grasping a low-hanging branch, but
|
|
almost over the head of Tublat, so nearly had he distanced
|
|
her. She should have been safe now but there was a rending,
|
|
tearing sound, the branch broke and precipitated her full
|
|
upon the head of Tublat, knocking him to the ground.
|
|
|
|
Both were up in an instant, but as quick as they had been
|
|
Tarzan had been quicker, so that the infuriated bull found
|
|
himself facing the man-child who stood between him and Kala.
|
|
|
|
Nothing could have suited the fierce beast better, and with
|
|
a roar of triumph he leaped upon the little Lord Greystoke.
|
|
But his fangs never closed in that nut brown flesh.
|
|
|
|
A muscular hand shot out and grasped the hairy throat,
|
|
and another plunged a keen hunting knife a dozen times into
|
|
the broad breast. Like lightning the blows fell, and only
|
|
ceased when Tarzan felt the limp form crumple beneath him.
|
|
|
|
As the body rolled to the ground Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
placed his foot upon the neck of his lifelong enemy and,
|
|
raising his eyes to the full moon, threw back his fierce young
|
|
head and voiced the wild and terrible cry of his people.
|
|
|
|
One by one the tribe swung down from their arboreal retreats
|
|
and formed a circle about Tarzan and his vanquished
|
|
foe. When they had all come Tarzan turned toward them.
|
|
|
|
"I am Tarzan," he cried. "I am a great killer. Let all
|
|
respect Tarzan of the Apes and Kala, his mother. There be
|
|
none among you as mighty as Tarzan. Let his enemies beware."
|
|
|
|
Looking full into the wicked, red eyes of Kerchak, the
|
|
young Lord Greystoke beat upon his mighty breast and
|
|
screamed out once more his shrill cry of defiance.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 8
|
|
|
|
The Tree-top Hunter
|
|
|
|
The morning after the Dum-Dum the tribe started slowly
|
|
back through the forest toward the coast.
|
|
|
|
The body of Tublat lay where it had fallen, for the people
|
|
of Kerchak do not eat their own dead.
|
|
|
|
The march was but a leisurely search for food. Cabbage
|
|
palm and gray plum, pisang and scitamine they found in
|
|
abundance, with wild pineapple, and occasionally small mammals,
|
|
birds, eggs, reptiles, and insects. The nuts they cracked
|
|
between their powerful jaws, or, if too hard, broke by pounding
|
|
between stones.
|
|
|
|
Once old Sabor, crossing their path, sent them scurrying to
|
|
the safety of the higher branches, for if she respected their
|
|
number and their sharp fangs, they on their part held her
|
|
cruel and mighty ferocity in equal esteem.
|
|
|
|
Upon a low-hanging branch sat Tarzan directly above the
|
|
majestic, supple body as it forged silently through the thick
|
|
jungle. He hurled a pineapple at the ancient enemy of his
|
|
people. The great beast stopped and, turning, eyed the
|
|
taunting figure above her.
|
|
|
|
With an angry lash of her tail she bared her yellow fangs,
|
|
curling her great lips in a hideous snarl that wrinkled her
|
|
bristling snout in serried ridges and closed her wicked eyes to
|
|
two narrow slits of rage and hatred.
|
|
|
|
With back-laid ears she looked straight into the eyes of
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes and sounded her fierce, shrill challenge.
|
|
And from the safety of his overhanging limb the ape-child
|
|
sent back the fearsome answer of his kind.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the two eyed each other in silence, and then
|
|
the great cat turned into the jungle, which swallowed her as
|
|
the ocean engulfs a tossed pebble.
|
|
|
|
But into the mind of Tarzan a great plan sprang. He had
|
|
killed the fierce Tublat, so was he not therefore a mighty
|
|
fighter? Now would he track down the crafty Sabor and slay
|
|
her likewise. He would be a mighty hunter, also.
|
|
|
|
At the bottom of his little English heart beat the great desire
|
|
to cover his nakedness with CLOTHES for he had learned
|
|
from his picture books that all MEN were so covered, while
|
|
MONKEYS and APES and every other living thing went naked.
|
|
|
|
CLOTHES therefore, must be truly a badge of greatness; the
|
|
insignia of the superiority of MAN over all other animals, for
|
|
surely there could be no other reason for wearing the hideous
|
|
things.
|
|
|
|
Many moons ago, when he had been much smaller, he had
|
|
desired the skin of Sabor, the lioness, or Numa, the lion, or
|
|
Sheeta, the leopard to cover his hairless body that he might
|
|
no longer resemble hideous Histah, the snake; but now he
|
|
was proud of his sleek skin for it betokened his descent from
|
|
a mighty race, and the conflicting desires to go naked in
|
|
prideful proof of his ancestry, or to conform to the customs
|
|
of his own kind and wear hideous and uncomfortable apparel
|
|
found first one and then the other in the ascendency.
|
|
|
|
As the tribe continued their slow way through the forest
|
|
after the passing of Sabor, Tarzan's head was filled with
|
|
his great scheme for slaying his enemy, and for many days
|
|
thereafter he thought of little else.
|
|
|
|
On this day, however, he presently had other and more
|
|
immediate interests to attract his attention.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly it became as midnight; the noises of the jungle
|
|
ceased; the trees stood motionless as though in paralyzed
|
|
expectancy of some great and imminent disaster. All nature
|
|
waited--but not for long.
|
|
|
|
Faintly, from a distance, came a low, sad moaning. Nearer
|
|
and nearer it approached, mounting louder and louder in volume.
|
|
|
|
The great trees bent in unison as though pressed earthward
|
|
by a mighty hand. Farther and farther toward the ground
|
|
they inclined, and still there was no sound save the deep and
|
|
awesome moaning of the wind.
|
|
|
|
Then, suddenly, the jungle giants whipped back, lashing
|
|
their mighty tops in angry and deafening protest. A vivid and
|
|
blinding light flashed from the whirling, inky clouds above.
|
|
The deep cannonade of roaring thunder belched forth its fearsome
|
|
challenge. The deluge came--all hell broke loose upon the jungle.
|
|
|
|
The tribe shivering from the cold rain, huddled at the bases
|
|
of great trees. The lightning, darting and flashing through the
|
|
blackness, showed wildly waving branches, whipping streamers
|
|
and bending trunks.
|
|
|
|
Now and again some ancient patriarch of the woods, rent
|
|
by a flashing bolt, would crash in a thousand pieces among
|
|
the surrounding trees, carrying down numberless branches
|
|
and many smaller neighbors to add to the tangled confusion
|
|
of the tropical jungle.
|
|
|
|
Branches, great and small, torn away by the ferocity of the
|
|
tornado, hurtled through the wildly waving verdure, carrying
|
|
death and destruction to countless unhappy denizens of the
|
|
thickly peopled world below.
|
|
|
|
For hours the fury of the storm continued without surcease,
|
|
and still the tribe huddled close in shivering fear.
|
|
In constant danger from falling trunks and branches and
|
|
paralyzed by the vivid flashing of lightning and the
|
|
bellowing of thunder they crouched in pitiful misery until
|
|
the storm passed.
|
|
|
|
The end was as sudden as the beginning. The wind ceased,
|
|
the sun shone forth--nature smiled once more.
|
|
|
|
The dripping leaves and branches, and the moist petals of
|
|
gorgeous flowers glistened in the splendor of the returning day.
|
|
And, so--as Nature forgot, her children forgot also. Busy life
|
|
went on as it had been before the darkness and the fright.
|
|
|
|
But to Tarzan a dawning light had come to explain the
|
|
mystery of CLOTHES. How snug he would have been beneath
|
|
the heavy coat of Sabor! And so was added a further incentive
|
|
to the adventure.
|
|
|
|
For several months the tribe hovered near the beach where
|
|
stood Tarzan's cabin, and his studies took up the greater
|
|
portion of his time, but always when journeying through the
|
|
forest he kept his rope in readiness, and many were the smaller
|
|
animals that fell into the snare of the quick thrown noose.
|
|
|
|
Once it fell about the short neck of Horta, the boar, and
|
|
his mad lunge for freedom toppled Tarzan from the overhanging
|
|
limb where he had lain in wait and from whence he
|
|
had launched his sinuous coil.
|
|
|
|
The mighty tusker turned at the sound of his falling body,
|
|
and, seeing only the easy prey of a young ape, he lowered his
|
|
head and charged madly at the surprised youth.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan, happily, was uninjured by the fall, alighting catlike
|
|
upon all fours far outspread to take up the shock. He was on
|
|
his feet in an instant and, leaping with the agility of the
|
|
monkey he was, he gained the safety of a low limb as Horta,
|
|
the boar, rushed futilely beneath.
|
|
|
|
Thus it was that Tarzan learned by experience the limitations
|
|
as well as the possibilities of his strange weapon.
|
|
|
|
He lost a long rope on this occasion, but he knew that had
|
|
it been Sabor who had thus dragged him from his perch the
|
|
outcome might have been very different, for he would have
|
|
lost his life, doubtless, into the bargain.
|
|
|
|
It took him many days to braid a new rope, but when,
|
|
finally, it was done he went forth purposely to hunt, and lie
|
|
in wait among the dense foliage of a great branch right above
|
|
the well-beaten trail that led to water.
|
|
|
|
Several small animals passed unharmed beneath him. He did
|
|
not want such insignificant game. It would take a strong
|
|
animal to test the efficacy of his new scheme.
|
|
|
|
At last came she whom Tarzan sought, with lithe sinews
|
|
rolling beneath shimmering hide; fat and glossy came Sabor,
|
|
the lioness.
|
|
|
|
Her great padded feet fell soft and noiseless on the narrow
|
|
trail. Her head was high in ever alert attention; her long tail
|
|
moved slowly in sinuous and graceful undulations.
|
|
|
|
Nearer and nearer she came to where Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
crouched upon his limb, the coils of his long rope poised
|
|
ready in his hand.
|
|
|
|
Like a thing of bronze, motionless as death, sat Tarzan.
|
|
Sabor passed beneath. One stride beyond she took--a second,
|
|
a third, and then the silent coil shot out above her.
|
|
|
|
For an instant the spreading noose hung above her head
|
|
like a great snake, and then, as she looked upward to detect
|
|
the origin of the swishing sound of the rope, it settled about
|
|
her neck. With a quick jerk Tarzan snapped the noose tight
|
|
about the glossy throat, and then he dropped the rope and
|
|
clung to his support with both hands.
|
|
|
|
Sabor was trapped.
|
|
|
|
With a bound the startled beast turned into the jungle, but
|
|
Tarzan was not to lose another rope through the same cause
|
|
as the first. He had learned from experience. The lioness had
|
|
taken but half her second bound when she felt the rope
|
|
tighten about her neck; her body turned completely over in
|
|
the air and she fell with a heavy crash upon her back. Tarzan
|
|
had fastened the end of the rope securely to the trunk of the
|
|
great tree on which he sat.
|
|
|
|
Thus far his plan had worked to perfection, but when he
|
|
grasped the rope, bracing himself behind a crotch of two
|
|
mighty branches, he found that dragging the mighty, struggling,
|
|
clawing, biting, screaming mass of iron-muscled fury up to
|
|
the tree and hanging her was a very different proposition.
|
|
|
|
The weight of old Sabor was immense, and when she braced
|
|
her huge paws nothing less than Tantor, the elephant,
|
|
himself, could have budged her.
|
|
|
|
The lioness was now back in the path where she could see
|
|
the author of the indignity which had been placed upon her.
|
|
Screaming with rage she suddenly charged, leaping high into
|
|
the air toward Tarzan, but when her huge body struck the
|
|
limb on which Tarzan had been, Tarzan was no longer there.
|
|
|
|
Instead he perched lightly upon a smaller branch twenty
|
|
feet above the raging captive. For a moment Sabor hung half
|
|
across the branch, while Tarzan mocked, and hurled twigs
|
|
and branches at her unprotected face.
|
|
|
|
Presently the beast dropped to the earth again and Tarzan
|
|
came quickly to seize the rope, but Sabor had now found that
|
|
it was only a slender cord that held her, and grasping it in
|
|
her huge jaws severed it before Tarzan could tighten the
|
|
strangling noose a second time.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was much hurt. His well-laid plan had come to
|
|
naught, so he sat there screaming at the roaring creature
|
|
beneath him and making mocking grimaces at it.
|
|
|
|
Sabor paced back and forth beneath the tree for hours;
|
|
four times she crouched and sprang at the dancing sprite
|
|
above her, but might as well have clutched at the illusive
|
|
wind that murmured through the tree tops.
|
|
|
|
At last Tarzan tired of the sport, and with a parting roar
|
|
of challenge and a well-aimed ripe fruit that spread soft and
|
|
sticky over the snarling face of his enemy, he swung rapidly
|
|
through the trees, a hundred feet above the ground, and in a
|
|
short time was among the members of his tribe.
|
|
|
|
Here he recounted the details of his adventure, with swelling
|
|
chest and so considerable swagger that he quite impressed
|
|
even his bitterest enemies, while Kala fairly danced for joy
|
|
and pride.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 9
|
|
|
|
Man and Man
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes lived on in his wild, jungle existence
|
|
with little change for several years, only that he grew
|
|
stronger and wiser, and learned from his books more and
|
|
more of the strange worlds which lay somewhere outside his
|
|
primeval forest.
|
|
|
|
To him life was never monotonous or stale. There was always
|
|
Pisah, the fish, to be caught in the many streams and the
|
|
little lakes, and Sabor, with her ferocious cousins to keep
|
|
one ever on the alert and give zest to every instant that one
|
|
spent upon the ground.
|
|
|
|
Often they hunted him, and more often he hunted them,
|
|
but though they never quite reached him with those cruel,
|
|
sharp claws of theirs, yet there were times when one could
|
|
scarce have passed a thick leaf between their talons and his
|
|
smooth hide.
|
|
|
|
Quick was Sabor, the lioness, and quick were Numa and
|
|
Sheeta, but Tarzan of the Apes was lightning.
|
|
|
|
With Tantor, the elephant, he made friends. How? Ask not.
|
|
But this is known to the denizens of the jungle, that on
|
|
many moonlight nights Tarzan of the Apes and Tantor, the
|
|
elephant, walked together, and where the way was clear Tarzan
|
|
rode, perched high upon Tantor's mighty back.
|
|
|
|
Many days during these years he spent in the cabin of his
|
|
father, where still lay, untouched, the bones of his parents
|
|
and the skeleton of Kala's baby. At eighteen he read
|
|
fluently and understood nearly all he read in the many and
|
|
varied volumes on the shelves.
|
|
|
|
Also could he write, with printed letters, rapidly and plainly,
|
|
but script he had not mastered, for though there were several
|
|
copy books among his treasure, there was so little written
|
|
English in the cabin that he saw no use for bothering with this
|
|
other form of writing, though he could read it, laboriously.
|
|
|
|
Thus, at eighteen, we find him, an English lordling, who
|
|
could speak no English, and yet who could read and write his
|
|
native language. Never had he seen a human being other
|
|
than himself, for the little area traversed by his tribe was
|
|
watered by no greater river to bring down the savage natives of
|
|
the interior.
|
|
|
|
High hills shut it off on three sides, the ocean on the
|
|
fourth. It was alive with lions and leopards and poisonous
|
|
snakes. Its untouched mazes of matted jungle had as yet
|
|
invited no hardy pioneer from the human beasts beyond its
|
|
frontier.
|
|
|
|
But as Tarzan of the Apes sat one day in the cabin of his
|
|
father delving into the mysteries of a new book, the ancient
|
|
security of his jungle was broken forever.
|
|
|
|
At the far eastern confine a strange cavalcade strung, in
|
|
single file, over the brow of a low hill.
|
|
|
|
In advance were fifty black warriors armed with slender
|
|
wooden spears with ends hard baked over slow fires, and long
|
|
bows and poisoned arrows. On their backs were oval shields,
|
|
in their noses huge rings, while from the kinky wool of their
|
|
heads protruded tufts of gay feathers.
|
|
|
|
Across their foreheads were tattooed three parallel lines of
|
|
color, and on each breast three concentric circles. Their
|
|
yellow teeth were filed to sharp points, and their great
|
|
protruding lips added still further to the low and bestial
|
|
brutishness of their appearance.
|
|
|
|
Following them were several hundred women and children,
|
|
the former bearing upon their heads great burdens of cooking
|
|
pots, household utensils and ivory. In the rear were a
|
|
hundred warriors, similar in all respects to the advance guard.
|
|
|
|
That they more greatly feared an attack from the rear than
|
|
whatever unknown enemies lurked in their advance was
|
|
evidenced by the formation of the column; and such was the
|
|
fact, for they were fleeing from the white man's soldiers who
|
|
had so harassed them for rubber and ivory that they had
|
|
turned upon their conquerors one day and massacred a white
|
|
officer and a small detachment of his black troops.
|
|
|
|
For many days they had gorged themselves on meat, but
|
|
eventually a stronger body of troops had come and fallen upon
|
|
their village by night to revenge the death of their comrades.
|
|
|
|
That night the black soldiers of the white man had had
|
|
meat a-plenty, and this little remnant of a once powerful
|
|
tribe had slunk off into the gloomy jungle toward the
|
|
unknown, and freedom.
|
|
|
|
But that which meant freedom and the pursuit of happiness
|
|
to these savage blacks meant consternation and death to
|
|
many of the wild denizens of their new home.
|
|
|
|
For three days the little cavalcade marched slowly through
|
|
the heart of this unknown and untracked forest, until finally,
|
|
early in the fourth day, they came upon a little spot near the
|
|
banks of a small river, which seemed less thickly overgrown
|
|
than any ground they had yet encountered.
|
|
|
|
Here they set to work to build a new village, and in a
|
|
month a great clearing had been made, huts and palisades
|
|
erected, plantains, yams and maize planted, and they had
|
|
taken up their old life in their new home. Here there were no
|
|
white men, no soldiers, nor any rubber or ivory to be gathered
|
|
for cruel and thankless taskmasters.
|
|
|
|
Several moons passed by ere the blacks ventured far into
|
|
the territory surrounding their new village. Several had
|
|
already fallen prey to old Sabor, and because the jungle was so
|
|
infested with these fierce and bloodthirsty cats, and with lions
|
|
and leopards, the ebony warriors hesitated to trust themselves
|
|
far from the safety of their palisades.
|
|
|
|
But one day, Kulonga, a son of the old king, Mbonga,
|
|
wandered far into the dense mazes to the west. Warily he
|
|
stepped, his slender lance ever ready, his long oval shield
|
|
firmly grasped in his left hand close to his sleek ebony body.
|
|
|
|
At his back his bow, and in the quiver upon his shield
|
|
many slim, straight arrows, well smeared with the thick, dark,
|
|
tarry substance that rendered deadly their tiniest needle prick.
|
|
|
|
Night found Kulonga far from the palisades of his father's
|
|
village, but still headed westward, and climbing into the fork
|
|
of a great tree he fashioned a rude platform and curled himself
|
|
for sleep.
|
|
|
|
Three miles to the west slept the tribe of Kerchak.
|
|
|
|
Early the next morning the apes were astir, moving
|
|
through the jungle in search of food. Tarzan, as was his
|
|
custom, prosecuted his search in the direction of the cabin so
|
|
that by leisurely hunting on the way his stomach was filled by
|
|
the time he reached the beach.
|
|
|
|
The apes scattered by ones, and twos, and threes in all
|
|
directions, but ever within sound of a signal of alarm.
|
|
|
|
Kala had moved slowly along an elephant track toward the
|
|
east, and was busily engaged in turning over rotted limbs and
|
|
logs in search of succulent bugs and fungi, when the faintest
|
|
shadow of a strange noise brought her to startled attention.
|
|
|
|
For fifty yards before her the trail was straight, and down
|
|
this leafy tunnel she saw the stealthy advancing figure of a
|
|
strange and fearful creature.
|
|
|
|
It was Kulonga.
|
|
|
|
Kala did not wait to see more, but, turning, moved rapidly back
|
|
along the trail. She did not run; but, after the manner of her
|
|
kind when not aroused, sought rather to avoid than to escape.
|
|
|
|
Close after her came Kulonga. Here was meat. He could
|
|
make a killing and feast well this day. On he hurried, his
|
|
spear poised for the throw.
|
|
|
|
At a turning of the trail he came in sight of her again
|
|
upon another straight stretch. His spear hand went far back
|
|
the muscles rolled, lightning-like, beneath the sleek hide. Out
|
|
shot the arm, and the spear sped toward Kala.
|
|
|
|
A poor cast. It but grazed her side.
|
|
|
|
With a cry of rage and pain the she-ape turned upon her
|
|
tormentor. In an instant the trees were crashing beneath the
|
|
weight of her hurrying fellows, swinging rapidly toward the
|
|
scene of trouble in answer to Kala's scream.
|
|
|
|
As she charged, Kulonga unslung his bow and fitted an
|
|
arrow with almost unthinkable quickness. Drawing the shaft
|
|
far back he drove the poisoned missile straight into the heart
|
|
of the great anthropoid.
|
|
|
|
With a horrid scream Kala plunged forward upon her face
|
|
before the astonished members of her tribe.
|
|
|
|
Roaring and shrieking the apes dashed toward Kulonga,
|
|
but that wary savage was fleeing down the trail like a
|
|
frightened antelope.
|
|
|
|
He knew something of the ferocity of these wild, hairy
|
|
men, and his one desire was to put as many miles between
|
|
himself and them as he possibly could.
|
|
|
|
They followed him, racing through the trees, for a long
|
|
distance, but finally one by one they abandoned the chase
|
|
and returned to the scene of the tragedy.
|
|
|
|
None of them had ever seen a man before, other than Tarzan,
|
|
and so they wondered vaguely what strange manner of
|
|
creature it might be that had invaded their jungle.
|
|
|
|
On the far beach by the little cabin Tarzan heard the faint
|
|
echoes of the conflict and knowing that something was
|
|
seriously amiss among the tribe he hastened rapidly toward the
|
|
direction of the sound.
|
|
|
|
When he arrived he found the entire tribe gathered jabbering
|
|
about the dead body of his slain mother.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan's grief and anger were unbounded. He roared out
|
|
his hideous challenge time and again. He beat upon his great
|
|
chest with his clenched fists, and then he fell upon the body
|
|
of Kala and sobbed out the pitiful sorrowing of his lonely heart.
|
|
|
|
To lose the only creature in all his world who ever had
|
|
manifested love and affection for him was the greatest
|
|
tragedy he had ever known.
|
|
|
|
What though Kala was a fierce and hideous ape! To Tarzan
|
|
she had been kind, she had been beautiful.
|
|
|
|
Upon her he had lavished, unknown to himself, all the
|
|
reverence and respect and love that a normal English boy
|
|
feels for his own mother. He had never known another, and
|
|
so to Kala was given, though mutely, all that would have
|
|
belonged to the fair and lovely Lady Alice had she lived.
|
|
|
|
After the first outburst of grief Tarzan controlled himself,
|
|
and questioning the members of the tribe who had witnessed
|
|
the killing of Kala he learned all that their meager vocabulary
|
|
could convey.
|
|
|
|
It was enough, however, for his needs. It told him of a
|
|
strange, hairless, black ape with feathers growing upon its
|
|
head, who launched death from a slender branch, and then ran,
|
|
with the fleetness of Bara, the deer, toward the rising sun.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan waited no longer, but leaping into the branches of the
|
|
trees sped rapidly through the forest. He knew the windings
|
|
of the elephant trail along which Kala's murderer had
|
|
flown, and so he cut straight through the jungle to intercept
|
|
the black warrior who was evidently following the tortuous
|
|
detours of the trail.
|
|
|
|
At his side was the hunting knife of his unknown sire, and
|
|
across his shoulders the coils of his own long rope. In an
|
|
hour he struck the trail again, and coming to earth examined
|
|
the soil minutely.
|
|
|
|
In the soft mud on the bank of a tiny rivulet he found
|
|
footprints such as he alone in all the jungle had ever made,
|
|
but much larger than his. His heart beat fast. Could it be
|
|
that he was trailing a MAN--one of his own race?
|
|
|
|
There were two sets of imprints pointing in opposite directions.
|
|
So his quarry had already passed on his return along the
|
|
trail. As he examined the newer spoor a tiny particle of
|
|
earth toppled from the outer edge of one of the footprints to
|
|
the bottom of its shallow depression--ah, the trail was very
|
|
fresh, his prey must have but scarcely passed.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan swung himself to the trees once more, and with
|
|
swift noiselessness sped along high above the trail.
|
|
|
|
He had covered barely a mile when he came upon the
|
|
black warrior standing in a little open space. In his hand
|
|
was his slender bow to which he had fitted one of his death
|
|
dealing arrows.
|
|
|
|
Opposite him across the little clearing stood Horta, the
|
|
boar, with lowered head and foam flecked tucks, ready to
|
|
charge.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan looked with wonder upon the strange creature beneath
|
|
him--so like him in form and yet so different in face
|
|
and color. His books had portrayed the NEGRO, but how
|
|
different had been the dull, dead print to this sleek thing of
|
|
ebony, pulsing with life.
|
|
|
|
As the man stood there with taut drawn bow Tarzan recognized him
|
|
not so much the NEGRO as the ARCHER of his picture book--
|
|
|
|
A stands for Archer
|
|
|
|
How wonderful! Tarzan almost betrayed his presence in
|
|
the deep excitement of his discovery.
|
|
|
|
But things were commencing to happen below him. The sinewy
|
|
black arm had drawn the shaft far back; Horta, the
|
|
boar, was charging, and then the black released the little
|
|
poisoned arrow, and Tarzan saw it fly with the quickness of
|
|
thought and lodge in the bristling neck of the boar.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had the shaft left his bow ere Kulonga had fitted
|
|
another to it, but Horta, the boar, was upon him so quickly
|
|
that he had no time to discharge it. With a bound the black
|
|
leaped entirely over the rushing beast and turning with
|
|
incredible swiftness planted a second arrow in Horta's back.
|
|
|
|
Then Kulonga sprang into a near-by tree.
|
|
|
|
Horta wheeled to charge his enemy once more; a dozen steps
|
|
he took, then he staggered and fell upon his side. For a
|
|
moment his muscles stiffened and relaxed convulsively, then
|
|
he lay still.
|
|
|
|
Kulonga came down from his tree.
|
|
|
|
With a knife that hung at his side he cut several large
|
|
pieces from the boar's body, and in the center of the trail he
|
|
built a fire, cooking and eating as much as he wanted. The
|
|
rest he left where it had fallen.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was an interested spectator. His desire to kill
|
|
burned fiercely in his wild breast, but his desire to learn
|
|
was even greater. He would follow this savage creature for a
|
|
while and know from whence he came. He could kill him at
|
|
his leisure later, when the bow and deadly arrows were laid
|
|
aside.
|
|
|
|
When Kulonga had finished his repast and disappeared beyond
|
|
a near turning of the path, Tarzan dropped quietly to
|
|
the ground. With his knife he severed many strips of meat
|
|
from Horta's carcass, but he did not cook them.
|
|
|
|
He had seen fire, but only when Ara, the lightning, had
|
|
destroyed some great tree. That any creature of the jungle
|
|
could produce the red-and-yellow fangs which devoured
|
|
wood and left nothing but fine dust surprised Tarzan greatly,
|
|
and why the black warrior had ruined his delicious repast by
|
|
plunging it into the blighting heat was quite beyond him.
|
|
Possibly Ara was a friend with whom the Archer was sharing his food.
|
|
|
|
But, be that as it may, Tarzan would not ruin good meat in
|
|
any such foolish manner, so he gobbled down a great quantity
|
|
of the raw flesh, burying the balance of the carcass beside
|
|
the trail where he could find it upon his return.
|
|
|
|
And then Lord Greystoke wiped his greasy fingers upon
|
|
his naked thighs and took up the trail of Kulonga, the son of
|
|
Mbonga, the king; while in far-off London another Lord
|
|
Greystoke, the younger brother of the real Lord Greystoke's
|
|
father, sent back his chops to the club's CHEF because they
|
|
were underdone, and when he had finished his repast he
|
|
dipped his finger-ends into a silver bowl of scented water
|
|
and dried them upon a piece of snowy damask.
|
|
|
|
All day Tarzan followed Kulonga, hovering above him in
|
|
the trees like some malign spirit. Twice more he saw him
|
|
hurl his arrows of destruction--once at Dango, the hyena,
|
|
and again at Manu, the monkey. In each instance the animal
|
|
died almost instantly, for Kulonga's poison was very fresh
|
|
and very deadly.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan thought much on this wondrous method of slaying
|
|
as he swung slowly along at a safe distance behind his
|
|
quarry. He knew that alone the tiny prick of the arrow could
|
|
not so quickly dispatch these wild things of the jungle, who
|
|
were often torn and scratched and gored in a frightful manner
|
|
as they fought with their jungle neighbors, yet as often
|
|
recovered as not.
|
|
|
|
No, there was something mysterious connected with these
|
|
tiny slivers of wood which could bring death by a mere
|
|
scratch. He must look into the matter.
|
|
|
|
That night Kulonga slept in the crotch of a mighty tree
|
|
and far above him crouched Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
When Kulonga awoke he found that his bow and arrows
|
|
had disappeared. The black warrior was furious and
|
|
frightened, but more frightened than furious. He searched
|
|
the ground below the tree, and he searched the tree above the
|
|
ground; but there was no sign of either bow or arrows or of
|
|
the nocturnal marauder.
|
|
|
|
Kulonga was panic-stricken. His spear he had hurled at
|
|
Kala and had not recovered; and, now that his bow and arrows
|
|
were gone, he was defenseless except for a single knife.
|
|
His only hope lay in reaching the village of Mbonga as
|
|
quickly as his legs would carry him.
|
|
|
|
That he was not far from home he was certain, so he took
|
|
the trail at a rapid trot.
|
|
|
|
From a great mass of impenetrable foliage a few yards
|
|
away emerged Tarzan of the Apes to swing quietly in his wake.
|
|
|
|
Kulonga's bow and arrows were securely tied high in the
|
|
top of a giant tree from which a patch of bark had been
|
|
removed by a sharp knife near to the ground, and a branch
|
|
half cut through and left hanging about fifty feet higher up.
|
|
Thus Tarzan blazed the forest trails and marked his caches.
|
|
|
|
As Kulonga continued his journey Tarzan closed on him
|
|
until he traveled almost over the black's head. His rope he
|
|
now held coiled in his right hand; he was almost ready for
|
|
the kill.
|
|
|
|
The moment was delayed only because Tarzan was anxious to
|
|
ascertain the black warrior's destination, and presently he
|
|
was rewarded, for they came suddenly in view of a great
|
|
clearing, at one end of which lay many strange lairs.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was directly over Kulonga, as he made the discovery.
|
|
The forest ended abruptly and beyond lay two hundred
|
|
yards of planted fields between the jungle and the village.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan must act quickly or his prey would be gone; but
|
|
Tarzan's life training left so little space between decision and
|
|
action when an emergency confronted him that there was not
|
|
even room for the shadow of a thought between.
|
|
|
|
So it was that as Kulonga emerged from the shadow of the
|
|
jungle a slender coil of rope sped sinuously above him from
|
|
the lowest branch of a mighty tree directly upon the edge of
|
|
the fields of Mbonga, and ere the king's son had taken a half
|
|
dozen steps into the clearing a quick noose tightened about
|
|
his neck.
|
|
|
|
So quickly did Tarzan of the Apes drag back his prey that
|
|
Kulonga's cry of alarm was throttled in his windpipe. Hand
|
|
over hand Tarzan drew the struggling black until he had him
|
|
hanging by his neck in mid-air; then Tarzan climbed to a
|
|
larger branch drawing the still threshing victim well up into
|
|
the sheltering verdure of the tree.
|
|
|
|
Here he fastened the rope securely to a stout branch, and
|
|
then, descending, plunged his hunting knife into Kulonga's
|
|
heart. Kala was avenged.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan examined the black minutely, for he had never
|
|
seen any other human being. The knife with its sheath and
|
|
belt caught his eye; he appropriated them. A copper anklet
|
|
also took his fancy, and this he transferred to his own leg.
|
|
|
|
He examined and admired the tattooing on the forehead
|
|
and breast. He marveled at the sharp filed teeth.
|
|
He investigated and appropriated the feathered headdress,
|
|
and then he prepared to get down to business, for Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes was hungry, and here was meat; meat of the kill,
|
|
which jungle ethics permitted him to eat.
|
|
|
|
How may we judge him, by what standards, this ape-man
|
|
with the heart and head and body of an English gentleman,
|
|
and the training of a wild beast?
|
|
|
|
Tublat, whom he had hated and who had hated him, he
|
|
had killed in a fair fight, and yet never had the thought of
|
|
eating Tublat's flesh entered his head. It could have been as
|
|
revolting to him as is cannibalism to us.
|
|
|
|
But who was Kulonga that he might not be eaten as fairly
|
|
as Horta, the boar, or Bara, the deer? Was he not simply
|
|
another of the countless wild things of the jungle who preyed
|
|
upon one another to satisfy the cravings of hunger?
|
|
|
|
Suddenly, a strange doubt stayed his hand. Had not his
|
|
books taught him that he was a man? And was not The
|
|
Archer a man, also?
|
|
|
|
Did men eat men? Alas, he did not know. Why, then, this
|
|
hesitancy! Once more he essayed the effort, but a qualm of
|
|
nausea overwhelmed him. He did not understand.
|
|
|
|
All he knew was that he could not eat the flesh of this
|
|
black man, and thus hereditary instinct, ages old, usurped the
|
|
functions of his untaught mind and saved him from transgressing
|
|
a worldwide law of whose very existence he was ignorant.
|
|
|
|
Quickly he lowered Kulonga's body to the ground, removed
|
|
the noose, and took to the trees again.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 10
|
|
|
|
The Fear-Phantom
|
|
|
|
From a lofty perch Tarzan viewed the village of thatched
|
|
huts across the intervening plantation.
|
|
|
|
He saw that at one point the forest touched the village, and
|
|
to this spot he made his way, lured by a fever of curiosity
|
|
to behold animals of his own kind, and to learn more of
|
|
their ways and view the strange lairs in which they lived.
|
|
|
|
His savage life among the fierce wild brutes of the jungle
|
|
left no opening for any thought that these could be aught else
|
|
than enemies. Similarity of form led him into no erroneous
|
|
conception of the welcome that would be accorded him
|
|
should he be discovered by these, the first of his own kind he
|
|
had ever seen.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was no sentimentalist. He knew nothing
|
|
of the brotherhood of man. All things outside his own
|
|
tribe were his deadly enemies, with the few exceptions of
|
|
which Tantor, the elephant, was a marked example.
|
|
|
|
And he realized all this without malice or hatred. To kill
|
|
was the law of the wild world he knew. Few were his primitive
|
|
pleasures, but the greatest of these was to hunt and kill,
|
|
and so he accorded to others the right to cherish the same
|
|
desires as he, even though he himself might be the object of
|
|
their hunt.
|
|
|
|
His strange life had left him neither morose nor bloodthirsty.
|
|
That he joyed in killing, and that he killed with a joyous
|
|
laugh upon his handsome lips betokened no innate cruelty.
|
|
He killed for food most often, but, being a man, he sometimes
|
|
killed for pleasure, a thing which no other animal does;
|
|
for it has remained for man alone among all creatures to kill
|
|
senselessly and wantonly for the mere pleasure of inflicting
|
|
suffering and death.
|
|
|
|
And when he killed for revenge, or in self-defense, he did
|
|
that also without hysteria, for it was a very businesslike
|
|
proceeding which admitted of no levity.
|
|
|
|
So it was that now, as he cautiously approached the village of
|
|
Mbonga, he was quite prepared either to kill or be killed should
|
|
he be discovered. He proceeded with unwonted stealth, for Kulonga
|
|
had taught him great respect for the little sharp splinters of
|
|
wood which dealt death so swiftly and unerringly.
|
|
|
|
At length he came to a great tree, heavy laden with thick
|
|
foliage and loaded with pendant loops of giant creepers.
|
|
From this almost impenetrable bower above the village he
|
|
crouched, looking down upon the scene below him, wondering
|
|
over every feature of this new, strange life.
|
|
|
|
There were naked children running and playing in the village
|
|
street. There were women grinding dried plantain in
|
|
crude stone mortars, while others were fashioning cakes from
|
|
the powdered flour. Out in the fields he could see still other
|
|
women hoeing, weeding, or gathering.
|
|
|
|
All wore strange protruding girdles of dried grass about
|
|
their hips and many were loaded with brass and copper
|
|
anklets, armlets and bracelets. Around many a dusky neck hung
|
|
curiously coiled strands of wire, while several were further
|
|
ornamented by huge nose rings.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes looked with growing wonder at these
|
|
strange creatures. Dozing in the shade he saw several men,
|
|
while at the extreme outskirts of the clearing he occasionally
|
|
caught glimpses of armed warriors apparently guarding the
|
|
village against surprise from an attacking enemy.
|
|
|
|
He noticed that the women alone worked. Nowhere was
|
|
there evidence of a man tilling the fields or performing
|
|
any of the homely duties of the village.
|
|
|
|
Finally his eyes rested upon a woman directly beneath him.
|
|
|
|
Before her was a small cauldron standing over a low fire
|
|
and in it bubbled a thick, reddish, tarry mass. On one side of
|
|
her lay a quantity of wooden arrows the points of which she
|
|
dipped into the seething substance, then laying them upon a
|
|
narrow rack of boughs which stood upon her other side.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was fascinated. Here was the secret of
|
|
the terrible destructiveness of The Archer's tiny missiles.
|
|
He noted the extreme care which the woman took that none of
|
|
the matter should touch her hands, and once when a particle
|
|
spattered upon one of her fingers he saw her plunge the
|
|
member into a vessel of water and quickly rub the tiny stain
|
|
away with a handful of leaves.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan knew nothing of poison, but his shrewd reasoning
|
|
told him that it was this deadly stuff that killed, and not the
|
|
little arrow, which was merely the messenger that carried it
|
|
into the body of its victim.
|
|
|
|
How he should like to have more of those little death-dealing
|
|
slivers. If the woman would only leave her work for an
|
|
instant he could drop down, gather up a handful, and be
|
|
back in the tree again before she drew three breaths.
|
|
|
|
As he was trying to think out some plan to distract her
|
|
attention he heard a wild cry from across the clearing. He
|
|
looked and saw a black warrior standing beneath the very
|
|
tree in which he had killed the murderer of Kala an hour before.
|
|
|
|
The fellow was shouting and waving his spear above his
|
|
head. Now and again he would point to something on the
|
|
ground before him.
|
|
|
|
The village was in an uproar instantly. Armed men rushed
|
|
from the interior of many a hut and raced madly across the
|
|
clearing toward the excited sentry. After them trooped the
|
|
old men, and the women and children until, in a moment, the
|
|
village was deserted.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes knew that they had found the body of
|
|
his victim, but that interested him far less than the fact that
|
|
no one remained in the village to prevent his taking a supply
|
|
of the arrows which lay below him.
|
|
|
|
Quickly and noiselessly he dropped to the ground beside
|
|
the cauldron of poison. For a moment he stood motionless,
|
|
his quick, bright eyes scanning the interior of the palisade.
|
|
|
|
No one was in sight. His eyes rested upon the open doorway
|
|
of a nearby hut. He would take a look within, thought Tarzan,
|
|
and so, cautiously, he approached the low thatched building.
|
|
|
|
For a moment he stood without, listening intently. There was
|
|
no sound, and he glided into the semi-darkness of the interior.
|
|
|
|
Weapons hung against the walls--long spears, strangely
|
|
shaped knives, a couple of narrow shields. In the center of
|
|
the room was a cooking pot, and at the far end a litter of dry
|
|
grasses covered by woven mats which evidently served the
|
|
owners as beds and bedding. Several human skulls lay upon
|
|
the floor.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes felt of each article, hefted the spears,
|
|
smelled of them, for he "saw" largely through his sensitive
|
|
and highly trained nostrils. He determined to own one of
|
|
these long, pointed sticks, but he could not take one on this
|
|
trip because of the arrows he meant to carry.
|
|
|
|
As he took each article from the walls, he placed it in a
|
|
pile in the center of the room. On top of all he placed the
|
|
cooking pot, inverted, and on top of this he laid one of the
|
|
grinning skulls, upon which he fastened the headdress of the
|
|
dead Kulonga.
|
|
|
|
Then he stood back, surveyed his work, and grinned.
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes enjoyed a joke.
|
|
|
|
But now he heard, outside, the sounds of many voices, and
|
|
long mournful howls, and mighty wailing. He was startled.
|
|
Had he remained too long? Quickly he reached the doorway
|
|
and peered down the village street toward the village gate.
|
|
|
|
The natives were not yet in sight, though he could plainly
|
|
hear them approaching across the plantation. They must be
|
|
very near.
|
|
|
|
Like a flash he sprang across the opening to the pile of arrows.
|
|
Gathering up all he could carry under one arm, he overturned
|
|
the seething cauldron with a kick, and disappeared into
|
|
the foliage above just as the first of the returning natives
|
|
entered the gate at the far end of the village street. Then he
|
|
turned to watch the proceeding below, poised like some wild
|
|
bird ready to take swift wing at the first sign of danger.
|
|
|
|
The natives filed up the street, four of them bearing the
|
|
dead body of Kulonga. Behind trailed the women, uttering
|
|
strange cries and weird lamentation. On they came to the
|
|
portals of Kulonga's hut, the very one in which Tarzan had
|
|
wrought his depredations.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had half a dozen entered the building ere they
|
|
came rushing out in wild, jabbering confusion. The others
|
|
hastened to gather about. There was much excited gesticulating,
|
|
pointing, and chattering; then several of the warriors
|
|
approached and peered within.
|
|
|
|
Finally an old fellow with many ornaments of metal about
|
|
his arms and legs, and a necklace of dried human hands
|
|
depending upon his chest, entered the hut.
|
|
|
|
It was Mbonga, the king, father of Kulonga.
|
|
|
|
For a few moments all was silent. Then Mbonga emerged,
|
|
a look of mingled wrath and superstitious fear writ upon his
|
|
hideous countenance. He spoke a few words to the assembled
|
|
warriors, and in an instant the men were flying through the
|
|
little village searching minutely every hut and corner within
|
|
the palisades.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had the search commenced than the overturned
|
|
cauldron was discovered, and with it the theft of the poisoned
|
|
arrows. Nothing more they found, and it was a thoroughly
|
|
awed and frightened group of savages which huddled around
|
|
their king a few moments later.
|
|
|
|
Mbonga could explain nothing of the strange events that
|
|
had taken place. The finding of the still warm body of
|
|
Kulonga--on the very verge of their fields and within easy
|
|
earshot of the village--knifed and stripped at the door of
|
|
his father's home, was in itself sufficiently mysterious, but
|
|
these last awesome discoveries within the village, within the
|
|
dead Kulonga's own hut, filled their hearts with dismay, and
|
|
conjured in their poor brains only the most frightful of
|
|
superstitious explanations.
|
|
|
|
They stood in little groups, talking in low tones, and ever
|
|
casting affrighted glances behind them from their great
|
|
rolling eyes.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes watched them for a while from his
|
|
lofty perch in the great tree. There was much in their
|
|
demeanor which he could not understand, for of superstition
|
|
he was ignorant, and of fear of any kind he had but a vague
|
|
conception.
|
|
|
|
The sun was high in the heavens. Tarzan had not broken
|
|
fast this day, and it was many miles to where lay the
|
|
toothsome remains of Horta the boar.
|
|
|
|
So he turned his back upon the village of Mbonga and
|
|
melted away into the leafy fastness of the forest.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 11
|
|
|
|
"King of the Apes"
|
|
|
|
It was not yet dark when he reached the tribe, though he
|
|
stopped to exhume and devour the remains of the wild
|
|
boar he had cached the preceding day, and again to take
|
|
Kulonga's bow and arrows from the tree top in which he had
|
|
hidden them.
|
|
|
|
It was a well-laden Tarzan who dropped from the branches
|
|
into the midst of the tribe of Kerchak.
|
|
|
|
With swelling chest he narrated the glories of his adventure
|
|
and exhibited the spoils of conquest.
|
|
|
|
Kerchak grunted and turned away, for he was jealous of
|
|
this strange member of his band. In his little evil brain he
|
|
sought for some excuse to wreak his hatred upon Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
The next day Tarzan was practicing with his bow and arrows
|
|
at the first gleam of dawn. At first he lost nearly every
|
|
bolt he shot, but finally he learned to guide the little shafts
|
|
with fair accuracy, and ere a month had passed he was no
|
|
mean shot; but his proficiency had cost him nearly his entire
|
|
supply of arrows.
|
|
|
|
The tribe continued to find the hunting good in the vicinity
|
|
of the beach, and so Tarzan of the Apes varied his archery
|
|
practice with further investigation of his father's choice
|
|
though little store of books.
|
|
|
|
It was during this period that the young English lord found
|
|
hidden in the back of one of the cupboards in the cabin a
|
|
small metal box. The key was in the lock, and a few moments
|
|
of investigation and experimentation were rewarded
|
|
with the successful opening of the receptacle.
|
|
|
|
In it he found a faded photograph of a smooth faced
|
|
young man, a golden locket studded with diamonds, linked to
|
|
a small gold chain, a few letters and a small book.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan examined these all minutely.
|
|
|
|
The photograph he liked most of all, for the eyes were
|
|
smiling, and the face was open and frank. It was his father.
|
|
|
|
The locket, too, took his fancy, and he placed the chain
|
|
about his neck in imitation of the ornamentation he had seen
|
|
to be so common among the black men he had visited. The
|
|
brilliant stones gleamed strangely against his smooth, brown hide.
|
|
|
|
The letters he could scarcely decipher for he had learned
|
|
little or nothing of script, so he put them back in the box
|
|
with the photograph and turned his attention to the book.
|
|
|
|
This was almost entirely filled with fine script, but while
|
|
the little bugs were all familiar to him, their arrangement and
|
|
the combinations in which they occurred were strange, and
|
|
entirely incomprehensible.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had long since learned the use of the dictionary,
|
|
but much to his sorrow and perplexity it proved of no avail
|
|
to him in this emergency. Not a word of all that was writ in
|
|
the book could he find, and so he put it back in the metal
|
|
box, but with a determination to work out the mysteries of it
|
|
later on.
|
|
|
|
Little did he know that this book held between its covers
|
|
the key to his origin--the answer to the strange riddle of
|
|
his strange life. It was the diary of John Clayton, Lord
|
|
Greystoke--kept in French, as had always been his custom.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan replaced the box in the cupboard, but always thereafter
|
|
he carried the features of the strong, smiling face of his
|
|
father in his heart, and in his head a fixed determination to
|
|
solve the mystery of the strange words in the little black book.
|
|
|
|
At present he had more important business in hand, for his
|
|
supply of arrows was exhausted, and he must needs journey
|
|
to the black men's village and renew it.
|
|
|
|
Early the following morning he set out, and, traveling
|
|
rapidly, he came before midday to the clearing. Once more he
|
|
took up his position in the great tree, and, as before, he saw
|
|
the women in the fields and the village street, and the cauldron
|
|
of bubbling poison directly beneath him.
|
|
|
|
For hours he lay awaiting his opportunity to drop down
|
|
unseen and gather up the arrows for which he had come; but
|
|
nothing now occurred to call the villagers away from their
|
|
homes. The day wore on, and still Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
crouched above the unsuspecting woman at the cauldron.
|
|
|
|
Presently the workers in the fields returned. The hunting
|
|
warriors emerged from the forest, and when all were within
|
|
the palisade the gates were closed and barred.
|
|
|
|
Many cooking pots were now in evidence about the village.
|
|
Before each hut a woman presided over a boiling stew, while
|
|
little cakes of plantain, and cassava puddings were to be seen
|
|
on every hand.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly there came a hail from the edge of the clearing.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan looked.
|
|
|
|
It was a party of belated hunters returning from the north,
|
|
and among them they half led, half carried a struggling animal.
|
|
|
|
As they approached the village the gates were thrown open
|
|
to admit them, and then, as the people saw the victim of the
|
|
chase, a savage cry rose to the heavens, for the quarry was a man.
|
|
|
|
As he was dragged, still resisting, into the village street, the
|
|
women and children set upon him with sticks and stones, and
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes, young and savage beast of the jungle,
|
|
wondered at the cruel brutality of his own kind.
|
|
|
|
Sheeta, the leopard, alone of all the jungle folk, tortured
|
|
his prey. The ethics of all the others meted a quick and
|
|
merciful death to their victims.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had learned from his books but scattered fragments
|
|
of the ways of human beings.
|
|
|
|
When he had followed Kulonga through the forest he had
|
|
expected to come to a city of strange houses on wheels,
|
|
puffing clouds of black smoke from a huge tree stuck in the
|
|
roof of one of them--or to a sea covered with mighty floating
|
|
buildings which he had learned were called, variously, ships
|
|
and boats and steamers and craft.
|
|
|
|
He had been sorely disappointed with the poor little village
|
|
of the blacks, hidden away in his own jungle, and with not a
|
|
single house as large as his own cabin upon the distant beach.
|
|
|
|
He saw that these people were more wicked than his own apes,
|
|
and as savage and cruel as Sabor, herself. Tarzan began
|
|
to hold his own kind in low esteem.
|
|
|
|
Now they had tied their poor victim to a great post near
|
|
the center of the village, directly before Mbonga's hut, and
|
|
here they formed a dancing, yelling circle of warriors about
|
|
him, alive with flashing knives and menacing spears.
|
|
|
|
In a larger circle squatted the women, yelling and beating
|
|
upon drums. It reminded Tarzan of the Dum-Dum, and so he
|
|
knew what to expect. He wondered if they would spring upon
|
|
their meat while it was still alive. The Apes did not do such
|
|
things as that.
|
|
|
|
The circle of warriors about the cringing captive drew closer
|
|
and closer to their prey as they danced in wild and savage
|
|
abandon to the maddening music of the drums. Presently
|
|
a spear reached out and pricked the victim. It was the signal
|
|
for fifty others.
|
|
|
|
Eyes, ears, arms and legs were pierced; every inch of the
|
|
poor writhing body that did not cover a vital organ became
|
|
the target of the cruel lancers.
|
|
|
|
The women and children shrieked their delight.
|
|
|
|
The warriors licked their hideous lips in anticipation of the
|
|
feast to come, and vied with one another in the savagery and
|
|
loathsomeness of the cruel indignities with which they tortured
|
|
the still conscious prisoner.
|
|
|
|
Then it was that Tarzan of the Apes saw his chance. All eyes
|
|
were fixed upon the thrilling spectacle at the stake. The
|
|
light of day had given place to the darkness of a moonless night,
|
|
and only the fires in the immediate vicinity of the orgy had
|
|
been kept alight to cast a restless glow upon the restless scene.
|
|
|
|
Gently the lithe boy dropped to the soft earth at the end of
|
|
the village street. Quickly he gathered up the arrows--all of
|
|
them this time, for he had brought a number of long fibers to
|
|
bind them into a bundle.
|
|
|
|
Without haste he wrapped them securely, and then, ere he
|
|
turned to leave, the devil of capriciousness entered his heart.
|
|
He looked about for some hint of a wild prank to play upon
|
|
these strange, grotesque creatures that they might be again
|
|
aware of his presence among them.
|
|
|
|
Dropping his bundle of arrows at the foot of the tree, Tarzan
|
|
crept among the shadows at the side of the street until he
|
|
came to the same hut he had entered on the occasion of his
|
|
first visit.
|
|
|
|
Inside all was darkness, but his groping hands soon found
|
|
the object for which he sought, and without further delay he
|
|
turned again toward the door.
|
|
|
|
He had taken but a step, however, ere his quick ear caught
|
|
the sound of approaching footsteps immediately without. In
|
|
another instant the figure of a woman darkened the entrance
|
|
of the hut.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan drew back silently to the far wall, and his hand
|
|
sought the long, keen hunting knife of his father. The woman
|
|
came quickly to the center of the hut. There she paused for
|
|
an instant feeling about with her hands for the thing she
|
|
sought. Evidently it was not in its accustomed place, for she
|
|
explored ever nearer and nearer the wall where Tarzan stood.
|
|
|
|
So close was she now that the ape-man felt the animal
|
|
warmth of her naked body. Up went the hunting knife, and
|
|
then the woman turned to one side and soon a guttural "ah"
|
|
proclaimed that her search had at last been successful.
|
|
|
|
Immediately she turned and left the hut, and as she passed
|
|
through the doorway Tarzan saw that she carried a cooking
|
|
pot in her hand.
|
|
|
|
He followed closely after her, and as he reconnoitered
|
|
from the shadows of the doorway he saw that all the women
|
|
of the village were hastening to and from the various huts
|
|
with pots and kettles. These they were filling with water and
|
|
placing over a number of fires near the stake where the dying
|
|
victim now hung, an inert and bloody mass of suffering.
|
|
|
|
Choosing a moment when none seemed near, Tarzan hastened
|
|
to his bundle of arrows beneath the great tree at
|
|
the end of the village street. As on the former occasion he
|
|
overthrew the cauldron before leaping, sinuous and catlike,
|
|
into the lower branches of the forest giant.
|
|
|
|
Silently he climbed to a great height until he found a point
|
|
where he could look through a leafy opening upon the scene
|
|
beneath him.
|
|
|
|
The women were now preparing the prisoner for their cooking
|
|
pots, while the men stood about resting after the fatigue of
|
|
their mad revel. Comparative quiet reigned in the village.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan raised aloft the thing he had pilfered from the hut,
|
|
and, with aim made true by years of fruit and coconut throwing,
|
|
launched it toward the group of savages.
|
|
|
|
Squarely among them it fell, striking one of the warriors
|
|
full upon the head and felling him to the ground. Then it
|
|
rolled among the women and stopped beside the half-butchered
|
|
thing they were preparing to feast upon.
|
|
|
|
All gazed in consternation at it for an instant, and then,
|
|
with one accord, broke and ran for their huts.
|
|
|
|
It was a grinning human skull which looked up at them from
|
|
the ground. The dropping of the thing out of the open sky
|
|
was a miracle well aimed to work upon their superstitious fears.
|
|
|
|
Thus Tarzan of the Apes left them filled with terror at this
|
|
new manifestation of the presence of some unseen and unearthly
|
|
evil power which lurked in the forest about their village.
|
|
|
|
Later, when they discovered the overturned cauldron, and
|
|
that once more their arrows had been pilfered, it commenced
|
|
to dawn upon them that they had offended some great god by
|
|
placing their village in this part of the jungle without
|
|
propitiating him. From then on an offering of food was daily
|
|
placed below the great tree from whence the arrows had
|
|
disappeared in an effort to conciliate the mighty one.
|
|
|
|
But the seed of fear was deep sown, and had he but known
|
|
it, Tarzan of the Apes had laid the foundation for much
|
|
future misery for himself and his tribe.
|
|
|
|
That night he slept in the forest not far from the village,
|
|
and early the next morning set out slowly on his homeward
|
|
march, hunting as he traveled. Only a few berries and an
|
|
occasional grub worm rewarded his search, and he was half
|
|
famished when, looking up from a log he had been rooting
|
|
beneath, he saw Sabor, the lioness, standing in the center
|
|
of the trail not twenty paces from him.
|
|
|
|
The great yellow eyes were fixed upon him with a wicked
|
|
and baleful gleam, and the red tongue licked the longing lips
|
|
as Sabor crouched, worming her stealthy way with belly
|
|
flattened against the earth.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan did not attempt to escape. He welcomed the
|
|
opportunity for which, in fact, he had been searching for
|
|
days past, now that he was armed with something more than a
|
|
rope of grass.
|
|
|
|
Quickly he unslung his bow and fitted a well-daubed arrow,
|
|
and as Sabor sprang, the tiny missile leaped to meet her
|
|
in mid-air. At the same instant Tarzan of the Apes jumped
|
|
to one side, and as the great cat struck the ground beyond
|
|
him another death-tipped arrow sunk deep into Sabor's loin.
|
|
|
|
With a mighty roar the beast turned and charged once
|
|
more, only to be met with a third arrow full in one eye; but
|
|
this time she was too close to the ape-man for the latter to
|
|
sidestep the onrushing body.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes went down beneath the great body of
|
|
his enemy, but with gleaming knife drawn and striking home.
|
|
For a moment they lay there, and then Tarzan realized that
|
|
the inert mass lying upon him was beyond power ever again
|
|
to injure man or ape.
|
|
|
|
With difficulty he wriggled from beneath the great weight,
|
|
and as he stood erect and gazed down upon the trophy of his
|
|
skill, a mighty wave of exultation swept over him.
|
|
|
|
With swelling breast, he placed a foot upon the body of his
|
|
powerful enemy, and throwing back his fine young head,
|
|
roared out the awful challenge of the victorious bull ape.
|
|
|
|
The forest echoed to the savage and triumphant paean.
|
|
Birds fell still, and the larger animals and beasts of prey
|
|
slunk stealthily away, for few there were of all the jungle
|
|
who sought for trouble with the great anthropoids.
|
|
|
|
And in London another Lord Greystoke was speaking to
|
|
HIS kind in the House of Lords, but none trembled at the
|
|
sound of his soft voice.
|
|
|
|
Sabor proved unsavory eating even to Tarzan of the Apes,
|
|
but hunger served as a most efficacious disguise to toughness
|
|
and rank taste, and ere long, with well-filled stomach, the
|
|
ape-man was ready to sleep again. First, however, he must
|
|
remove the hide, for it was as much for this as for any other
|
|
purpose that he had desired to destroy Sabor.
|
|
|
|
Deftly he removed the great pelt, for he had practiced
|
|
often on smaller animals. When the task was finished he
|
|
carried his trophy to the fork of a high tree, and there,
|
|
curling himself securely in a crotch, he fell into deep and
|
|
dreamless slumber.
|
|
|
|
What with loss of sleep, arduous exercise, and a full belly,
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes slept the sun around, awakening about
|
|
noon of the following day. He straightway repaired to the
|
|
carcass of Sabor, but was angered to find the bones picked
|
|
clean by other hungry denizens of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Half an hour's leisurely progress through the forest
|
|
brought to sight a young deer, and before the little creature
|
|
knew that an enemy was near a tiny arrow had lodged in its neck.
|
|
|
|
So quickly the virus worked that at the end of a dozen
|
|
leaps the deer plunged headlong into the undergrowth, dead.
|
|
Again did Tarzan feast well, but this time he did not sleep.
|
|
|
|
Instead, he hastened on toward the point where he had left
|
|
the tribe, and when he had found them proudly exhibited the
|
|
skin of Sabor, the lioness.
|
|
|
|
"Look!" he cried, "Apes of Kerchak. See what Tarzan, the
|
|
mighty killer, has done. Who else among you has ever killed
|
|
one of Numa's people? Tarzan is mightiest amongst you for
|
|
Tarzan is no ape. Tarzan is--" But here he stopped, for in the
|
|
language of the anthropoids there was no word for man, and
|
|
Tarzan could only write the word in English; he could not
|
|
pronounce it.
|
|
|
|
The tribe had gathered about to look upon the proof of his
|
|
wondrous prowess, and to listen to his words.
|
|
|
|
Only Kerchak hung back, nursing his hatred and his rage.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly something snapped in the wicked little brain of
|
|
the anthropoid. With a frightful roar the great beast sprang
|
|
among the assemblage.
|
|
|
|
Biting, and striking with his huge hands, he killed and
|
|
maimed a dozen ere the balance could escape to the upper
|
|
terraces of the forest.
|
|
|
|
Frothing and shrieking in the insanity of his fury, Kerchak
|
|
looked about for the object of his greatest hatred, and there,
|
|
upon a near-by limb, he saw him sitting.
|
|
|
|
"Come down, Tarzan, great killer," cried Kerchak. "Come
|
|
down and feel the fangs of a greater! Do mighty fighters fly
|
|
to the trees at the first approach of danger?" And then Kerchak
|
|
emitted the volleying challenge of his kind.
|
|
|
|
Quietly Tarzan dropped to the ground. Breathlessly the
|
|
tribe watched from their lofty perches as Kerchak, still
|
|
roaring, charged the relatively puny figure.
|
|
|
|
Nearly seven feet stood Kerchak on his short legs. His
|
|
enormous shoulders were bunched and rounded with huge
|
|
muscles. The back of his short neck was as a single lump of
|
|
iron sinew which bulged beyond the base of his skull, so that
|
|
his head seemed like a small ball protruding from a huge
|
|
mountain of flesh.
|
|
|
|
His back-drawn, snarling lips exposed his great fighting
|
|
fangs, and his little, wicked, blood-shot eyes gleamed in
|
|
horrid reflection of his madness.
|
|
|
|
Awaiting him stood Tarzan, himself a mighty muscled animal,
|
|
but his six feet of height and his great rolling sinews
|
|
seemed pitifully inadequate to the ordeal which awaited them.
|
|
|
|
His bow and arrows lay some distance away where he had
|
|
dropped them while showing Sabor's hide to his fellow apes,
|
|
so that he confronted Kerchak now with only his hunting
|
|
knife and his superior intellect to offset the ferocious
|
|
strength of his enemy.
|
|
|
|
As his antagonist came roaring toward him, Lord Greystoke
|
|
tore his long knife from its sheath, and with an answering
|
|
challenge as horrid and bloodcurdling as that of the beast
|
|
he faced, rushed swiftly to meet the attack. He was too
|
|
shrewd to allow those long hairy arms to encircle him, and
|
|
just as their bodies were about to crash together, Tarzan of
|
|
the Apes grasped one of the huge wrists of his assailant, and,
|
|
springing lightly to one side, drove his knife to the hilt into
|
|
Kerchak's body, below the heart.
|
|
|
|
Before he could wrench the blade free again, the bull's
|
|
quick lunge to seize him in those awful arms had torn the
|
|
weapon from Tarzan's grasp.
|
|
|
|
Kerchak aimed a terrific blow at the ape-man's head with the
|
|
flat of his hand, a blow which, had it landed, might easily
|
|
have crushed in the side of Tarzan's skull.
|
|
|
|
The man was too quick, and, ducking beneath it, himself
|
|
delivered a mighty one, with clenched fist, in the pit of
|
|
Kerchak's stomach.
|
|
|
|
The ape was staggered, and what with the mortal wound in
|
|
his side had almost collapsed, when, with one mighty effort
|
|
he rallied for an instant--just long enough to enable him to
|
|
wrest his arm free from Tarzan's grasp and close in a terrific
|
|
clinch with his wiry opponent.
|
|
|
|
Straining the ape-man close to him, his great jaws sought
|
|
Tarzan's throat, but the young lord's sinewy fingers were at
|
|
Kerchak's own before the cruel fangs could close on the sleek
|
|
brown skin.
|
|
|
|
Thus they struggled, the one to crush out his opponent's
|
|
life with those awful teeth, the other to close forever the
|
|
windpipe beneath his strong grasp while he held the snarling
|
|
mouth from him.
|
|
|
|
The greater strength of the ape was slowly prevailing, and
|
|
the teeth of the straining beast were scarce an inch from
|
|
Tarzan's throat when, with a shuddering tremor, the great body
|
|
stiffened for an instant and then sank limply to the ground.
|
|
|
|
Kerchak was dead.
|
|
|
|
Withdrawing the knife that had so often rendered him
|
|
master of far mightier muscles than his own, Tarzan of the
|
|
Apes placed his foot upon the neck of his vanquished enemy,
|
|
and once again, loud through the forest rang the fierce, wild
|
|
cry of the conqueror.
|
|
|
|
And thus came the young Lord Greystoke into the kingship of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 12
|
|
|
|
Man's Reason
|
|
|
|
There was one of the tribe of Tarzan who questioned his
|
|
authority, and that was Terkoz, the son of Tublat, but he
|
|
so feared the keen knife and the deadly arrows of his new
|
|
lord that he confined the manifestation of his objections to
|
|
petty disobediences and irritating mannerisms; Tarzan knew,
|
|
however, that he but waited his opportunity to wrest the
|
|
kingship from him by some sudden stroke of treachery, and
|
|
so he was ever on his guard against surprise.
|
|
|
|
For months the life of the little band went on much as it
|
|
had before, except that Tarzan's greater intelligence and his
|
|
ability as a hunter were the means of providing for them
|
|
more bountifully than ever before. Most of them, therefore,
|
|
were more than content with the change in rulers.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan led them by night to the fields of the black men,
|
|
and there, warned by their chief's superior wisdom, they ate
|
|
only what they required, nor ever did they destroy what they
|
|
could not eat, as is the way of Manu, the monkey, and of
|
|
most apes.
|
|
|
|
So, while the blacks were wroth at the continued pilfering
|
|
of their fields, they were not discouraged in their efforts to
|
|
cultivate the land, as would have been the case had Tarzan
|
|
permitted his people to lay waste the plantation wantonly.
|
|
|
|
During this period Tarzan paid many nocturnal visits to the
|
|
village, where he often renewed his supply of arrows. He
|
|
soon noticed the food always standing at the foot of the tree
|
|
which was his avenue into the palisade, and after a little, he
|
|
commenced to eat whatever the blacks put there.
|
|
|
|
When the awe-struck savages saw that the food disappeared
|
|
overnight they were filled with consternation and dread,
|
|
for it was one thing to put food out to propitiate a god
|
|
or a devil, but quite another thing to have the spirit really
|
|
come into the village and eat it. Such a thing was unheard of,
|
|
and it clouded their superstitious minds with all manner of
|
|
vague fears.
|
|
|
|
Nor was this all. The periodic disappearance of their
|
|
arrows, and the strange pranks perpetrated by unseen hands,
|
|
had wrought them to such a state that life had become a
|
|
veritable burden in their new home, and now it was that Mbonga
|
|
and his head men began to talk of abandoning the village and
|
|
seeking a site farther on in the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Presently the black warriors began to strike farther and
|
|
farther south into the heart of the forest when they went to
|
|
hunt, looking for a site for a new village.
|
|
|
|
More often was the tribe of Tarzan disturbed by these
|
|
wandering huntsmen. Now was the quiet, fierce solitude of
|
|
the primeval forest broken by new, strange cries. No longer
|
|
was there safety for bird or beast. Man had come.
|
|
|
|
Other animals passed up and down the jungle by day and
|
|
by night--fierce, cruel beasts--but their weaker neighbors
|
|
only fled from their immediate vicinity to return again when
|
|
the danger was past.
|
|
|
|
With man it is different. When he comes many of the larger
|
|
animals instinctively leave the district entirely, seldom
|
|
if ever to return; and thus it has always been with the great
|
|
anthropoids. They flee man as man flees a pestilence.
|
|
|
|
For a short time the tribe of Tarzan lingered in the vicinity
|
|
of the beach because their new chief hated the thought of
|
|
leaving the treasured contents of the little cabin forever. But
|
|
when one day a member of the tribe discovered the blacks in
|
|
great numbers on the banks of a little stream that had been
|
|
their watering place for generations, and in the act of clearing
|
|
a space in the jungle and erecting many huts, the apes would
|
|
remain no longer; and so Tarzan led them inland for many
|
|
marches to a spot as yet undefiled by the foot of a human being.
|
|
|
|
Once every moon Tarzan would go swinging rapidly back
|
|
through the swaying branches to have a day with his books,
|
|
and to replenish his supply of arrows. This latter task was
|
|
becoming more and more difficult, for the blacks had taken to
|
|
hiding their supply away at night in granaries and living huts.
|
|
|
|
This necessitated watching by day on Tarzan's part to
|
|
discover where the arrows were being concealed.
|
|
|
|
Twice had he entered huts at night while the inmates lay
|
|
sleeping upon their mats, and stolen the arrows from the very
|
|
sides of the warriors. But this method he realized to be too
|
|
fraught with danger, and so he commenced picking up solitary
|
|
hunters with his long, deadly noose, stripping them of weapons
|
|
and ornaments and dropping their bodies from a high tree into
|
|
the village street during the still watches of the night.
|
|
|
|
These various escapades again so terrorized the blacks that,
|
|
had it not been for the monthly respite between Tarzan's
|
|
visits, in which they had opportunity to renew hope that each
|
|
fresh incursion would prove the last, they soon would have
|
|
abandoned their new village.
|
|
|
|
The blacks had not as yet come upon Tarzan's cabin on
|
|
the distant beach, but the ape-man lived in constant dread
|
|
that, while he was away with the tribe, they would discover
|
|
and despoil his treasure. So it came that he spent more and
|
|
more time in the vicinity of his father's last home, and less
|
|
and less with the tribe. Presently the members of his little
|
|
community began to suffer on account of his neglect, for
|
|
disputes and quarrels constantly arose which only the king
|
|
might settle peaceably.
|
|
|
|
At last some of the older apes spoke to Tarzan on the subject,
|
|
and for a month thereafter he remained constantly with
|
|
the tribe.
|
|
|
|
The duties of kingship among the anthropoids are not
|
|
many or arduous.
|
|
|
|
In the afternoon comes Thaka, possibly, to complain that
|
|
old Mungo has stolen his new wife. Then must Tarzan summon
|
|
all before him, and if he finds that the wife prefers her
|
|
new lord he commands that matters remain as they are, or
|
|
possibly that Mungo give Thaka one of his daughters in exchange.
|
|
|
|
Whatever his decision, the apes accept it as final, and
|
|
return to their occupations satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Then comes Tana, shrieking and holding tight her side
|
|
from which blood is streaming. Gunto, her husband, has
|
|
cruelly bitten her! And Gunto, summoned, says that Tana is
|
|
lazy and will not bring him nuts and beetles, or scratch his
|
|
back for him.
|
|
|
|
So Tarzan scolds them both and threatens Gunto with a
|
|
taste of the death-bearing slivers if he abuses Tana further,
|
|
and Tana, for her part, is compelled to promise better
|
|
attention to her wifely duties.
|
|
|
|
And so it goes, little family differences for the most part,
|
|
which, if left unsettled would result finally in greater
|
|
factional strife, and the eventual dismemberment of the tribe.
|
|
|
|
But Tarzan tired of it, as he found that kingship meant the
|
|
curtailment of his liberty. He longed for the little cabin and
|
|
the sun-kissed sea--for the cool interior of the well-built
|
|
house, and for the never-ending wonders of the many books.
|
|
|
|
As he had grown older, he found that he had grown away
|
|
from his people. Their interests and his were far removed.
|
|
They had not kept pace with him, nor could they understand
|
|
aught of the many strange and wonderful dreams that passed
|
|
through the active brain of their human king. So limited was
|
|
their vocabulary that Tarzan could not even talk with them
|
|
of the many new truths, and the great fields of thought that
|
|
his reading had opened up before his longing eyes, or make
|
|
known ambitions which stirred his soul.
|
|
|
|
Among the tribe he no longer had friends as of old. A little
|
|
child may find companionship in many strange and simple
|
|
creatures, but to a grown man there must be some semblance
|
|
of equality in intellect as the basis for agreeable association.
|
|
|
|
Had Kala lived, Tarzan would have sacrificed all else to
|
|
remain near her, but now that she was dead, and the playful
|
|
friends of his childhood grown into fierce and surly brutes he
|
|
felt that he much preferred the peace and solitude of his
|
|
cabin to the irksome duties of leadership amongst a horde of
|
|
wild beasts.
|
|
|
|
The hatred and jealousy of Terkoz, son of Tublat, did
|
|
much to counteract the effect of Tarzan's desire to renounce
|
|
his kingship among the apes, for, stubborn young Englishman
|
|
that he was, he could not bring himself to retreat in the face
|
|
of so malignant an enemy.
|
|
|
|
That Terkoz would be chosen leader in his stead he knew
|
|
full well, for time and again the ferocious brute had
|
|
established his claim to physical supremacy over the
|
|
few bull apes who had dared resent his savage bullying.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan would have liked to subdue the ugly beast without
|
|
recourse to knife or arrows. So much had his great strength
|
|
and agility increased in the period following his maturity that
|
|
he had come to believe that he might master the redoubtable
|
|
Terkoz in a hand to hand fight were it not for the terrible
|
|
advantage the anthropoid's huge fighting fangs gave him
|
|
over the poorly armed Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
The entire matter was taken out of Tarzan's hands one day
|
|
by force of circumstances, and his future left open to him, so
|
|
that he might go or stay without any stain upon his savage
|
|
escutcheon.
|
|
|
|
It happened thus:
|
|
|
|
The tribe was feeding quietly, spread over a considerable
|
|
area, when a great screaming arose some distance east of
|
|
where Tarzan lay upon his belly beside a limpid brook,
|
|
attempting to catch an elusive fish in his quick, brown hands.
|
|
|
|
With one accord the tribe swung rapidly toward the frightened
|
|
cries, and there found Terkoz holding an old female by
|
|
the hair and beating her unmercifully with his great hands.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan approached he raised his hand aloft for Terkoz
|
|
to desist, for the female was not his, but belonged to a poor
|
|
old ape whose fighting days were long over, and who, therefore,
|
|
could not protect his family.
|
|
|
|
Terkoz knew that it was against the laws of his kind to
|
|
strike this woman of another, but being a bully, he had taken
|
|
advantage of the weakness of the female's husband to chastise
|
|
her because she had refused to give up to him a tender
|
|
young rodent she had captured.
|
|
|
|
When Terkoz saw Tarzan approaching without his arrows,
|
|
he continued to belabor the poor woman in a studied effort to
|
|
affront his hated chieftain.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan did not repeat his warning signal, but instead
|
|
rushed bodily upon the waiting Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
Never had the ape-man fought so terrible a battle since
|
|
that long-gone day when Bolgani, the great king gorilla had
|
|
so horribly manhandled him ere the new-found knife had, by
|
|
accident, pricked the savage heart.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan's knife on the present occasion but barely offset the
|
|
gleaming fangs of Terkoz, and what little advantage the ape
|
|
had over the man in brute strength was almost balanced by
|
|
the latter's wonderful quickness and agility.
|
|
|
|
In the sum total of their points, however, the anthropoid
|
|
had a shade the better of the battle, and had there been no
|
|
other personal attribute to influence the final outcome,
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes, the young Lord Greystoke, would have died
|
|
as he had lived--an unknown savage beast in equatorial Africa.
|
|
|
|
But there was that which had raised him far above his fellows
|
|
of the jungle--that little spark which spells the whole
|
|
vast difference between man and brute--Reason. This it was
|
|
which saved him from death beneath the iron muscles and
|
|
tearing fangs of Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had they fought a dozen seconds ere they were
|
|
rolling upon the ground, striking, tearing and rending--two
|
|
great savage beasts battling to the death.
|
|
|
|
Terkoz had a dozen knife wounds on head and breast, and
|
|
Tarzan was torn and bleeding--his scalp in one place half
|
|
torn from his head so that a great piece hung down over one
|
|
eye, obstructing his vision.
|
|
|
|
But so far the young Englishman had been able to keep
|
|
those horrible fangs from his jugular and now, as they fought
|
|
less fiercely for a moment, to regain their breath, Tarzan
|
|
formed a cunning plan. He would work his way to the other's
|
|
back and, clinging there with tooth and nail, drive his knife
|
|
home until Terkoz was no more.
|
|
|
|
The maneuver was accomplished more easily than he had
|
|
hoped, for the stupid beast, not knowing what Tarzan was
|
|
attempting, made no particular effort to prevent the
|
|
accomplishment of the design.
|
|
|
|
But when, finally, he realized that his antagonist was
|
|
fastened to him where his teeth and fists alike were useless
|
|
against him, Terkoz hurled himself about upon the ground so
|
|
violently that Tarzan could but cling desperately to the
|
|
leaping, turning, twisting body, and ere he had struck a
|
|
blow the knife was hurled from his hand by a heavy impact
|
|
against the earth, and Tarzan found himself defenseless.
|
|
|
|
During the rollings and squirmings of the next few minutes,
|
|
Tarzan's hold was loosened a dozen times until finally
|
|
an accidental circumstance of those swift and ever??changing
|
|
evolutions gave him a new hold with his right hand, which he
|
|
realized was absolutely unassailable.
|
|
|
|
His arm was passed beneath Terkoz's arm from behind
|
|
and his hand and forearm encircled the back of Terkoz's
|
|
neck. It was the half-Nelson of modern wrestling which the
|
|
untaught ape-man had stumbled upon, but superior reason
|
|
showed him in an instant the value of the thing he had
|
|
discovered. It was the difference to him between life and death.
|
|
|
|
And so he struggled to encompass a similar hold with the
|
|
left hand, and in a few moments Terkoz's bull neck was
|
|
creaking beneath a full-Nelson.
|
|
|
|
There was no more lunging about now. The two lay perfectly
|
|
still upon the ground, Tarzan upon Terkoz's back. Slowly the
|
|
bullet head of the ape was being forced lower and
|
|
lower upon his chest.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan knew what the result would be. In an instant the
|
|
neck would break. Then there came to Terkoz's rescue the
|
|
same thing that had put him in these sore straits--a man's
|
|
reasoning power.
|
|
|
|
"If I kill him," thought Tarzan, "what advantage will it be
|
|
to me? Will it not rob the tribe of a great fighter? And if
|
|
Terkoz be dead, he will know nothing of my supremacy,
|
|
while alive he will ever be an example to the other apes."
|
|
|
|
"KA-GODA?" hissed Tarzan in Terkoz's ear, which, in ape
|
|
tongue, means, freely translated: "Do you surrender?"
|
|
|
|
For a moment there was no reply, and Tarzan added a few
|
|
more ounces of pressure, which elicited a horrified shriek
|
|
of pain from the great beast.
|
|
|
|
"KA-GODA?" repeated Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"KA-GODA!" cried Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
"Listen," said Tarzan, easing up a trifle, but not releasing
|
|
his hold. "I am Tarzan, King of the Apes, mighty hunter,
|
|
mighty fighter. In all the jungle there is none so great.
|
|
|
|
"You have said: `KA-GODA' to me. All the tribe have heard.
|
|
Quarrel no more with your king or your people, for next
|
|
time I shall kill you. Do you understand?"
|
|
|
|
"HUH," assented Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
"And you are satisfied?"
|
|
|
|
"HUH," said the ape.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan let him up, and in a few minutes all were back at
|
|
their vocations, as though naught had occurred to mar the
|
|
tranquility of their primeval forest haunts.
|
|
|
|
But deep in the minds of the apes was rooted the conviction
|
|
that Tarzan was a mighty fighter and a strange creature.
|
|
Strange because he had had it in his power to kill his enemy,
|
|
but had allowed him to live--unharmed.
|
|
|
|
That afternoon as the tribe came together, as was their
|
|
wont before darkness settled on the jungle, Tarzan, his
|
|
wounds washed in the waters of the stream, called the old
|
|
males about him.
|
|
|
|
"You have seen again to-day that Tarzan of the Apes is
|
|
the greatest among you," he said.
|
|
|
|
"HUH," they replied with one voice, "Tarzan is great."
|
|
|
|
"Tarzan," he continued, "is not an ape. He is not like his
|
|
people. His ways are not their ways, and so Tarzan is going
|
|
back to the lair of his own kind by the waters of the great
|
|
lake which has no farther shore. You must choose another to
|
|
rule you, for Tarzan will not return."
|
|
|
|
And thus young Lord Greystoke took the first step toward
|
|
the goal which he had set--the finding of other white men
|
|
like himself.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 13
|
|
|
|
His Own Kind
|
|
|
|
The following morning, Tarzan, lame and sore from the
|
|
wounds of his battle with Terkoz, set out toward the west
|
|
and the seacoast.
|
|
|
|
He traveled very slowly, sleeping in the jungle at night,
|
|
and reaching his cabin late the following morning.
|
|
|
|
For several days he moved about but little, only enough to
|
|
gather what fruits and nuts he required to satisfy the demands
|
|
of hunger.
|
|
|
|
In ten days he was quite sound again, except for a terrible,
|
|
half-healed scar, which, starting above his left eye ran across
|
|
the top of his head, ending at the right ear. It was the mark
|
|
left by Terkoz when he had torn the scalp away.
|
|
|
|
During his convalescence Tarzan tried to fashion a mantle
|
|
from the skin of Sabor, which had lain all this time in the
|
|
cabin. But he found the hide had dried as stiff as a board,
|
|
and as he knew naught of tanning, he was forced to abandon
|
|
his cherished plan.
|
|
|
|
Then he determined to filch what few garments he could
|
|
from one of the black men of Mbonga's village, for Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes had decided to mark his evolution from the
|
|
lower orders in every possible manner, and nothing seemed to
|
|
him a more distinguishing badge of manhood than ornaments
|
|
and clothing.
|
|
|
|
To this end, therefore, he collected the various arm and leg
|
|
ornaments he had taken from the black warriors who had
|
|
succumbed to his swift and silent noose, and donned them all
|
|
after the way he had seen them worn.
|
|
|
|
About his neck hung the golden chain from which depended
|
|
the diamond encrusted locket of his mother, the Lady
|
|
Alice. At his back was a quiver of arrows slung from a
|
|
leathern shoulder belt, another piece of loot from some
|
|
vanquished black.
|
|
|
|
About his waist was a belt of tiny strips of rawhide
|
|
fashioned by himself as a support for the home-made scabbard in
|
|
which hung his father's hunting knife. The long bow which
|
|
had been Kulonga's hung over his left shoulder.
|
|
|
|
The young Lord Greystoke was indeed a strange and war-like
|
|
figure, his mass of black hair falling to his shoulders
|
|
behind and cut with his hunting knife to a rude bang upon
|
|
his forehead, that it might not fall before his eyes.
|
|
|
|
His straight and perfect figure, muscled as the best of the
|
|
ancient Roman gladiators must have been muscled, and yet
|
|
with the soft and sinuous curves of a Greek god, told at a
|
|
glance the wondrous combination of enormous strength with
|
|
suppleness and speed.
|
|
|
|
A personification, was Tarzan of the Apes, of the primitive
|
|
man, the hunter, the warrior.
|
|
|
|
With the noble poise of his handsome head upon those broad
|
|
shoulders, and the fire of life and intelligence in those
|
|
fine, clear eyes, he might readily have typified some demigod
|
|
of a wild and warlike bygone people of his ancient forest.
|
|
|
|
But of these things Tarzan did not think. He was worried
|
|
because he had not clothing to indicate to all the jungle folks
|
|
that he was a man and not an ape, and grave doubt often
|
|
entered his mind as to whether he might not yet become an ape.
|
|
|
|
Was not hair commencing to grow upon his face? All the
|
|
apes had hair upon theirs but the black men were entirely
|
|
hairless, with very few exceptions.
|
|
|
|
True, he had seen pictures in his books of men with great
|
|
masses of hair upon lip and cheek and chin, but, nevertheless,
|
|
Tarzan was afraid. Almost daily he whetted his keen knife
|
|
and scraped and whittled at his young beard to eradicate this
|
|
degrading emblem of apehood.
|
|
|
|
And so he learned to shave--rudely and painfully, it is
|
|
true--but, nevertheless, effectively.
|
|
|
|
When he felt quite strong again, after his bloody battle
|
|
with Terkoz, Tarzan set off one morning towards Mbonga's
|
|
village. He was moving carelessly along a winding jungle
|
|
trail, instead of making his progress through the trees, when
|
|
suddenly he came face to face with a black warrior.
|
|
|
|
The look of surprise on the savage face was almost comical,
|
|
and before Tarzan could unsling his bow the fellow had
|
|
turned and fled down the path crying out in alarm as though
|
|
to others before him.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan took to the trees in pursuit, and in a few moments
|
|
came in view of the men desperately striving to escape.
|
|
|
|
There were three of them, and they were racing madly in
|
|
single file through the dense undergrowth.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan easily distanced them, nor did they see his silent
|
|
passage above their heads, nor note the crouching figure
|
|
squatted upon a low branch ahead of them beneath which the
|
|
trail led them.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan let the first two pass beneath him, but as the third
|
|
came swiftly on, the quiet noose dropped about the black
|
|
throat. A quick jerk drew it taut.
|
|
|
|
There was an agonized scream from the victim, and his
|
|
fellows turned to see his struggling body rise as by magic
|
|
slowly into the dense foliage of the trees above.
|
|
|
|
With frightened shrieks they wheeled once more and plunged
|
|
on in their efforts to escape.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan dispatched his prisoner quickly and silently; removed
|
|
the weapons and ornaments, and--oh, the greatest joy
|
|
of all--a handsome deerskin breechcloth, which he quickly
|
|
transferred to his own person.
|
|
|
|
Now indeed was he dressed as a man should be. None
|
|
there was who could now doubt his high origin. How he
|
|
should have liked to have returned to the tribe to parade
|
|
before their envious gaze this wondrous finery.
|
|
|
|
Taking the body across his shoulder, he moved more
|
|
slowly through the trees toward the little palisaded village,
|
|
for he again needed arrows.
|
|
|
|
As he approached quite close to the enclosure he saw an
|
|
excited group surrounding the two fugitives, who, trembling
|
|
with fright and exhaustion, were scarce able to recount the
|
|
uncanny details of their adventure.
|
|
|
|
Mirando, they said, who had been ahead of them a short
|
|
distance, had suddenly come screaming toward them, crying
|
|
that a terrible white and naked warrior was pursuing him.
|
|
The three of them had hurried toward the village as rapidly
|
|
as their legs would carry them.
|
|
|
|
Again Mirando's shrill cry of mortal terror had caused
|
|
them to look back, and there they had seen the most horrible
|
|
sight--their companion's body flying upwards into the trees,
|
|
his arms and legs beating the air and his tongue protruding
|
|
from his open mouth. No other sound did he utter nor was
|
|
there any creature in sight about him.
|
|
|
|
The villagers were worked up into a state of fear bordering
|
|
on panic, but wise old Mbonga affected to feel considerable
|
|
skepticism regarding the tale, and attributed the whole
|
|
fabrication to their fright in the face of some real danger.
|
|
|
|
"You tell us this great story," he said, "because you do not
|
|
dare to speak the truth. You do not dare admit that when the
|
|
lion sprang upon Mirando you ran away and left him. You
|
|
are cowards."
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had Mbonga ceased speaking when a great crashing
|
|
of branches in the trees above them caused the blacks to
|
|
look up in renewed terror. The sight that met their eyes made
|
|
even wise old Mbonga shudder, for there, turning and twisting
|
|
in the air, came the dead body of Mirando, to sprawl with a
|
|
sickening reverberation upon the ground at their feet.
|
|
|
|
With one accord the blacks took to their heels; nor did
|
|
they stop until the last of them was lost in the dense
|
|
shadows of the surrounding jungle.
|
|
|
|
Again Tarzan came down into the village and renewed his
|
|
supply of arrows and ate of the offering of food which the
|
|
blacks had made to appease his wrath.
|
|
|
|
Before he left he carried the body of Mirando to the gate
|
|
of the village, and propped it up against the palisade in such
|
|
a way that the dead face seemed to be peering around the
|
|
edge of the gatepost down the path which led to the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Then Tarzan returned, hunting, always hunting, to the
|
|
cabin by the beach.
|
|
|
|
It took a dozen attempts on the part of the thoroughly
|
|
frightened blacks to reenter their village, past the horrible,
|
|
grinning face of their dead fellow, and when they found the
|
|
food and arrows gone they knew, what they had only too well
|
|
feared, that Mirando had seen the evil spirit of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
That now seemed to them the logical explanation. Only
|
|
those who saw this terrible god of the jungle died; for was it
|
|
not true that none left alive in the village had ever seen him?
|
|
Therefore, those who had died at his hands must have seen
|
|
him and paid the penalty with their lives.
|
|
|
|
As long as they supplied him with arrows and food he
|
|
would not harm them unless they looked upon him, so it was
|
|
ordered by Mbonga that in addition to the food offering there
|
|
should also be laid out an offering of arrows for this Munan-
|
|
go-Keewati, and this was done from then on.
|
|
|
|
If you ever chance to pass that far off African village you
|
|
will still see before a tiny thatched hut, built just without the
|
|
village, a little iron pot in which is a quantity of food, and
|
|
beside it a quiver of well-daubed arrows.
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan came in sight of the beach where stood his
|
|
cabin, a strange and unusual spectacle met his vision.
|
|
|
|
On the placid waters of the landlocked harbor floated a
|
|
great ship, and on the beach a small boat was drawn up.
|
|
|
|
But, most wonderful of all, a number of white men like
|
|
himself were moving about between the beach and his cabin.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan saw that in many ways they were like the men of his
|
|
picture books. He crept closer through the trees until he
|
|
was quite close above them.
|
|
|
|
There were ten men, swarthy, sun-tanned, villainous looking
|
|
fellows. Now they had congregated by the boat and were
|
|
talking in loud, angry tones, with much gesticulating and
|
|
shaking of fists.
|
|
|
|
Presently one of them, a little, mean-faced, black-bearded
|
|
fellow with a countenance which reminded Tarzan of Pamba,
|
|
the rat, laid his hand upon the shoulder of a giant who stood
|
|
next him, and with whom all the others had been arguing and
|
|
quarreling.
|
|
|
|
The little man pointed inland, so that the giant was forced
|
|
to turn away from the others to look in the direction
|
|
indicated. As he turned, the little, mean-faced man drew a
|
|
revolver from his belt and shot the giant in the back.
|
|
|
|
The big fellow threw his hands above his head, his knees
|
|
bent beneath him, and without a sound he tumbled forward
|
|
upon the beach, dead.
|
|
|
|
The report of the weapon, the first that Tarzan had ever
|
|
heard, filled him with wonderment, but even this unaccustomed
|
|
sound could not startle his healthy nerves into even a
|
|
semblance of panic.
|
|
|
|
The conduct of the white strangers it was that caused him
|
|
the greatest perturbation. He puckered his brows into a
|
|
frown of deep thought. It was well, thought he, that he had
|
|
not given way to his first impulse to rush forward and greet
|
|
these white men as brothers.
|
|
|
|
They were evidently no different from the black men--no
|
|
more civilized than the apes--no less cruel than Sabor.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the others stood looking at the little, mean-
|
|
faced man and the giant lying dead upon the beach.
|
|
|
|
Then one of them laughed and slapped the little man upon
|
|
the back. There was much more talk and gesticulating, but
|
|
less quarreling.
|
|
|
|
Presently they launched the boat and all jumped into it and
|
|
rowed away toward the great ship, where Tarzan could see
|
|
other figures moving about upon the deck.
|
|
|
|
When they had clambered aboard, Tarzan dropped to earth
|
|
behind a great tree and crept to his cabin, keeping it
|
|
always between himself and the ship.
|
|
|
|
Slipping in at the door he found that everything had been
|
|
ransacked. His books and pencils strewed the floor. His weapons
|
|
and shields and other little store of treasures were littered about.
|
|
|
|
As he saw what had been done a great wave of anger
|
|
surged through him, and the new made scar upon his forehead
|
|
stood suddenly out, a bar of inflamed crimson against
|
|
his tawny hide.
|
|
|
|
Quickly he ran to the cupboard and searched in the far recess
|
|
of the lower shelf. Ah! He breathed a sigh of relief as he
|
|
drew out the little tin box, and, opening it, found his greatest
|
|
treasures undisturbed.
|
|
|
|
The photograph of the smiling, strong-faced young man,
|
|
and the little black puzzle book were safe.
|
|
|
|
What was that?
|
|
|
|
His quick ear had caught a faint but unfamiliar sound.
|
|
|
|
Running to the window Tarzan looked toward the harbor,
|
|
and there he saw that a boat was being lowered from the
|
|
great ship beside the one already in the water. Soon he saw
|
|
many people clambering over the sides of the larger vessel and
|
|
dropping into the boats. They were coming back in full force.
|
|
|
|
For a moment longer Tarzan watched while a number of
|
|
boxes and bundles were lowered into the waiting boats, then,
|
|
as they shoved off from the ship's side, the ape-man snatched
|
|
up a piece of paper, and with a pencil printed on it for a few
|
|
moments until it bore several lines of strong, well-made,
|
|
almost letter-perfect characters.
|
|
|
|
This notice he stuck upon the door with a small sharp
|
|
splinter of wood. Then gathering up his precious tin box, his
|
|
arrows, and as many bows and spears as he could carry, he
|
|
hastened through the door and disappeared into the forest.
|
|
|
|
When the two boats were beached upon the silvery sand it
|
|
was a strange assortment of humanity that clambered ashore.
|
|
|
|
Some twenty souls in all there were, fifteen of them rough
|
|
and villainous appearing seamen.
|
|
|
|
The others of the party were of different stamp.
|
|
|
|
One was an elderly man, with white hair and large rimmed
|
|
spectacles. His slightly stooped shoulders were draped in an
|
|
ill-fitting, though immaculate, frock coat, and a shiny silk hat
|
|
added to the incongruity of his garb in an African jungle.
|
|
|
|
The second member of the party to land was a tall young man
|
|
in white ducks, while directly behind came another elderly
|
|
man with a very high forehead and a fussy, excitable manner.
|
|
|
|
After these came a huge Negress clothed like Solomon as to
|
|
colors. Her great eyes rolled in evident terror, first toward
|
|
the jungle and then toward the cursing band of sailors who
|
|
were removing the bales and boxes from the boats.
|
|
|
|
The last member of the party to disembark was a girl of
|
|
about nineteen, and it was the young man who stood at the
|
|
boat's prow to lift her high and dry upon land. She gave him a
|
|
brave and pretty smile of thanks, but no words passed between them.
|
|
|
|
In silence the party advanced toward the cabin. It was evident
|
|
that whatever their intentions, all had been decided upon
|
|
before they left the ship; and so they came to the door, the
|
|
sailors carrying the boxes and bales, followed by the five who
|
|
were of so different a class. The men put down their burdens,
|
|
and then one caught sight of the notice which Tarzan had posted.
|
|
|
|
"Ho, mates!" he cried. "What's here? This sign was not
|
|
posted an hour ago or I'll eat the cook."
|
|
|
|
The others gathered about, craning their necks over the
|
|
shoulders of those before them, but as few of them could
|
|
read at all, and then only after the most laborious fashion,
|
|
one finally turned to the little old man of the top hat and
|
|
frock coat.
|
|
|
|
"Hi, perfesser," he called, "step for'rd and read the
|
|
bloomin' notis."
|
|
|
|
Thus addressed, the old man came slowly to where the
|
|
sailors stood, followed by the other members of his party.
|
|
Adjusting his spectacles he looked for a moment at the
|
|
placard and then, turning away, strolled off muttering to
|
|
himself: "Most remarkable--most remarkable!"
|
|
|
|
"Hi, old fossil," cried the man who had first called on him
|
|
for assistance, "did je think we wanted of you to read the
|
|
bloomin' notis to yourself? Come back here and read it out
|
|
loud, you old barnacle."
|
|
|
|
The old man stopped and, turning back, said: "Oh, yes,
|
|
my dear sir, a thousand pardons. It was quite thoughtless of
|
|
me, yes--very thoughtless. Most remarkable--most remarkable!"
|
|
|
|
Again he faced the notice and read it through, and doubtless
|
|
would have turned off again to ruminate upon it had not
|
|
the sailor grasped him roughly by the collar and howled into
|
|
his ear.
|
|
|
|
"Read it out loud, you blithering old idiot."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes indeed, yes indeed," replied the professor softly,
|
|
and adjusting his spectacles once more he read aloud:
|
|
|
|
THIS IS THE HOUSE OF TARZAN, THE
|
|
KILLER OF BEASTS AND MANY BLACK
|
|
MEN. DO NOT HARM THE THINGS WHICH
|
|
ARE TARZAN'S. TARZAN WATCHES.
|
|
TARZAN OF THE APES.
|
|
|
|
"Who the devil is Tarzan?" cried the sailor who had before spoken.
|
|
|
|
"He evidently speaks English," said the young man.
|
|
|
|
"But what does `Tarzan of the Apes' mean?" cried the girl.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know, Miss Porter," replied the young man, "unless
|
|
we have discovered a runaway simian from the London
|
|
Zoo who has brought back a European education to his jungle
|
|
home. What do you make of it, Professor Porter?" he
|
|
added, turning to the old man.
|
|
|
|
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter adjusted his spectacles.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes, indeed; yes indeed--most remarkable, most
|
|
remarkable!" said the professor; "but I can add nothing further
|
|
to what I have already remarked in elucidation of this truly
|
|
momentous occurrence," and the professor turned slowly in
|
|
the direction of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
"But, papa," cried the girl, "you haven't said anything
|
|
about it yet."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, child; tut, tut," responded Professor Porter, in a
|
|
kindly and indulgent tone, "do not trouble your pretty head
|
|
with such weighty and abstruse problems," and again he wandered
|
|
slowly off in still another direction, his eyes bent upon
|
|
the ground at his feet, his hands clasped behind him beneath
|
|
the flowing tails of his coat.
|
|
|
|
"I reckon the daffy old bounder don't know no more'n we
|
|
do about it," growled the rat-faced sailor.
|
|
|
|
"Keep a civil tongue in your head," cried the young man,
|
|
his face paling in anger, at the insulting tone of the sailor.
|
|
"You've murdered our officers and robbed us. We are absolutely
|
|
in your power, but you'll treat Professor Porter and
|
|
Miss Porter with respect or I'll break that vile neck of yours
|
|
with my bare hands--guns or no guns," and the young fellow
|
|
stepped so close to the rat-faced sailor that the latter, though
|
|
he bore two revolvers and a villainous looking knife in his
|
|
belt, slunk back abashed.
|
|
|
|
"You damned coward," cried the young man. "You'd never
|
|
dare shoot a man until his back was turned. You don't
|
|
dare shoot me even then," and he deliberately turned his
|
|
back full upon the sailor and walked nonchalantly away as
|
|
if to put him to the test.
|
|
|
|
The sailor's hand crept slyly to the butt of one of his
|
|
revolvers; his wicked eyes glared vengefully at the retreating
|
|
form of the young Englishman. The gaze of his fellows was upon
|
|
him, but still he hesitated. At heart he was even a greater
|
|
coward than Mr. William Cecil Clayton had imagined.
|
|
|
|
Two keen eyes had watched every move of the party from
|
|
the foliage of a nearby tree. Tarzan had seen the surprise
|
|
caused by his notice, and while he could understand nothing
|
|
of the spoken language of these strange people their gestures
|
|
and facial expressions told him much.
|
|
|
|
The act of the little rat-faced sailor in killing one of his
|
|
comrades had aroused a strong dislike in Tarzan, and now
|
|
that he saw him quarreling with the fine-looking young man
|
|
his animosity was still further stirred.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had never seen the effects of a firearm before,
|
|
though his books had taught him something of them, but
|
|
when he saw the rat-faced one fingering the butt of his
|
|
revolver he thought of the scene he had witnessed so short
|
|
a time before, and naturally expected to see the young man
|
|
murdered as had been the huge sailor earlier in the day.
|
|
|
|
So Tarzan fitted a poisoned arrow to his bow and drew a
|
|
bead upon the rat-faced sailor, but the foliage was so thick
|
|
that he soon saw the arrow would be deflected by the leaves
|
|
or some small branch, and instead he launched a heavy spear
|
|
from his lofty perch.
|
|
|
|
Clayton had taken but a dozen steps. The rat-faced sailor
|
|
had half drawn his revolver; the other sailors stood watching
|
|
the scene intently.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter had already disappeared into the jungle,
|
|
whither he was being followed by the fussy Samuel T.
|
|
Philander, his secretary and assistant.
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda, the Negress, was busy sorting her mistress' baggage
|
|
from the pile of bales and boxes beside the cabin, and
|
|
Miss Porter had turned away to follow Clayton, when something
|
|
caused her to turn again toward the sailor.
|
|
|
|
And then three things happened almost simultaneously.
|
|
The sailor jerked out his weapon and leveled it at Clayton's
|
|
back, Miss Porter screamed a warning, and a long, metal-
|
|
shod spear shot like a bolt from above and passed entirely
|
|
through the right shoulder of the rat-faced man.
|
|
|
|
The revolver exploded harmlessly in the air, and the seaman
|
|
crumpled up with a scream of pain and terror.
|
|
|
|
Clayton turned and rushed back toward the scene. The
|
|
sailors stood in a frightened group, with drawn weapons,
|
|
peering into the jungle. The wounded man writhed and
|
|
shrieked upon the ground.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, unseen by any, picked up the fallen revolver and
|
|
slipped it inside his shirt, then he joined the sailors in
|
|
gazing, mystified, into the jungle.
|
|
|
|
"Who could it have been?" whispered Jane Porter, and the
|
|
young man turned to see her standing, wide-eyed and
|
|
wondering, close beside him.
|
|
|
|
"I dare say Tarzan of the Apes is watching us all right," he
|
|
answered, in a dubious tone. "I wonder, now, who that spear
|
|
was intended for. If for Snipes, then our ape friend is a
|
|
friend indeed.
|
|
|
|
"By jove, where are your father and Mr. Philander?
|
|
There's someone or something in that jungle, and it's armed,
|
|
whatever it is. Ho! Professor! Mr. Philander!" young Clayton
|
|
shouted. There was no response.
|
|
|
|
"What's to be done, Miss Porter?" continued the young
|
|
man, his face clouded by a frown of worry and indecision.
|
|
|
|
"I can't leave you here alone with these cutthroats, and
|
|
you certainly can't venture into the jungle with me; yet
|
|
someone must go in search of your father. He is more than
|
|
apt to wandering off aimlessly, regardless of danger or
|
|
direction, and Mr. Philander is only a trifle less impractical
|
|
than he. You will pardon my bluntness, but our lives are
|
|
all in jeopardy here, and when we get your father back
|
|
something must be done to impress upon him the dangers to
|
|
which he exposes you as well as himself by his absent-mindedness."
|
|
|
|
"I quite agree with you," replied the girl, "and I am not
|
|
offended at all. Dear old papa would sacrifice his life for me
|
|
without an instant's hesitation, provided one could keep his
|
|
mind on so frivolous a matter for an entire instant. There is
|
|
only one way to keep him in safety, and that is to chain him
|
|
to a tree. The poor dear is SO impractical."
|
|
|
|
"I have it!" suddenly exclaimed Clayton. "You can use a
|
|
revolver, can't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Why?"
|
|
|
|
"I have one. With it you and Esmeralda will be comparatively
|
|
safe in this cabin while I am searching for your father
|
|
and Mr. Philander. Come, call the woman and I will hurry
|
|
on. They can't have gone far."
|
|
|
|
Jane did as he suggested and when he saw the door close
|
|
safely behind them Clayton turned toward the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Some of the sailors were drawing the spear from their
|
|
wounded comrade and, as Clayton approached, he asked if
|
|
he could borrow a revolver from one of them while he
|
|
searched the jungle for the professor.
|
|
|
|
The rat-faced one, finding he was not dead, had regained
|
|
his composure, and with a volley of oaths directed at Clayton
|
|
refused in the name of his fellows to allow the young man
|
|
any firearms.
|
|
|
|
This man, Snipes, had assumed the role of chief since he
|
|
had killed their former leader, and so little time had elapsed
|
|
that none of his companions had as yet questioned his authority.
|
|
|
|
Clayton's only response was a shrug of the shoulders, but
|
|
as he left them he picked up the spear which had transfixed
|
|
Snipes, and thus primitively armed, the son of the then Lord
|
|
Greystoke strode into the dense jungle.
|
|
|
|
Every few moments he called aloud the names of the wanderers.
|
|
The watchers in the cabin by the beach heard the sound of his
|
|
voice growing ever fainter and fainter, until at last it was
|
|
swallowed up by the myriad noises of the primeval wood.
|
|
|
|
When Professor Archimedes Q. Porter and his assistant,
|
|
Samuel T. Philander, after much insistence on the part of the
|
|
latter, had finally turned their steps toward camp, they were
|
|
as completely lost in the wild and tangled labyrinth of the
|
|
matted jungle as two human beings well could be, though
|
|
they did not know it.
|
|
|
|
It was by the merest caprice of fortune that they headed
|
|
toward the west coast of Africa, instead of toward Zanzibar
|
|
on the opposite side of the dark continent.
|
|
|
|
When in a short time they reached the beach, only to find
|
|
no camp in sight, Philander was positive that they were north
|
|
of their proper destination, while, as a matter of fact they
|
|
were about two hundred yards south of it.
|
|
|
|
It never occurred to either of these impractical theorists to
|
|
call aloud on the chance of attracting their friends' attention.
|
|
Instead, with all the assurance that deductive reasoning from
|
|
a wrong premise induces in one, Mr. Samuel T. Philander
|
|
grasped Professor Archimedes Q. Porter firmly by the arm
|
|
and hurried the weakly protesting old gentleman off in the
|
|
direction of Cape Town, fifteen hundred miles to the south.
|
|
|
|
When Jane and Esmeralda found themselves safely behind
|
|
the cabin door the Negress's first thought was to barricade
|
|
the portal from the inside. With this idea in mind she turned
|
|
to search for some means of putting it into execution; but her
|
|
first view of the interior of the cabin brought a shriek of
|
|
terror to her lips, and like a frightened child the huge woman
|
|
ran to bury her face on her mistress' shoulder.
|
|
|
|
Jane, turning at the cry, saw the cause of it lying prone
|
|
upon the floor before them--the whitened skeleton of a man.
|
|
A further glance revealed a second skeleton upon the bed.
|
|
|
|
"What horrible place are we in?" murmured the awe-struck
|
|
girl. But there was no panic in her fright.
|
|
|
|
At last, disengaging herself from the frantic clutch of the still
|
|
shrieking Esmeralda, Jane crossed the room to look into the little
|
|
cradle, knowing what she should see there even before the tiny
|
|
skeleton disclosed itself in all its pitiful and pathetic frailty.
|
|
|
|
What an awful tragedy these poor mute bones proclaimed!
|
|
The girl shuddered at thought of the eventualities which
|
|
might lie before herself and her friends in this ill-fated
|
|
cabin, the haunt of mysterious, perhaps hostile, beings.
|
|
|
|
Quickly, with an impatient stamp of her little foot, she
|
|
endeavored to shake off the gloomy forebodings, and turning to
|
|
Esmeralda bade her cease her wailing.
|
|
|
|
"Stop, Esmeralda, stop it this minute!" she cried. "You are
|
|
only making it worse."
|
|
|
|
She ended lamely, a little quiver in her own voice as she
|
|
thought of the three men, upon whom she depended for
|
|
protection, wandering in the depth of that awful forest.
|
|
|
|
Soon the girl found that the door was equipped with a
|
|
heavy wooden bar upon the inside, and after several efforts
|
|
the combined strength of the two enabled them to slip it into
|
|
place, the first time in twenty years.
|
|
|
|
Then they sat down upon a bench with their arms about
|
|
one another, and waited.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 14
|
|
|
|
At the Mercy of the Jungle
|
|
|
|
After Clayton had plunged into the jungle, the sailors
|
|
--mutineers of the Arrow--fell into a discussion of their
|
|
next step; but on one point all were agreed--that they should
|
|
hasten to put off to the anchored Arrow, where they could at
|
|
least be safe from the spears of their unseen foe. And so,
|
|
while Jane Porter and Esmeralda were barricading themselves
|
|
within the cabin, the cowardly crew of cutthroats were pulling
|
|
rapidly for their ship in the two boats that had brought them ashore.
|
|
|
|
So much had Tarzan seen that day that his head was in a
|
|
whirl of wonder. But the most wonderful sight of all, to him,
|
|
was the face of the beautiful white girl.
|
|
|
|
Here at last was one of his own kind; of that he was positive.
|
|
And the young man and the two old men; they, too,
|
|
were much as he had pictured his own people to be.
|
|
|
|
But doubtless they were as ferocious and cruel as other
|
|
men he had seen. The fact that they alone of all the party
|
|
were unarmed might account for the fact that they had killed
|
|
no one. They might be very different if provided with weapons.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had seen the young man pick up the fallen revolver
|
|
of the wounded Snipes and hide it away in his breast; and he
|
|
had also seen him slip it cautiously to the girl as she entered
|
|
the cabin door.
|
|
|
|
He did not understand anything of the motives behind all
|
|
that he had seen; but, somehow, intuitively he liked the
|
|
young man and the two old men, and for the girl he had a
|
|
strange longing which he scarcely understood. As for the big
|
|
black woman, she was evidently connected in some way to
|
|
the girl, and so he liked her, also.
|
|
|
|
For the sailors, and especially Snipes, he had developed a
|
|
great hatred. He knew by their threatening gestures and by
|
|
the expression upon their evil faces that they were enemies
|
|
of the others of the party, and so he decided to watch closely.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan wondered why the men had gone into the jungle,
|
|
nor did it ever occur to him that one could become lost in
|
|
that maze of undergrowth which to him was as simple as is the
|
|
main street of your own home town to you.
|
|
|
|
When he saw the sailors row away toward the ship, and
|
|
knew that the girl and her companion were safe in his cabin,
|
|
Tarzan decided to follow the young man into the jungle and
|
|
learn what his errand might be. He swung off rapidly in the
|
|
direction taken by Clayton, and in a short time heard faintly
|
|
in the distance the now only occasional calls of the Englishman
|
|
to his friends.
|
|
|
|
Presently Tarzan came up with the white man, who, almost
|
|
fagged, was leaning against a tree wiping the perspiration
|
|
from his forehead. The ape-man, hiding safe behind a
|
|
screen of foliage, sat watching this new specimen of his own
|
|
race intently.
|
|
|
|
At intervals Clayton called aloud and finally it came to
|
|
Tarzan that he was searching for the old man.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was on the point of going off to look for them himself,
|
|
when he caught the yellow glint of a sleek hide moving
|
|
cautiously through the jungle toward Clayton.
|
|
|
|
It was Sheeta, the leopard. Now, Tarzan heard the soft
|
|
bending of grasses and wondered why the young white man
|
|
was not warned. Could it be he had failed to note the loud
|
|
warning? Never before had Tarzan known Sheeta to be so clumsy.
|
|
|
|
No, the white man did not hear. Sheeta was crouching for
|
|
the spring, and then, shrill and horrible, there rose from the
|
|
stillness of the jungle the awful cry of the challenging ape,
|
|
and Sheeta turned, crashing into the underbrush.
|
|
|
|
Clayton came to his feet with a start. His blood ran cold.
|
|
Never in all his life had so fearful a sound smote upon his
|
|
ears. He was no coward; but if ever man felt the icy fingers
|
|
of fear upon his heart, William Cecil Clayton, eldest son of
|
|
Lord Greystoke of England, did that day in the fastness of
|
|
the African jungle.
|
|
|
|
The noise of some great body crashing through the underbrush
|
|
so close beside him, and the sound of that bloodcurdling
|
|
shriek from above, tested Clayton's courage to the limit;
|
|
but he could not know that it was to that very voice he owed
|
|
his life, nor that the creature who hurled it forth was his own
|
|
cousin--the real Lord Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
The afternoon was drawing to a close, and Clayton,
|
|
disheartened and discouraged, was in a terrible quandary as to
|
|
the proper course to pursue; whether to keep on in search of
|
|
Professor Porter, at the almost certain risk of his own death
|
|
in the jungle by night, or to return to the cabin where he
|
|
might at least serve to protect Jane from the perils which
|
|
confronted her on all sides.
|
|
|
|
He did not wish to return to camp without her father; still
|
|
more, he shrank from the thought of leaving her alone and
|
|
unprotected in the hands of the mutineers of the Arrow,
|
|
or to the hundred unknown dangers of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Possibly, too, he thought, the professor and Philander
|
|
might have returned to camp. Yes, that was more than likely.
|
|
At least he would return and see, before he continued what
|
|
seemed to be a most fruitless quest. And so he started,
|
|
stumbling back through the thick and matted underbrush in the
|
|
direction that he thought the cabin lay.
|
|
|
|
To Tarzan's surprise the young man was heading further
|
|
into the jungle in the general direction of Mbonga's village,
|
|
and the shrewd young ape-man was convinced that he was lost.
|
|
|
|
To Tarzan this was scarcely incomprehensible; his judgment
|
|
told him that no man would venture toward the village of the
|
|
cruel blacks armed only with a spear which, from the awkward
|
|
way in which he carried it, was evidently an unaccustomed
|
|
weapon to this white man. Nor was he following the
|
|
trail of the old men. That, they had crossed and left long
|
|
since, though it had been fresh and plain before Tarzan's eyes.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was perplexed. The fierce jungle would make easy
|
|
prey of this unprotected stranger in a very short time if he
|
|
were not guided quickly to the beach.
|
|
|
|
Yes, there was Numa, the lion, even now, stalking the
|
|
white man a dozen paces to the right.
|
|
|
|
Clayton heard the great body paralleling his course, and
|
|
now there rose upon the evening air the beast's thunderous
|
|
roar. The man stopped with upraised spear and faced the
|
|
brush from which issued the awful sound. The shadows were
|
|
deepening, darkness was settling in.
|
|
|
|
God! To die here alone, beneath the fangs of wild beasts;
|
|
to be torn and rended; to feel the hot breath of the brute on
|
|
his face as the great paw crushed down up his breast!
|
|
|
|
For a moment all was still. Clayton stood rigid, with raised
|
|
spear. Presently a faint rustling of the bush apprised him of
|
|
the stealthy creeping of the thing behind. It was gathering for
|
|
the spring. At last he saw it, not twenty feet away--the long,
|
|
lithe, muscular body and tawny head of a huge black-maned lion.
|
|
|
|
The beast was upon its belly, moving forward very slowly.
|
|
As its eyes met Clayton's it stopped, and deliberately,
|
|
cautiously gathered its hind quarters behind it.
|
|
|
|
In agony the man watched, fearful to launch his spear,
|
|
powerless to fly.
|
|
|
|
He heard a noise in the tree above him. Some new danger,
|
|
he thought, but he dared not take his eyes from the yellow
|
|
green orbs before him. There was a sharp twang as of a broken
|
|
banjo-string, and at the same instant an arrow appeared
|
|
in the yellow hide of the crouching lion.
|
|
|
|
With a roar of pain and anger the beast sprang; but, somehow,
|
|
Clayton stumbled to one side, and as he turned again to
|
|
face the infuriated king of beasts, he was appalled at the sight
|
|
which confronted him. Almost simultaneously with the lion's
|
|
turning to renew the attack a half-naked giant dropped from
|
|
the tree above squarely on the brute's back.
|
|
|
|
With lightning speed an arm that was banded layers of iron
|
|
muscle encircled the huge neck, and the great beast was
|
|
raised from behind, roaring and pawing the air--raised as
|
|
easily as Clayton would have lifted a pet dog.
|
|
|
|
The scene he witnessed there in the twilight depths of the
|
|
African jungle was burned forever into the Englishman's brain.
|
|
|
|
The man before him was the embodiment of physical perfection
|
|
and giant strength; yet it was not upon these he depended
|
|
in his battle with the great cat, for mighty as were his
|
|
muscles, they were as nothing by comparison with Numa's.
|
|
To his agility, to his brain and to his long keen knife he
|
|
owed his supremacy.
|
|
|
|
His right arm encircled the lion's neck, while the left hand
|
|
plunged the knife time and again into the unprotected side
|
|
behind the left shoulder. The infuriated beast, pulled up and
|
|
backwards until he stood upon his hind legs, struggled
|
|
impotently in this unnatural position.
|
|
|
|
Had the battle been of a few seconds' longer duration the
|
|
outcome might have been different, but it was all accomplished
|
|
so quickly that the lion had scarce time to recover from the
|
|
confusion of its surprise ere it sank lifeless to the ground.
|
|
|
|
Then the strange figure which had vanquished it stood
|
|
erect upon the carcass, and throwing back the wild and
|
|
handsome head, gave out the fearsome cry which a few moments
|
|
earlier had so startled Clayton.
|
|
|
|
Before him he saw the figure of a young man, naked except
|
|
for a loin cloth and a few barbaric ornaments about
|
|
arms and legs; on the breast a priceless diamond locket
|
|
gleaming against a smooth brown skin.
|
|
|
|
The hunting knife had been returned to its homely sheath,
|
|
and the man was gathering up his bow and quiver from
|
|
where he had tossed them when he leaped to attack the lion.
|
|
|
|
Clayton spoke to the stranger in English, thanking him for
|
|
his brave rescue and complimenting him on the wondrous
|
|
strength and dexterity he had displayed, but the only answer
|
|
was a steady stare and a faint shrug of the mighty shoulders,
|
|
which might betoken either disparagement of the service
|
|
rendered, or ignorance of Clayton's language.
|
|
|
|
When the bow and quiver had been slung to his back the
|
|
wild man, for such Clayton now thought him, once more
|
|
drew his knife and deftly carved a dozen large strips of meat
|
|
from the lion's carcass. Then, squatting upon his haunches,
|
|
he proceeded to eat, first motioning Clayton to join him.
|
|
|
|
The strong white teeth sank into the raw and dripping flesh
|
|
in apparent relish of the meal, but Clayton could not bring
|
|
himself to share the uncooked meat with his strange host;
|
|
instead he watched him, and presently there dawned upon him
|
|
the conviction that this was Tarzan of the Apes, whose notice
|
|
he had seen posted upon the cabin door that morning.
|
|
|
|
If so he must speak English.
|
|
|
|
Again Clayton attempted speech with the ape-man; but the
|
|
replies, now vocal, were in a strange tongue, which resembled
|
|
the chattering of monkeys mingled with the growling of some
|
|
wild beast.
|
|
|
|
No, this could not be Tarzan of the Apes, for it was very
|
|
evident that he was an utter stranger to English.
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan had completed his repast he rose and, pointing
|
|
a very different direction from that which Clayton had
|
|
been pursuing, started off through the jungle toward the point
|
|
he had indicated.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, bewildered and confused, hesitated to follow him,
|
|
for he thought he was but being led more deeply into the
|
|
mazes of the forest; but the ape-man, seeing him disinclined
|
|
to follow, returned, and, grasping him by the coat, dragged
|
|
him along until he was convinced that Clayton understood what
|
|
was required of him. Then he left him to follow voluntarily.
|
|
|
|
The Englishman, finally concluding that he was a prisoner,
|
|
saw no alternative open but to accompany his captor, and
|
|
thus they traveled slowly through the jungle while the sable
|
|
mantle of the impenetrable forest night fell about them, and
|
|
the stealthy footfalls of padded paws mingled with the breaking
|
|
of twigs and the wild calls of the savage life that Clayton
|
|
felt closing in upon him.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly Clayton heard the faint report of a firearm--a
|
|
single shot, and then silence.
|
|
|
|
In the cabin by the beach two thoroughly terrified women
|
|
clung to each other as they crouched upon the low bench in
|
|
the gathering darkness.
|
|
|
|
The Negress sobbed hysterically, bemoaning the evil day
|
|
that had witnessed her departure from her dear Maryland,
|
|
while the white girl, dry eyed and outwardly calm, was torn
|
|
by inward fears and forebodings. She feared not more for
|
|
herself than for the three men whom she knew to be wandering
|
|
in the abysmal depths of the savage jungle, from which
|
|
she now heard issuing the almost incessant shrieks and roars,
|
|
barkings and growlings of its terrifying and fearsome denizens
|
|
as they sought their prey.
|
|
|
|
And now there came the sound of a heavy body brushing
|
|
against the side of the cabin. She could hear the great padded
|
|
paws upon the ground outside. For an instant, all was silence;
|
|
even the bedlam of the forest died to a faint murmur. Then
|
|
she distinctly heard the beast outside sniffing at the door, not
|
|
two feet from where she crouched. Instinctively the girl
|
|
shuddered, and shrank closer to the black woman.
|
|
|
|
"Hush!" she whispered. "Hush, Esmeralda," for the
|
|
woman's sobs and groans seemed to have attracted the thing
|
|
that stalked there just beyond the thin wall.
|
|
|
|
A gentle scratching sound was heard on the door. The
|
|
brute tried to force an entrance; but presently this ceased,
|
|
and again she heard the great pads creeping stealthily around
|
|
the cabin. Again they stopped--beneath the window on
|
|
which the terrified eyes of the girl now glued themselves.
|
|
|
|
"God!" she murmured, for now, silhouetted against the
|
|
moonlit sky beyond, she saw framed in the tiny square of the
|
|
latticed window the head of a huge lioness. The gleaming
|
|
eyes were fixed upon her in intent ferocity.
|
|
|
|
"Look, Esmeralda!" she whispered. "For God's sake, what
|
|
shall we do? Look! Quick! The window!"
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda, cowering still closer to her mistress, took one
|
|
frightened glance toward the little square of moonlight, just
|
|
as the lioness emitted a low, savage snarl.
|
|
|
|
The sight that met the poor woman's eyes was too much
|
|
for the already overstrung nerves.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Gaberelle!" she shrieked, and slid to the floor an inert
|
|
and senseless mass.
|
|
|
|
For what seemed an eternity the great brute stood with its
|
|
forepaws upon the sill, glaring into the little room. Presently
|
|
it tried the strength of the lattice with its great talons.
|
|
|
|
The girl had almost ceased to breathe, when, to her relief,
|
|
the head disappeared and she heard the brute's footsteps leaving
|
|
the window. But now they came to the door again, and
|
|
once more the scratching commenced; this time with increasing
|
|
force until the great beast was tearing at the massive panels
|
|
in a perfect frenzy of eagerness to seize its defenseless victims.
|
|
|
|
Could Jane have known the immense strength of that door,
|
|
built piece by piece, she would have felt less fear of the
|
|
lioness reaching her by this avenue.
|
|
|
|
Little did John Clayton imagine when he fashioned that
|
|
crude but mighty portal that one day, twenty years later, it
|
|
would shield a fair American girl, then unborn, from the
|
|
teeth and talons of a man-eater.
|
|
|
|
For fully twenty minutes the brute alternately sniffed and
|
|
tore at the door, occasionally giving voice to a wild, savage
|
|
cry of baffled rage. At length, however, she gave up the
|
|
attempt, and Jane heard her returning toward the window,
|
|
beneath which she paused for an instant, and then launched
|
|
her great weight against the timeworn lattice.
|
|
|
|
The girl heard the wooden rods groan beneath the impact; but
|
|
they held, and the huge body dropped back to the ground below.
|
|
|
|
Again and again the lioness repeated these tactics, until
|
|
finally the horrified prisoner within saw a portion of the
|
|
lattice give way, and in an instant one great paw and the head
|
|
of the animal were thrust within the room.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the powerful neck and shoulders spread the bars
|
|
apart, and the lithe body protruded farther and farther into
|
|
the room.
|
|
|
|
As in a trance, the girl rose, her hand upon her breast,
|
|
wide eyes staring horror-stricken into the snarling face of the
|
|
beast scarce ten feet from her. At her feet lay the prostrate
|
|
form of the Negress. If she could but arouse her, their combined
|
|
efforts might possibly avail to beat back the fierce and
|
|
bloodthirsty intruder.
|
|
|
|
Jane stooped to grasp the black woman by the shoulder.
|
|
Roughly she shook her.
|
|
|
|
"Esmeralda! Esmeralda!" she cried. "Help me, or we are lost."
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda opened her eyes. The first object they
|
|
encountered was the dripping fangs of the hungry lioness.
|
|
|
|
With a horrified scream the poor woman rose to her hands and
|
|
knees, and in this position scurried across the room, shrieking:
|
|
"O Gaberelle! O Gaberelle!" at the top of her lungs.
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda weighed some two hundred and eighty pounds,
|
|
and her extreme haste, added to her extreme corpulency,
|
|
produced a most amazing result when Esmeralda elected to
|
|
travel on all fours.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the lioness remained quiet with intense gaze
|
|
directed upon the flitting Esmeralda, whose goal appeared to
|
|
be the cupboard, into which she attempted to propel her huge
|
|
bulk; but as the shelves were but nine or ten inches apart, she
|
|
only succeeded in getting her head in; whereupon, with a final
|
|
screech, which paled the jungle noises into insignificance, she
|
|
fainted once again.
|
|
|
|
With the subsidence of Esmeralda the lioness renewed her
|
|
efforts to wriggle her huge bulk through the weakening lattice.
|
|
|
|
The girl, standing pale and rigid against the farther wall,
|
|
sought with ever-increasing terror for some loophole of escape.
|
|
Suddenly her hand, tight-pressed against her bosom, felt
|
|
the hard outline of the revolver that Clayton had left with
|
|
her earlier in the day.
|
|
|
|
Quickly she snatched it from its hiding-place, and, leveling
|
|
it full at the lioness's face, pulled the trigger.
|
|
|
|
There was a flash of flame, the roar of the discharge, and
|
|
an answering roar of pain and anger from the beast.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter saw the great form disappear from the window,
|
|
and then she, too, fainted, the revolver falling at her side.
|
|
|
|
But Sabor was not killed. The bullet had but inflicted a
|
|
painful wound in one of the great shoulders. It was the
|
|
surprise at the blinding flash and the deafening roar that had
|
|
caused her hasty but temporary retreat.
|
|
|
|
In another instant she was back at the lattice, and with
|
|
renewed fury was clawing at the aperture, but with lessened
|
|
effect, since the wounded member was almost useless.
|
|
|
|
She saw her prey--the two women--lying senseless upon
|
|
the floor. There was no longer any resistance to be overcome.
|
|
Her meat lay before her, and Sabor had only to worm her
|
|
way through the lattice to claim it.
|
|
|
|
Slowly she forced her great bulk, inch by inch, through the
|
|
opening. Now her head was through, now one great forearm
|
|
and shoulder.
|
|
|
|
Carefully she drew up the wounded member to insinuate?? it
|
|
gently beyond the tight pressing bars.
|
|
|
|
A moment more and both shoulders through, the long,
|
|
sinuous body and the narrow hips would glide quickly after.
|
|
|
|
It was on this sight that Jane Porter again opened her eyes.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 15
|
|
|
|
The Forest God
|
|
|
|
When Clayton heard the report of the firearm he fell into
|
|
an agony of fear and apprehension. He knew that one of
|
|
the sailors might be the author of it; but the fact that he
|
|
had left the revolver with Jane, together with the overwrought
|
|
condition of his nerves, made him morbidly positive
|
|
that she was threatened with some great danger. Perhaps
|
|
even now she was attempting to defend herself against some
|
|
savage man or beast.
|
|
|
|
What were the thoughts of his strange captor or guide
|
|
Clayton could only vaguely conjecture; but that he had heard
|
|
the shot, and was in some manner affected by it was quite
|
|
evident, for he quickened his pace so appreciably that Clayton,
|
|
stumbling blindly in his wake, was down a dozen times
|
|
in as many minutes in a vain effort to keep pace with him,
|
|
and soon was left hopelessly behind.
|
|
|
|
Fearing that he would again be irretrievably lost, he called
|
|
aloud to the wild man ahead of him, and in a moment had the
|
|
satisfaction of seeing him drop lightly to his side from the
|
|
branches above.
|
|
|
|
For a moment Tarzan looked at the young man closely, as
|
|
though undecided as to just what was best to do; then,
|
|
stooping down before Clayton, he motioned him to grasp him
|
|
about the neck, and, with the white man upon his back,
|
|
Tarzan took to the trees.
|
|
|
|
The next few minutes the young Englishman never forgot.
|
|
High into bending and swaying branches he was borne with
|
|
what seemed to him incredible swiftness, while Tarzan chafed
|
|
at the slowness of his progress.
|
|
|
|
From one lofty branch the agile creature swung with Clayton
|
|
through a dizzy arc to a neighboring tree; then for a hundred
|
|
yards maybe the sure feet threaded a maze of interwoven limbs,
|
|
balancing like a tightrope walker high above the black depths
|
|
of verdure beneath.
|
|
|
|
From the first sensation of chilling fear Clayton passed to
|
|
one of keen admiration and envy of those giant muscles and
|
|
that wondrous instinct or knowledge which guided this forest
|
|
god through the inky blackness of the night as easily and safely
|
|
as Clayton would have strolled a London street at high noon.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally they would enter a spot where the foliage
|
|
above was less dense, and the bright rays of the moon lit up
|
|
before Clayton's wondering eyes the strange path they were
|
|
traversing.
|
|
|
|
At such times the man fairly caught his breath at sight of
|
|
the horrid depths below them, for Tarzan took the easiest
|
|
way, which often led over a hundred feet above the earth.
|
|
|
|
And yet with all his seeming speed, Tarzan was in reality
|
|
feeling his way with comparative slowness, searching
|
|
constantly for limbs of adequate strength for the maintenance
|
|
of this double weight.
|
|
|
|
Presently they came to the clearing before the beach.
|
|
Tarzan's quick ears had heard the strange sounds of Sabor's
|
|
efforts to force her way through the lattice, and it seemed to
|
|
Clayton that they dropped a straight hundred feet to earth, so
|
|
quickly did Tarzan descend. Yet when they struck the ground
|
|
it was with scarce a jar; and as Clayton released his hold on
|
|
the ape-man he saw him dart like a squirrel for the opposite
|
|
side of the cabin.
|
|
|
|
The Englishman sprang quickly after him just in time to
|
|
see the hind quarters of some huge animal about to disappear
|
|
through the window of the cabin.
|
|
|
|
As Jane opened her eyes to a realization of the imminent
|
|
peril which threatened her, her brave young heart gave up at
|
|
last its final vestige of hope. But then to her surprise she saw
|
|
the huge animal being slowly drawn back through the window,
|
|
and in the moonlight beyond she saw the heads and
|
|
shoulders of two men.
|
|
|
|
As Clayton rounded the corner of the cabin to behold the
|
|
animal disappearing within, it was also to see the ape-man
|
|
seize the long tail in both hands, and, bracing himself with
|
|
his feet against the side of the cabin, throw all his mighty
|
|
strength into the effort to draw the beast out of the interior.
|
|
|
|
Clayton was quick to lend a hand, but the ape-man jabbered
|
|
to him in a commanding and peremptory tone something
|
|
which Clayton knew to be orders, though he could not
|
|
understand them.
|
|
|
|
At last, under their combined efforts, the great body was
|
|
slowly dragged farther and farther outside the window, and
|
|
then there came to Clayton's mind a dawning conception of
|
|
the rash bravery of his companion's act.
|
|
|
|
For a naked man to drag a shrieking, clawing man-eater
|
|
forth from a window by the tail to save a strange white girl,
|
|
was indeed the last word in heroism.
|
|
|
|
Insofar as Clayton was concerned it was a very different
|
|
matter, since the girl was not only of his own kind and race,
|
|
but was the one woman in all the world whom he loved.
|
|
|
|
Though he knew that the lioness would make short work
|
|
of both of them, he pulled with a will to keep it from Jane
|
|
Porter. And then he recalled the battle between this man and
|
|
the great, black-maned lion which he had witnessed a short
|
|
time before, and he commenced to feel more assurance.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was still issuing orders which Clayton could not understand.
|
|
|
|
He was trying to tell the stupid white man to plunge his
|
|
poisoned arrows into Sabor's back and sides, and to reach the
|
|
savage heart with the long, thin hunting knife that hung at
|
|
Tarzan's hip; but the man would not understand, and Tarzan
|
|
did not dare release his hold to do the things himself, for he
|
|
knew that the puny white man never could hold mighty
|
|
Sabor alone, for an instant.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the lioness was emerging from the window. At last
|
|
her shoulders were out.
|
|
|
|
And then Clayton saw an incredible thing. Tarzan, racking
|
|
his brains for some means to cope single-handed with the
|
|
infuriated beast, had suddenly recalled his battle with Terkoz;
|
|
and as the great shoulders came clear of the window, so that
|
|
the lioness hung upon the sill only by her forepaws, Tarzan
|
|
suddenly released his hold upon the brute.
|
|
|
|
With the quickness of a striking rattler he launched himself
|
|
full upon Sabor's back, his strong young arms seeking and
|
|
gaining a full-Nelson upon the beast, as he had learned it that
|
|
other day during his bloody, wrestling victory over Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
With a roar the lioness turned completely over upon her
|
|
back, falling full upon her enemy; but the black-haired giant
|
|
only closed tighter his hold.
|
|
|
|
Pawing and tearing at earth and air, Sabor rolled and
|
|
threw herself this way and that in an effort to dislodge this
|
|
strange antagonist; but ever tighter and tighter drew the iron
|
|
bands that were forcing her head lower and lower upon her
|
|
tawny breast.
|
|
|
|
Higher crept the steel forearms of the ape-man about the back
|
|
of Sabor's neck. Weaker and weaker became the lioness's efforts.
|
|
|
|
At last Clayton saw the immense muscles of Tarzan's
|
|
shoulders and biceps leap into corded knots beneath the silver
|
|
moonlight. There was a long sustained and supreme effort on
|
|
the ape-man's part--and the vertebrae of Sabor's neck parted
|
|
with a sharp snap.
|
|
|
|
In an instant Tarzan was upon his feet, and for the second
|
|
time that day Clayton heard the bull ape's savage roar of
|
|
victory. Then he heard Jane's agonized cry:
|
|
|
|
"Cecil--Mr. Clayton! Oh, what is it? What is it?"
|
|
|
|
Running quickly to the cabin door, Clayton called out that all
|
|
was right, and shouted to her to open the door. As quickly as
|
|
she could she raised the great bar and fairly dragged Clayton within.
|
|
|
|
"What was that awful noise?" she whispered, shrinking
|
|
close to him.
|
|
|
|
"It was the cry of the kill from the throat of the man who
|
|
has just saved your life, Miss Porter. Wait, I will fetch
|
|
him so you may thank him."
|
|
|
|
The frightened girl would not be left alone, so she
|
|
accompanied Clayton to the side of the cabin where lay
|
|
the dead body of the lioness.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was gone.
|
|
|
|
Clayton called several times, but there was no reply, and so
|
|
the two returned to the greater safety of the interior.
|
|
|
|
"What a frightful sound!" cried Jane, "I shudder at the
|
|
mere thought of it. Do not tell me that a human throat
|
|
voiced that hideous and fearsome shriek."
|
|
|
|
"But it did, Miss Porter," replied Clayton; "or at least if
|
|
not a human throat that of a forest god."
|
|
|
|
And then he told her of his experiences with this strange
|
|
creature--of how twice the wild man had saved his life--of
|
|
the wondrous strength, and agility, and bravery--of the
|
|
brown skin and the handsome face.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot make it out at all," he concluded. "At first I
|
|
thought he might be Tarzan of the Apes; but he neither
|
|
speaks nor understands English, so that theory is untenable."
|
|
|
|
"Well, whatever he may be," cried the girl, "we owe him
|
|
our lives, and may God bless him and keep him in safety in
|
|
his wild and savage jungle!"
|
|
|
|
"Amen," said Clayton, fervently.
|
|
|
|
"For the good Lord's sake, ain't I dead?"
|
|
|
|
The two turned to see Esmeralda sitting upright upon the
|
|
floor, her great eyes rolling from side to side as though she
|
|
could not believe their testimony as to her whereabouts.
|
|
|
|
And now, for Jane Porter, the reaction came, and she threw
|
|
herself upon the bench, sobbing with hysterical laughter.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 16
|
|
|
|
"Most Remarkable"
|
|
|
|
Several miles south of the cabin, upon a strip of sandy
|
|
beach, stood two old men, arguing.
|
|
|
|
Before them stretched the broad Atlantic. At their backs
|
|
was the Dark Continent. Close around them loomed the
|
|
impenetrable blackness of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Savage beasts roared and growled; noises, hideous and
|
|
weird, assailed their ears. They had wandered for miles in
|
|
search of their camp, but always in the wrong direction. They
|
|
were as hopelessly lost as though they suddenly had been
|
|
transported to another world.
|
|
|
|
At such a time, indeed, every fiber of their combined
|
|
intellects must have been concentrated upon the vital
|
|
question of the minute--the life-and-death question to
|
|
them of retracing their steps to camp.
|
|
|
|
Samuel T. Philander was speaking.
|
|
|
|
"But, my dear professor," he was saying, "I still maintain
|
|
that but for the victories of Ferdinand and Isabella over the
|
|
fifteenth-century Moors in Spain the world would be today a
|
|
thousand years in advance of where we now find ourselves.
|
|
The Moors were essentially a tolerant, broad-minded, liberal
|
|
race of agriculturists, artisans and merchants--the very type
|
|
of people that has made possible such civilization as we find
|
|
today in America and Europe--while the Spaniards--"
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, dear Mr. Philander," interrupted Professor Porter;
|
|
"their religion positively precluded the possibilities you
|
|
suggest. Moslemism was, is, and always will be, a blight on
|
|
that scientific progress which has marked--"
|
|
|
|
"Bless me! Professor," interjected Mr. Philander, who had
|
|
turned his gaze toward the jungle, "there seems to be someone
|
|
approaching."
|
|
|
|
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter turned in the direction
|
|
indicated by the nearsighted Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander," he chided. "How often must I
|
|
urge you to seek that absolute concentration of your mental
|
|
faculties which alone may permit you to bring to bear the
|
|
highest powers of intellectuality upon the momentous problems
|
|
which naturally fall to the lot of great minds? And now
|
|
I find you guilty of a most flagrant breach of courtesy in
|
|
interrupting my learned discourse to call attention to a mere
|
|
quadruped of the genus FELIS. As I was saying, Mr.--"
|
|
|
|
"Heavens, Professor, a lion?" cried Mr. Philander, straining
|
|
his weak eyes toward the dim figure outlined against the
|
|
dark tropical underbrush.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes, Mr. Philander, if you insist upon employing
|
|
slang in your discourse, a `lion.' But as I was saying--"
|
|
|
|
"Bless me, Professor," again interrupted Mr. Philander;
|
|
"permit me to suggest that doubtless the Moors who were
|
|
conquered in the fifteenth century will continue in that most
|
|
regrettable condition for the time being at least, even though
|
|
we postpone discussion of that world calamity until we may
|
|
attain the enchanting view of yon FELIS CARNIVORA which
|
|
distance proverbially is credited with lending."
|
|
|
|
In the meantime the lion had approached with quiet dignity
|
|
to within ten paces of the two men, where he stood curiously
|
|
watching them.
|
|
|
|
The moonlight flooded the beach, and the strange group
|
|
stood out in bold relief against the yellow sand.
|
|
|
|
"Most reprehensible, most reprehensible," exclaimed Professor
|
|
Porter, with a faint trace of irritation in his voice.
|
|
"Never, Mr. Philander, never before in my life have I known
|
|
one of these animals to be permitted to roam at large from
|
|
its cage. I shall most certainly report this outrageous breach
|
|
of ethics to the directors of the adjacent zoological garden."
|
|
|
|
"Quite right, Professor," agreed Mr. Philander, "and the
|
|
sooner it is done the better. Let us start now."
|
|
|
|
Seizing the professor by the arm, Mr. Philander set off in
|
|
the direction that would put the greatest distance between
|
|
themselves and the lion.
|
|
|
|
They had proceeded but a short distance when a backward
|
|
glance revealed to the horrified gaze of Mr. Philander that
|
|
the lion was following them. He tightened his grip upon the
|
|
protesting professor and increased his speed.
|
|
|
|
"As I was saying, Mr. Philander," repeated Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander took another hasty glance rearward. The lion
|
|
also had quickened his gait, and was doggedly maintaining an
|
|
unvarying distance behind them.
|
|
|
|
"He is following us!" gasped Mr. Philander, breaking into a run.
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander," remonstrated the professor, "this
|
|
unseemly haste is most unbecoming to men of letters. What
|
|
will our friends think of us, who may chance to be upon the
|
|
street and witness our frivolous antics? Pray let us proceed
|
|
with more decorum."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander stole another observation astern.
|
|
|
|
The lion was bounding along in easy leaps scarce five paces behind.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander dropped the professor's arm, and broke into
|
|
a mad orgy of speed that would have done credit to any
|
|
varsity track team.
|
|
|
|
"As I was saying, Mr. Philander--" screamed Professor
|
|
Porter, as, metaphorically speaking, he himself "threw her
|
|
into high." He, too, had caught a fleeting backward glimpse
|
|
of cruel yellow eyes and half open mouth within startling
|
|
proximity of his person.
|
|
|
|
With streaming coat tails and shiny silk hat Professor
|
|
Archimedes Q. Porter fled through the moonlight close upon
|
|
the heels of Mr. Samuel T. Philander.
|
|
|
|
Before them a point of the jungle ran out toward a narrow
|
|
promontory, and it was for the heaven of the trees he saw
|
|
there that Mr. Samuel T. Philander directed his prodigious
|
|
leaps and bounds; while from the shadows of this same spot
|
|
peered two keen eyes in interested appreciation of the race.
|
|
|
|
It was Tarzan of the Apes who watched, with face a-grin,
|
|
this odd game of follow-the-leader.
|
|
|
|
He knew the two men were safe enough from attack in so
|
|
far as the lion was concerned. The very fact that Numa had
|
|
foregone such easy prey at all convinced the wise forest craft
|
|
of Tarzan that Numa's belly already was full.
|
|
|
|
The lion might stalk them until hungry again; but the
|
|
chances were that if not angered he would soon tire of the
|
|
sport, and slink away to his jungle lair.
|
|
|
|
Really, the one great danger was that one of the men
|
|
might stumble and fall, and then the yellow devil would be
|
|
upon him in a moment and the joy of the kill would be too
|
|
great a temptation to withstand.
|
|
|
|
So Tarzan swung quickly to a lower limb in line with the
|
|
approaching fugitives; and as Mr. Samuel T. Philander came
|
|
panting and blowing beneath him, already too spent to struggle
|
|
up to the safety of the limb, Tarzan reached down and,
|
|
grasping him by the collar of his coat, yanked him to the
|
|
limb by his side.
|
|
|
|
Another moment brought the professor within the sphere
|
|
of the friendly grip, and he, too, was drawn upward to safety
|
|
just as the baffled Numa, with a roar, leaped to recover his
|
|
vanishing quarry.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the two men clung panting to the great
|
|
branch, while Tarzan squatted with his back to the stem of
|
|
the tree, watching them with mingled curiosity and amusement.
|
|
|
|
It was the professor who first broke the silence.
|
|
|
|
"I am deeply pained, Mr. Philander, that you should have
|
|
evinced such a paucity of manly courage in the presence of
|
|
one of the lower orders, and by your crass timidity have
|
|
caused me to exert myself to such an unaccustomed degree in
|
|
order that I might resume my discourse. As I was saying, Mr.
|
|
Philander, when you interrupted me, the Moors--"
|
|
|
|
"Professor Archimedes Q. Porter," broke in Mr. Philander,
|
|
in icy tones, "the time has arrived when patience becomes a
|
|
crime and mayhem appears garbed in the mantle of virtue.
|
|
You have accused me of cowardice. You have insinuated that
|
|
you ran only to overtake me, not to escape the clutches of
|
|
the lion. Have a care, Professor Archimedes Q. Porter! I am
|
|
a desperate man. Goaded by long-suffering patience the
|
|
worm will turn."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander, tut, tut!" cautioned Professor
|
|
Porter; "you forget yourself."
|
|
|
|
"I forget nothing as yet, Professor Archimedes Q. Porter; but,
|
|
believe me, sir, I am tottering on the verge of forgetfulness
|
|
as to your exalted position in the world of science, and
|
|
your gray hairs."
|
|
|
|
The professor sat in silence for a few minutes, and the
|
|
darkness hid the grim smile that wreathed his wrinkled
|
|
countenance. Presently he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Look here, Skinny Philander," he said, in belligerent tones,
|
|
"if you are lookin' for a scrap, peel off your coat and come
|
|
on down on the ground, and I'll punch your head just as I
|
|
did sixty years ago in the alley back of Porky Evans' barn."
|
|
|
|
"Ark!" gasped the astonished Mr. Philander. "Lordy, how
|
|
good that sounds! When you're human, Ark, I love you; but
|
|
somehow it seems as though you had forgotten how to be
|
|
human for the last twenty years."
|
|
|
|
The professor reached out a thin, trembling old hand
|
|
through the darkness until it found his old friend's shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"Forgive me, Skinny," he said, softly. "It hasn't been quite
|
|
twenty years, and God alone knows how hard I have tried to
|
|
be `human' for Jane's sake, and yours, too, since He took my
|
|
other Jane away."
|
|
|
|
Another old hand stole up from Mr. Philander's side to
|
|
clasp the one that lay upon his shoulder, and no other message
|
|
could better have translated the one heart to the other.
|
|
|
|
They did not speak for some minutes. The lion below them
|
|
paced nervously back and forth. The third figure in the tree
|
|
was hidden by the dense shadows near the stem. He, too, was
|
|
silent--motionless as a graven image.
|
|
|
|
"You certainly pulled me up into this tree just in time,"
|
|
said the professor at last. "I want to thank you. You saved
|
|
my life."
|
|
|
|
"But I didn't pull you up here, Professor," said Mr. Philander.
|
|
"Bless me! The excitement of the moment quite caused
|
|
me to forget that I myself was drawn up here by some outside
|
|
agency--there must be someone or something in this tree
|
|
with us."
|
|
|
|
"Eh?" ejaculated Professor Porter. "Are you quite positive,
|
|
Mr. Philander?"
|
|
|
|
"Most positive, Professor," replied Mr. Philander, "and,"
|
|
he added, "I think we should thank the party. He may be
|
|
sitting right next to you now, Professor."
|
|
|
|
"Eh? What's that? Tut, tut, Mr. Philander, tut, tut!" said
|
|
Professor Porter, edging cautiously nearer to Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
Just then it occurred to Tarzan of the Apes that Numa had
|
|
loitered beneath the tree for a sufficient length of time, so he
|
|
raised his young head toward the heavens, and there rang out
|
|
upon the terrified ears of the two old men the awful warning
|
|
challenge of the anthropoid.
|
|
|
|
The two friends, huddled trembling in their precarious position
|
|
on the limb, saw the great lion halt in his restless pacing as
|
|
the blood-curdling cry smote his ears, and then slink
|
|
quickly into the jungle, to be instantly lost to view.
|
|
|
|
"Even the lion trembles in fear," whispered Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable, most remarkable," murmured Professor
|
|
Porter, clutching frantically at Mr. Philander to regain the
|
|
balance which the sudden fright had so perilously endangered.
|
|
Unfortunately for them both, Mr. Philander's center
|
|
of equilibrium was at that very moment hanging upon the
|
|
ragged edge of nothing, so that it needed but the gentle
|
|
impetus supplied by the additional weight of Professor Porter's
|
|
body to topple the devoted secretary from the limb.
|
|
|
|
For a moment they swayed uncertainly, and then, with
|
|
mingled and most unscholarly shrieks, they pitched headlong
|
|
from the tree, locked in frenzied embrace.
|
|
|
|
It was quite some moments ere either moved, for both
|
|
were positive that any such attempt would reveal so many
|
|
breaks and fractures as to make further progress impossible.
|
|
|
|
At length Professor Porter made an attempt to move one leg.
|
|
To his surprise, it responded to his will as in days gone
|
|
by. He now drew up its mate and stretched it forth again.
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable, most remarkable," he murmured.
|
|
|
|
"Thank God, Professor," whispered Mr. Philander, fervently,
|
|
"you are not dead, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander, tut, tut," cautioned Professor
|
|
Porter, "I do not know with accuracy as yet."
|
|
|
|
With infinite solicitude Professor Porter wiggled his right
|
|
arm--joy! It was intact. Breathlessly he waved his left arm
|
|
above his prostrate body--it waved!
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable, most remarkable," he said.
|
|
|
|
"To whom are you signaling, Professor?" asked Mr. Philander,
|
|
in an excited tone.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter deigned to make no response to this
|
|
puerile inquiry. Instead he raised his head gently from
|
|
the ground, nodding it back and forth a half dozen times.
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable," he breathed. "It remains intact."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander had not moved from where he had fallen;
|
|
he had not dared the attempt. How indeed could one move
|
|
when one's arms and legs and back were broken?
|
|
|
|
One eye was buried in the soft loam; the other, rolling
|
|
sidewise, was fixed in awe upon the strange gyrations of
|
|
Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"How sad!" exclaimed Mr. Philander, half aloud. "Concussion
|
|
of the brain, superinducing total mental aberration. How
|
|
very sad indeed! and for one still so young!"
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter rolled over upon his stomach; gingerly he
|
|
bowed his back until he resembled a huge tom cat in proximity
|
|
to a yelping dog. Then he sat up and felt of various portions
|
|
of his anatomy.
|
|
|
|
"They are all here," he exclaimed. "Most remarkable!"
|
|
|
|
Whereupon he arose, and, bending a scathing glance upon
|
|
the still prostrate form of Mr. Samuel T. Philander, he said:
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander; this is no time to indulge in slothful
|
|
ease. We must be up and doing."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander lifted his other eye out of the mud and
|
|
gazed in speechless rage at Professor Porter. Then he
|
|
attempted to rise; nor could there have been any more
|
|
surprised than he when his efforts were immediately crowned
|
|
with marked success.
|
|
|
|
He was still bursting with rage, however, at the cruel injustice
|
|
of Professor Porter's insinuation, and was on the point of
|
|
rendering a tart rejoinder when his eyes fell upon a strange
|
|
figure standing a few paces away, scrutinizing them intently.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter had recovered his shiny silk hat, which he
|
|
had brushed carefully upon the sleeve of his coat and replaced
|
|
upon his head. When he saw Mr. Philander pointing to something
|
|
behind him he turned to behold a giant, naked but for a loin
|
|
cloth and a few metal ornaments, standing motionless before him.
|
|
|
|
"Good evening, sir!" said the professor, lifting his hat.
|
|
|
|
For reply the giant motioned them to follow him, and set off
|
|
up the beach in the direction from which they had recently come.
|
|
|
|
"I think it the better part of discretion to follow him," said
|
|
Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander," returned the professor. "A short
|
|
time since you were advancing a most logical argument in
|
|
substantiation of your theory that camp lay directly south of us.
|
|
I was skeptical, but you finally convinced me; so now I am
|
|
positive that toward the south we must travel to reach our
|
|
friends. Therefore I shall continue south."
|
|
|
|
"But, Professor Porter, this man may know better than either
|
|
of us. He seems to be indigenous to this part of the
|
|
world. Let us at least follow him for a short distance."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander," repeated the professor. "I am a
|
|
difficult man to convince, but when once convinced my decision
|
|
is unalterable. I shall continue in the proper direction, if
|
|
I have to circumambulate the continent of Africa to reach
|
|
my destination."
|
|
|
|
Further argument was interrupted by Tarzan, who, seeing
|
|
that these strange men were not following him, had returned
|
|
to their side.
|
|
|
|
Again he beckoned to them; but still they stood in argument.
|
|
|
|
Presently the ape-man lost patience with their stupid ignorance.
|
|
He grasped the frightened Mr. Philander by the shoulder, and
|
|
before that worthy gentleman knew whether he was being
|
|
killed or merely maimed for life, Tarzan had tied one
|
|
end of his rope securely about Mr. Philander's neck.
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander," remonstrated Professor Porter;
|
|
"it is most unbeseeming in you to submit to such indignities."
|
|
|
|
But scarcely were the words out of his mouth ere he, too,
|
|
had been seized and securely bound by the neck with the
|
|
same rope. Then Tarzan set off toward the north, leading the
|
|
now thoroughly frightened professor and his secretary.
|
|
|
|
In deathly silence they proceeded for what seemed hours to
|
|
the two tired and hopeless old men; but presently as they
|
|
topped a little rise of ground they were overjoyed to see the
|
|
cabin lying before them, not a hundred yards distant.
|
|
|
|
Here Tarzan released them, and, pointing toward the little
|
|
building, vanished into the jungle beside them.
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable, most remarkable!" gasped the professor.
|
|
"But you see, Mr. Philander, that I was quite right, as
|
|
usual; and but for your stubborn willfulness we should have
|
|
escaped a series of most humiliating, not to say dangerous
|
|
accidents. Pray allow yourself to be guided by a more mature
|
|
and practical mind hereafter when in need of wise counsel."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Samuel T. Philander was too much relieved at the
|
|
happy outcome to their adventure to take umbrage at the
|
|
professor's cruel fling. Instead he grasped his friend's
|
|
arm and hastened him forward in the direction of the cabin.
|
|
|
|
It was a much-relieved party of castaways that found itself
|
|
once more united. Dawn discovered them still recounting
|
|
their various adventures and speculating upon the identity of
|
|
the strange guardian and protector they had found on this
|
|
savage shore.
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda was positive that it was none other than an
|
|
angel of the Lord, sent down especially to watch over them.
|
|
|
|
"Had you seen him devour the raw meat of the lion,
|
|
Esmeralda," laughed Clayton, "you would have thought
|
|
him a very material angel."
|
|
|
|
"There was nothing heavenly about his voice," said Jane
|
|
Porter, with a little shudder at recollection of the awful roar
|
|
which had followed the killing of the lioness.
|
|
|
|
"Nor did it precisely comport with my preconceived ideas
|
|
of the dignity of divine messengers," remarked Professor
|
|
Porter, "when the--ah--gentleman tied two highly respectable
|
|
and erudite scholars neck to neck and dragged them through
|
|
the jungle as though they had been cows."
|
|
|
|
Chapter 17
|
|
|
|
Burials
|
|
|
|
As it was now quite light, the party, none of whom had
|
|
eaten or slept since the previous morning, began to bestir
|
|
themselves to prepare food.
|
|
|
|
The mutineers of the Arrow had landed a small supply of
|
|
dried meats, canned soups and vegetables, crackers, flour, tea,
|
|
and coffee for the five they had marooned, and these were
|
|
hurriedly drawn upon to satisfy the craving of long-famished
|
|
appetites.
|
|
|
|
The next task was to make the cabin habitable, and to this
|
|
end it was decided to at once remove the gruesome relics of
|
|
the tragedy which had taken place there on some bygone day.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter and Mr. Philander were deeply interested
|
|
in examining the skeletons. The two larger, they stated, had
|
|
belonged to a male and female of one of the higher white races.
|
|
|
|
The smallest skeleton was given but passing attention, as its
|
|
location, in the crib, left no doubt as to its having been the
|
|
infant offspring of this unhappy couple.
|
|
|
|
As they were preparing the skeleton of the man for burial,
|
|
Clayton discovered a massive ring which had evidently encircled
|
|
the man's finger at the time of his death, for one of the
|
|
slender bones of the hand still lay within the golden bauble.
|
|
|
|
Picking it up to examine it, Clayton gave a cry of astonishment,
|
|
for the ring bore the crest of the house of Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
At the same time, Jane discovered the books in the cupboard,
|
|
and on opening the fly-leaf of one of them saw the
|
|
name, JOHN CLAYTON, LONDON. In a second book which she
|
|
hurriedly examined was the single name, GREYSTOKE.
|
|
|
|
"Why, Mr. Clayton," she cried, "what does this mean?
|
|
Here are the names of some of your own people in these books."
|
|
|
|
"And here," he replied gravely, "is the great ring of the
|
|
house of Greystoke which has been lost since my uncle, John
|
|
Clayton, the former Lord Greystoke, disappeared, presumably
|
|
lost at sea."
|
|
|
|
"But how do you account for these things being here, in
|
|
this savage African jungle?" exclaimed the girl.
|
|
|
|
"There is but one way to account for it, Miss Porter," said
|
|
Clayton. "The late Lord Greystoke was not drowned. He
|
|
died here in this cabin and this poor thing upon the floor is
|
|
all that is mortal of him."
|
|
|
|
"Then this must have been Lady Greystoke," said Jane
|
|
reverently, indicating the poor mass of bones upon the bed.
|
|
|
|
"The beautiful Lady Alice," replied Clayton, "of whose many
|
|
virtues and remarkable personal charms I often have heard
|
|
my mother and father speak. Poor woman," he murmured sadly.
|
|
|
|
With deep reverence and solemnity the bodies of the late
|
|
Lord and Lady Greystoke were buried beside their little
|
|
African cabin, and between them was placed the tiny skeleton
|
|
of the baby of Kala, the ape.
|
|
|
|
As Mr. Philander was placing the frail bones of the infant
|
|
in a bit of sail cloth, he examined the skull minutely. Then he
|
|
called Professor Porter to his side, and the two argued in low
|
|
tones for several minutes.
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable, most remarkable," said Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"Bless me," said Mr. Philander, "we must acquaint Mr.
|
|
Clayton with our discovery at once."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, Mr. Philander, tut, tut!" remonstrated Professor
|
|
Archimedes Q. Porter. "`Let the dead past bury its dead.'"
|
|
|
|
And so the white-haired old man repeated the burial service
|
|
over this strange grave, while his four companions stood
|
|
with bowed and uncovered heads about him.
|
|
|
|
From the trees Tarzan of the Apes watched the solemn
|
|
ceremony; but most of all he watched the sweet face and
|
|
graceful figure of Jane Porter.
|
|
|
|
In his savage, untutored breast new emotions were stirring.
|
|
He could not fathom them. He wondered why he felt so
|
|
great an interest in these people--why he had gone to such
|
|
pains to save the three men. But he did not wonder why he
|
|
had torn Sabor from the tender flesh of the strange girl.
|
|
|
|
Surely the men were stupid and ridiculous and cowardly.
|
|
Even Manu, the monkey, was more intelligent than they. If
|
|
these were creatures of his own kind he was doubtful if his
|
|
past pride in blood was warranted.
|
|
|
|
But the girl, ah--that was a different matter. He did not
|
|
reason here. He knew that she was created to be protected,
|
|
and that he was created to protect her.
|
|
|
|
He wondered why they had dug a great hole in the ground
|
|
merely to bury dry bones. Surely there was no sense in that;
|
|
no one wanted to steal dry bones.
|
|
|
|
Had there been meat upon them he could have understood,
|
|
for thus alone might one keep his meat from Dango, the
|
|
hyena, and the other robbers of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
When the grave had been filled with earth the little party
|
|
turned back toward the cabin, and Esmeralda, still weeping
|
|
copiously for the two she had never heard of before today,
|
|
and who had been dead twenty years, chanced to glance toward
|
|
the harbor. Instantly her tears ceased.
|
|
|
|
"Look at them low down white trash out there!" she shrilled,
|
|
pointing toward the Arrow. "They-all's a desecrating
|
|
us, right here on this here perverted island."
|
|
|
|
And, sure enough, the Arrow was being worked toward the
|
|
open sea, slowly, through the harbor's entrance.
|
|
|
|
"They promised to leave us firearms and ammunition,"
|
|
said Clayton. "The merciless beasts!"
|
|
|
|
"It is the work of that fellow they call Snipes, I am sure,"
|
|
said Jane. "King was a scoundrel, but he had a little sense of
|
|
humanity. If they had not killed him I know that he would
|
|
have seen that we were properly provided for before they left
|
|
us to our fate."
|
|
|
|
"I regret that they did not visit us before sailing," said
|
|
Professor Porter. "I had proposed requesting them to leave the
|
|
treasure with us, as I shall be a ruined man if that is lost."
|
|
|
|
Jane looked at her father sadly.
|
|
|
|
"Never mind, dear," she said. "It wouldn't have done any
|
|
good, because it is solely for the treasure that they killed
|
|
their officers and landed us upon this awful shore."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, child, tut, tut!" replied Professor Porter. "You
|
|
are a good child, but inexperienced in practical matters," and
|
|
Professor Porter turned and walked slowly away toward the
|
|
jungle, his hands clasped beneath his long coat tails and his
|
|
eyes bent upon the ground.
|
|
|
|
His daughter watched him with a pathetic smile upon her
|
|
lips, and then turning to Mr. Philander, she whispered:
|
|
|
|
"Please don't let him wander off again as he did yesterday.
|
|
We depend upon you, you know, to keep a close watch upon him."
|
|
|
|
"He becomes more difficult to handle each day," replied Mr.
|
|
Philander, with a sigh and a shake of his head. "I presume
|
|
he is now off to report to the directors of the Zoo that
|
|
one of their lions was at large last night. Oh, Miss Jane, you
|
|
don't know what I have to contend with."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do, Mr. Philander; but while we all love him, you
|
|
alone are best fitted to manage him; for, regardless of what
|
|
he may say to you, he respects your great learning, and,
|
|
therefore, has immense confidence in your judgment. The
|
|
poor dear cannot differentiate between erudition and wisdom."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander, with a mildly puzzled expression on his
|
|
face, turned to pursue Professor Porter, and in his mind he
|
|
was revolving the question of whether he should feel
|
|
complimented or aggrieved at Miss Porter's rather
|
|
backhanded compliment.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had seen the consternation depicted upon the faces
|
|
of the little group as they witnessed the departure of the
|
|
Arrow; so, as the ship was a wonderful novelty to him in
|
|
addition, he determined to hasten out to the point of land at the
|
|
north of the harbor's mouth and obtain a nearer view of the
|
|
boat, as well as to learn, if possible, the direction of its flight.
|
|
|
|
Swinging through the trees with great speed, he reached
|
|
the point only a moment after the ship had passed out of the
|
|
harbor, so that he obtained an excellent view of the wonders
|
|
of this strange, floating house.
|
|
|
|
There were some twenty men running hither and thither
|
|
about the deck, pulling and hauling on ropes.
|
|
|
|
A light land breeze was blowing, and the ship had been
|
|
worked through the harbor's mouth under scant sail, but now that
|
|
they had cleared the point every available shred of canvas was
|
|
being spread that she might stand out to sea as handily as possible.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan watched the graceful movements of the ship in rapt
|
|
admiration, and longed to be aboard her. Presently his keen
|
|
eyes caught the faintest suspicion of smoke on the far northern
|
|
horizon, and he wondered over the cause of such a thing
|
|
out on the great water.
|
|
|
|
About the same time the look-out on the Arrow must have
|
|
discerned it, for in a few minutes Tarzan saw the sails being
|
|
shifted and shortened. The ship came about, and presently he
|
|
knew that she was beating back toward land.
|
|
|
|
A man at the bows was constantly heaving into the sea a
|
|
rope to the end of which a small object was fastened. Tarzan
|
|
wondered what the purpose of this action might be.
|
|
|
|
At last the ship came up directly into the wind; the anchor
|
|
was lowered; down came the sails. There was great scurrying
|
|
about on deck.
|
|
|
|
A boat was lowered, and in it a great chest was placed.
|
|
Then a dozen sailors bent to the oars and pulled rapidly
|
|
toward the point where Tarzan crouched in the branches of a tree.
|
|
|
|
In the stern of the boat, as it drew nearer, Tarzan saw the
|
|
rat-faced man.
|
|
|
|
It was but a few minutes later that the boat touched the
|
|
beach. The men jumped out and lifted the great chest to the
|
|
sand. They were on the north side of the point so that their
|
|
presence was concealed from those at the cabin.
|
|
|
|
The men argued angrily for a moment. Then the rat-faced
|
|
one, with several companions, ascended the low bluff on
|
|
which stood the tree that concealed Tarzan. They looked
|
|
about for several minutes.
|
|
|
|
"Here is a good place," said the rat-faced sailor, indicating
|
|
a spot beneath Tarzan's tree.
|
|
|
|
"It is as good as any," replied one of his companions.
|
|
"If they catch us with the treasure aboard it will all be
|
|
confiscated anyway. We might as well bury it here on the
|
|
chance that some of us will escape the gallows to come
|
|
back and enjoy it later."
|
|
|
|
The rat-faced one now called to the men who had remained
|
|
at the boat, and they came slowly up the bank carrying
|
|
picks and shovels.
|
|
|
|
"Hurry, you!" cried Snipes.
|
|
|
|
"Stow it!" retorted one of the men, in a surly tone. "You're
|
|
no admiral, you damned shrimp."
|
|
|
|
"I'm Cap'n here, though, I'll have you to understand, you
|
|
swab," shrieked Snipes, with a volley of frightful oaths.
|
|
|
|
"Steady, boys," cautioned one of the men who had not
|
|
spoken before. "It ain't goin' to get us nothing by fightin'
|
|
amongst ourselves."
|
|
|
|
"Right enough," replied the sailor who had resented
|
|
Snipes' autocratic tones; "but it ain't a-goin' to get nobody
|
|
nothin' to put on airs in this bloomin' company neither."
|
|
|
|
"You fellows dig here," said Snipes, indicating a spot beneath
|
|
the tree. "And while you're diggin', Peter kin be a-makin'
|
|
of a map of the location so's we kin find it again. You,
|
|
Tom, and Bill, take a couple more down and fetch up the chest."
|
|
|
|
"Wot are you a-goin' to do?" asked he of the previous
|
|
altercation. "Just boss?"
|
|
|
|
"Git busy there," growled Snipes. "You didn't think your
|
|
Cap'n was a-goin' to dig with a shovel, did you?"
|
|
|
|
The men all looked up angrily. None of them liked Snipes,
|
|
and this disagreeable show of authority since he had
|
|
murdered King, the real head and ringleader of the mutineers,
|
|
had only added fuel to the flames of their hatred.
|
|
|
|
"Do you mean to say that you don't intend to take a shovel,
|
|
and lend a hand with this work? Your shoulder's not hurt so
|
|
all-fired bad as that," said Tarrant, the sailor who had
|
|
before spoken.
|
|
|
|
"Not by a damned sight," replied Snipes, fingering the butt
|
|
of his revolver nervously.
|
|
|
|
"Then, by God," replied Tarrant, "if you won't take a
|
|
shovel you'll take a pickax."
|
|
|
|
With the words he raised his pick above his head, and, with
|
|
a mighty blow, he buried the point in Snipes' brain.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the men stood silently looking at the result
|
|
of their fellow's grim humor. Then one of them spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Served the skunk jolly well right," he said.
|
|
|
|
One of the others commenced to ply his pick to the
|
|
ground. The soil was soft and he threw aside the pick and
|
|
grasped a shovel; then the others joined him. There was no
|
|
further comment on the killing, but the men worked in a better
|
|
frame of mind than they had since Snipes had assumed command.
|
|
|
|
When they had a trench of ample size to bury the chest,
|
|
Tarrant suggested that they enlarge it and inter Snipes' body
|
|
on top of the chest.
|
|
|
|
"It might 'elp fool any as 'appened to be diggin'
|
|
'ereabouts," he explained.
|
|
|
|
The others saw the cunning of the suggestion, and so the
|
|
trench was lengthened to accommodate the corpse, and in the
|
|
center a deeper hole was excavated for the box, which was
|
|
first wrapped in sailcloth and then lowered to its place, which
|
|
brought its top about a foot below the bottom of the grave.
|
|
Earth was shovelled in and tramped down about the chest
|
|
until the bottom of the grave showed level and uniform.
|
|
|
|
Two of the men rolled the rat-faced corpse unceremoniously
|
|
into the grave, after first stripping it of its weapons and
|
|
various other articles which the several members of the party
|
|
coveted for their own.
|
|
|
|
They then filled the grave with earth and tramped upon it
|
|
until it would hold no more.
|
|
|
|
The balance of the loose earth was thrown far and wide,
|
|
and a mass of dead undergrowth spread in as natural a manner
|
|
as possible over the new-made grave to obliterate all signs
|
|
of the ground having been disturbed.
|
|
|
|
Their work done the sailors returned to the small boat, and
|
|
pulled off rapidly toward the Arrow.
|
|
|
|
The breeze had increased considerably, and as the smoke
|
|
upon the horizon was now plainly discernible in considerable
|
|
volume, the mutineers lost no time in getting under full sail
|
|
and bearing away toward the southwest.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan, an interested spectator of all that had taken place, sat
|
|
speculating on the strange actions of these peculiar creatures.
|
|
|
|
Men were indeed more foolish and more cruel than the
|
|
beasts of the jungle! How fortunate was he who lived in the
|
|
peace and security of the great forest!
|
|
|
|
Tarzan wondered what the chest they had buried contained.
|
|
If they did not want it why did they not merely throw
|
|
it into the water? That would have been much easier.
|
|
|
|
Ah, he thought, but they do want it. They have hidden it
|
|
here because they intend returning for it later.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan dropped to the ground and commenced to examine
|
|
the earth about the excavation. He was looking to see if these
|
|
creatures had dropped anything which he might like to own.
|
|
Soon he discovered a spade hidden by the underbrush which
|
|
they had laid upon the grave.
|
|
|
|
He seized it and attempted to use it as he had seen the sailors
|
|
do. It was awkward work and hurt his bare feet, but he
|
|
persevered until he had partially uncovered the body. This he
|
|
dragged from the grave and laid to one side.
|
|
|
|
Then he continued digging until he had unearthed the chest.
|
|
This also he dragged to the side of the corpse. Then he
|
|
filled in the smaller hole below the grave, replaced the body
|
|
and the earth around and above it, covered it over with
|
|
underbrush, and returned to the chest.
|
|
|
|
Four sailors had sweated beneath the burden of its weight
|
|
--Tarzan of the Apes picked it up as though it had been an
|
|
empty packing case, and with the spade slung to his back by a
|
|
piece of rope, carried it off into the densest part of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
He could not well negotiate the trees with his awkward burden,
|
|
but he kept to the trails, and so made fairly good time.
|
|
|
|
For several hours he traveled a little north of east until he
|
|
came to an impenetrable wall of matted and tangled vegetation.
|
|
Then he took to the lower branches, and in another fifteen
|
|
minutes he emerged into the amphitheater of the apes, where
|
|
they met in council, or to celebrate the rites of the Dum-Dum.
|
|
|
|
Near the center of the clearing, and not far from the
|
|
drum, or altar, he commenced to dig. This was harder work
|
|
than turning up the freshly excavated earth at the grave, but
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was persevering and so he kept at his
|
|
labor until he was rewarded by seeing a hole sufficiently deep
|
|
to receive the chest and effectually hide it from view.
|
|
|
|
Why had he gone to all this labor without knowing the
|
|
value of the contents of the chest?
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes had a man's figure and a man's brain,
|
|
but he was an ape by training and environment. His brain
|
|
told him that the chest contained something valuable, or the
|
|
men would not have hidden it. His training had taught him to
|
|
imitate whatever was new and unusual, and now the natural
|
|
curiosity, which is as common to men as to apes, prompted
|
|
him to open the chest and examine its contents.
|
|
|
|
But the heavy lock and massive iron bands baffled both his
|
|
cunning and his immense strength, so that he was compelled
|
|
to bury the chest without having his curiosity satisfied.
|
|
|
|
By the time Tarzan had hunted his way back to the vicinity
|
|
of the cabin, feeding as he went, it was quite dark.
|
|
|
|
Within the little building a light was burning, for Clayton
|
|
had found an unopened tin of oil which had stood intact for
|
|
twenty years, a part of the supplies left with the Claytons by
|
|
Black Michael. The lamps also were still useable, and thus
|
|
the interior of the cabin appeared as bright as day to the
|
|
astonished Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
He had often wondered at the exact purpose of the lamps.
|
|
His reading and the pictures had told him what they were,
|
|
but he had no idea of how they could be made to produce
|
|
the wondrous sunlight that some of his pictures had
|
|
portrayed them as diffusing upon all surrounding objects.
|
|
|
|
As he approached the window nearest the door he saw that
|
|
the cabin had been divided into two rooms by a rough
|
|
partition of boughs and sailcloth.
|
|
|
|
In the front room were the three men; the two older deep
|
|
in argument, while the younger, tilted back against the wall
|
|
on an improvised stool, was deeply engrossed in reading one
|
|
of Tarzan's books.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was not particularly interested in the men, however,
|
|
so he sought the other window. There was the girl. How
|
|
beautiful her features! How delicate her snowy skin!
|
|
|
|
She was writing at Tarzan's own table beneath the window.
|
|
Upon a pile of grasses at the far side of the room lay the
|
|
Negress asleep.
|
|
|
|
For an hour Tarzan feasted his eyes upon her while she
|
|
wrote. How he longed to speak to her, but he dared not
|
|
attempt it, for he was convinced that, like the young man, she
|
|
would not understand him, and he feared, too, that he might
|
|
frighten her away.
|
|
|
|
At length she arose, leaving her manuscript upon the table.
|
|
She went to the bed upon which had been spread several layers
|
|
of soft grasses. These she rearranged.
|
|
|
|
Then she loosened the soft mass of golden hair which
|
|
crowned her head. Like a shimmering waterfall turned to
|
|
burnished metal by a dying sun it fell about her oval face;
|
|
in waving lines, below her waist it tumbled.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was spellbound. Then she extinguished the lamp
|
|
and all within the cabin was wrapped in Cimmerian darkness.
|
|
|
|
Still Tarzan watched. Creeping close beneath the window
|
|
he waited, listening, for half an hour. At last he was
|
|
rewarded by the sounds of the regular breathing within which
|
|
denotes sleep.
|
|
|
|
Cautiously he intruded his hand between the meshes of the
|
|
lattice until his whole arm was within the cabin. Carefully he
|
|
felt upon the desk. At last he grasped the manuscript upon
|
|
which Jane Porter had been writing, and as cautiously withdrew
|
|
his arm and hand, holding the precious treasure.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan folded the sheets into a small parcel which he
|
|
tucked into the quiver with his arrows. Then he melted away
|
|
into the jungle as softly and as noiselessly as a shadow.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 18
|
|
|
|
The Jungle Toll
|
|
|
|
Early the following morning Tarzan awoke, and his first
|
|
thought of the new day, as the last of yesterday, was of
|
|
the wonderful writing which lay hidden in his quiver.
|
|
|
|
Hurriedly he brought it forth, hoping against hope that he
|
|
could read what the beautiful white girl had written there
|
|
the preceding evening.
|
|
|
|
At the first glance he suffered a bitter disappointment;
|
|
never before had he so yearned for anything as now he did
|
|
for the ability to interpret a message from that golden-haired
|
|
divinity who had come so suddenly and so unexpectedly into
|
|
his life.
|
|
|
|
What did it matter if the message were not intended for
|
|
him? It was an expression of her thoughts, and that was
|
|
sufficient for Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
And now to be baffled by strange, uncouth characters the
|
|
like of which he had never seen before! Why, they even
|
|
tipped in the opposite direction from all that he had ever
|
|
examined either in printed books or the difficult script of
|
|
the few letters he had found.
|
|
|
|
Even the little bugs of the black book were familiar
|
|
friends, though their arrangement meant nothing to him; but
|
|
these bugs were new and unheard of.
|
|
|
|
For twenty minutes he pored over them, when suddenly
|
|
they commenced to take familiar though distorted shapes.
|
|
Ah, they were his old friends, but badly crippled.
|
|
|
|
Then he began to make out a word here and a word there.
|
|
His heart leaped for joy. He could read it, and he would.
|
|
|
|
In another half hour he was progressing rapidly, and, but
|
|
for an exceptional word now and again, he found it very
|
|
plain sailing.
|
|
|
|
Here is what he read:
|
|
|
|
WEST COAST OF AFRICA, ABOUT 10X DEGREES SOUTH
|
|
LATITUDE. (So Mr. Clayton says.)
|
|
February 3 (?), 1909.
|
|
|
|
DEAREST HAZEL:
|
|
|
|
It seems foolish to write you a letter that you may never
|
|
see, but I simply must tell somebody of our awful experiences
|
|
since we sailed from Europe on the ill-fated Arrow.
|
|
|
|
If we never return to civilization, as now seems only too
|
|
likely, this will at least prove a brief record of the events
|
|
which led up to our final fate, whatever it may be.
|
|
|
|
As you know, we were supposed to have set out upon a
|
|
scientific expedition to the Congo. Papa was presumed to
|
|
entertain some wondrous theory of an unthinkably ancient
|
|
civilization, the remains of which lay buried somewhere in the
|
|
Congo valley. But after we were well under sail the truth
|
|
came out.
|
|
|
|
It seems that an old bookworm who has a book and curio
|
|
shop in Baltimore discovered between the leaves of a very old
|
|
Spanish manuscript a letter written in 1550 detailing the
|
|
adventures of a crew of mutineers of a Spanish galleon bound
|
|
from Spain to South America with a vast treasure of "doubloons"
|
|
and "pieces of eight," I suppose, for they certainly
|
|
sound weird and piraty.
|
|
|
|
The writer had been one of the crew, and the letter was to
|
|
his son, who was, at the very time the letter was written,
|
|
master of a Spanish merchantman.
|
|
|
|
Many years had elapsed since the events the letter narrated
|
|
had transpired, and the old man had become a respected citizen
|
|
of an obscure Spanish town, but the love of gold was still
|
|
so strong upon him that he risked all to acquaint his son with
|
|
the means of attaining fabulous wealth for them both.
|
|
|
|
The writer told how when but a week out from Spain the crew
|
|
had mutinied and murdered every officer and man who opposed
|
|
them; but they defeated their own ends by this very act, for
|
|
there was none left competent to navigate a ship at sea.
|
|
|
|
They were blown hither and thither for two months, until
|
|
sick and dying of scurvy, starvation, and thirst, they had
|
|
been wrecked on a small islet.
|
|
|
|
The galleon was washed high upon the beach where she
|
|
went to pieces; but not before the survivors, who numbered
|
|
but ten souls, had rescued one of the great chests of treasure.
|
|
|
|
This they buried well up on the island, and for three years
|
|
they lived there in constant hope of being rescued.
|
|
|
|
One by one they sickened and died, until only one man
|
|
was left, the writer of the letter.
|
|
|
|
The men had built a boat from the wreckage of the galleon,
|
|
but having no idea where the island was located they
|
|
had not dared to put to sea.
|
|
|
|
When all were dead except himself, however, the awful
|
|
loneliness so weighed upon the mind of the sole survivor that
|
|
he could endure it no longer, and choosing to risk death upon
|
|
the open sea rather than madness on the lonely isle, he set
|
|
sail in his little boat after nearly a year of solitude.
|
|
|
|
Fortunately he sailed due north, and within a week was in
|
|
the track of the Spanish merchantmen plying between the
|
|
West Indies and Spain, and was picked up by one of these
|
|
vessels homeward bound.
|
|
|
|
The story he told was merely one of shipwreck in which all
|
|
but a few had perished, the balance, except himself, dying
|
|
after they reached the island. He did not mention the mutiny
|
|
or the chest of buried treasure.
|
|
|
|
The master of the merchantman assured him that from the
|
|
position at which they had picked him up, and the prevailing
|
|
winds for the past week he could have been on no other island
|
|
than one of the Cape Verde group, which lie off the
|
|
West Coast of Africa in about 16x or 17x north latitude.
|
|
|
|
His letter described the island minutely, as well as the
|
|
location of the treasure, and was accompanied by the crudest,
|
|
funniest little old map you ever saw; with trees and rocks all
|
|
marked by scrawly X's to show the exact spot where the
|
|
treasure had been buried.
|
|
|
|
When papa explained the real nature of the expedition, my
|
|
heart sank, for I know so well how visionary and impractical
|
|
the poor dear has always been that I feared that he had again
|
|
been duped; especially when he told me he had paid a thousand
|
|
dollars for the letter and map.
|
|
|
|
To add to my distress, I learned that he had borrowed ten
|
|
thousand dollars more from Robert Canler, and had given his
|
|
notes for the amount.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Canler had asked for no security, and you know,
|
|
dearie, what that will mean for me if papa cannot meet
|
|
them. Oh, how I detest that man!
|
|
|
|
We all tried to look on the bright side of things, but Mr.
|
|
Philander, and Mr. Clayton--he joined us in London just for
|
|
the adventure--both felt as skeptical as I.
|
|
|
|
Well, to make a long story short, we found the island and
|
|
the treasure--a great iron-bound oak chest, wrapped in many
|
|
layers of oiled sailcloth, and as strong and firm as when it
|
|
had been buried nearly two hundred years ago.
|
|
|
|
It was SIMPLY FILLED with gold coin, and was so heavy that
|
|
four men bent underneath its weight.
|
|
|
|
The horrid thing seems to bring nothing but murder and
|
|
misfortune to those who have anything to do with it, for
|
|
three days after we sailed from the Cape Verde Islands our
|
|
own crew mutinied and killed every one of their officers.
|
|
|
|
Oh, it was the most terrifying experience one could
|
|
imagine--I cannot even write of it.
|
|
|
|
They were going to kill us too, but one of them, the leader,
|
|
named King, would not let them, and so they sailed south
|
|
along the coast to a lonely spot where they found a good
|
|
harbor, and here they landed and have left us.
|
|
|
|
They sailed away with the treasure to-day, but Mr. Clayton
|
|
says they will meet with a fate similar to the mutineers of the
|
|
ancient galleon, because King, the only man aboard who
|
|
knew aught of navigation, was murdered on the beach by one
|
|
of the men the day we landed.
|
|
|
|
I wish you could know Mr. Clayton; he is the dearest fellow
|
|
imaginable, and unless I am mistaken he has fallen very
|
|
much in love with me.
|
|
|
|
He is the only son of Lord Greystoke, and some day will inherit
|
|
the title and estates. In addition, he is wealthy in his own
|
|
right, but the fact that he is going to be an English Lord
|
|
makes me very sad--you know what my sentiments have always
|
|
been relative to American girls who married titled foreigners.
|
|
Oh, if he were only a plain American gentleman!
|
|
|
|
But it isn't his fault, poor fellow, and in everything except
|
|
birth he would do credit to my country, and that is the greatest
|
|
compliment I know how to pay any man.
|
|
|
|
We have had the most weird experiences since we were
|
|
landed here. Papa and Mr. Philander lost in the jungle,
|
|
and chased by a real lion.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Clayton lost, and attacked twice by wild beasts.
|
|
Esmeralda and I cornered in an old cabin by a perfectly awful
|
|
man-eating lioness. Oh, it was simply "terrifical," as Esmeralda
|
|
would say.
|
|
|
|
But the strangest part of it all is the wonderful creature
|
|
who rescued us. I have not seen him, but Mr. Clayton and
|
|
papa and Mr. Philander have, and they say that he is a
|
|
perfectly god-like white man tanned to a dusky brown, with the
|
|
strength of a wild elephant, the agility of a monkey, and the
|
|
bravery of a lion.
|
|
|
|
He speaks no English and vanishes as quickly and as
|
|
mysteriously after he has performed some valorous deed, as
|
|
though he were a disembodied spirit.
|
|
|
|
Then we have another weird neighbor, who printed a
|
|
beautiful sign in English and tacked it on the door of his
|
|
cabin, which we have preempted, warning us to destroy none
|
|
of his belongings, and signing himself "Tarzan of the Apes."
|
|
|
|
We have never seen him, though we think he is about, for
|
|
one of the sailors, who was going to shoot Mr. Clayton in the
|
|
back, received a spear in his shoulder from some unseen
|
|
hand in the jungle.
|
|
|
|
The sailors left us but a meager supply of food, so, as we
|
|
have only a single revolver with but three cartridges left in it,
|
|
we do not know how we can procure meat, though Mr. Philander
|
|
says that we can exist indefinitely on the wild fruit and
|
|
nuts which abound in the jungle.
|
|
|
|
I am very tired now, so I shall go to my funny bed of
|
|
grasses which Mr. Clayton gathered for me, but will add to
|
|
this from day to day as things happen.
|
|
Lovingly,
|
|
JANE PORTER.
|
|
|
|
TO HAZEL STRONG, BALTIMORE, MD.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan sat in a brown study for a long time after he finished
|
|
reading the letter. It was filled with so many new and
|
|
wonderful things that his brain was in a whirl as he attempted
|
|
to digest them all.
|
|
|
|
So they did not know that he was Tarzan of the Apes. He
|
|
would tell them.
|
|
|
|
In his tree he had constructed a rude shelter of leaves and
|
|
boughs, beneath which, protected from the rain, he had
|
|
placed the few treasures brought from the cabin. Among
|
|
these were some pencils.
|
|
|
|
He took one, and beneath Jane Porter's signature he wrote:
|
|
|
|
I am Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
|
|
He thought that would be sufficient. Later he would return
|
|
the letter to the cabin.
|
|
|
|
In the matter of food, thought Tarzan, they had no need to
|
|
worry--he would provide, and he did.
|
|
|
|
The next morning Jane found her missing letter in the
|
|
exact spot from which it had disappeared two nights before.
|
|
She was mystified; but when she saw the printed words beneath
|
|
her signature, she felt a cold, clammy chill run up her
|
|
spine. She showed the letter, or rather the last sheet
|
|
with the signature, to Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"And to think," she said, "that uncanny thing was probably
|
|
watching me all the time that I was writing--oo! It makes me
|
|
shudder just to think of it."
|
|
|
|
"But he must be friendly," reassured Clayton, "for he has
|
|
returned your letter, nor did he offer to harm you, and unless
|
|
I am mistaken he left a very substantial memento of his
|
|
friendship outside the cabin door last night, for I just found
|
|
the carcass of a wild boar there as I came out."
|
|
|
|
From then on scarcely a day passed that did not bring its
|
|
offering of game or other food. Sometimes it was a young
|
|
deer, again a quantity of strange, cooked food--cassava
|
|
cakes pilfered from the village of Mbonga--or a boar, or
|
|
leopard, and once a lion.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan derived the greatest pleasure of his life in hunting
|
|
meat for these strangers. It seemed to him that no pleasure
|
|
on earth could compare with laboring for the welfare and
|
|
protection of the beautiful white girl.
|
|
|
|
Some day he would venture into the camp in daylight and
|
|
talk with these people through the medium of the little bugs
|
|
which were familiar to them and to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
But he found it difficult to overcome the timidity of the
|
|
wild thing of the forest, and so day followed day without
|
|
seeing a fulfillment of his good intentions.
|
|
|
|
The party in the camp, emboldened by familiarity, wandered
|
|
farther and yet farther into the jungle in search of nuts
|
|
and fruit.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely a day passed that did not find Professor Porter
|
|
straying in his preoccupied indifference toward the jaws of
|
|
death. Mr. Samuel T. Philander, never what one might call
|
|
robust, was worn to the shadow of a shadow through the
|
|
ceaseless worry and mental distraction resultant from his
|
|
Herculean efforts to safeguard the professor.
|
|
|
|
A month passed. Tarzan had finally determined to visit the
|
|
camp by daylight.
|
|
|
|
It was early afternoon. Clayton had wandered to the point
|
|
at the harbor's mouth to look for passing vessels. Here he
|
|
kept a great mass of wood, high piled, ready to be ignited as
|
|
a signal should a steamer or a sail top the far horizon.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter was wandering along the beach south of
|
|
the camp with Mr. Philander at his elbow, urging him to turn
|
|
his steps back before the two became again the sport of some
|
|
savage beast.
|
|
|
|
The others gone, Jane and Esmeralda had wandered into the
|
|
jungle to gather fruit, and in their search were led farther
|
|
and farther from the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan waited in silence before the door of the little house
|
|
until they should return. His thoughts were of the beautiful
|
|
white girl. They were always of her now. He wondered if she
|
|
would fear him, and the thought all but caused him to relinquish
|
|
his plan.
|
|
|
|
He was rapidly becoming impatient for her return, that he
|
|
might feast his eyes upon her and be near her, perhaps touch
|
|
her. The ape-man knew no god, but he was as near to
|
|
worshipping his?? divinity as mortal man ever comes to worship.
|
|
While he waited he passed the time printing a message to
|
|
her; whether he intended giving it to her he himself could not
|
|
have told, but he took infinite pleasure in seeing his thoughts
|
|
expressed in print--in which he was not so uncivilized after
|
|
all. He wrote:
|
|
|
|
I am Tarzan of the Apes. I want you. I am yours. You are
|
|
mine. We live here together always in my house. I will bring
|
|
you the best of fruits, the tenderest deer, the finest meats that
|
|
roam the jungle. I will hunt for you. I am the greatest of the
|
|
jungle fighters. I will fight for you. I am the mightiest of the
|
|
jungle fighters. You are Jane Porter, I saw it in your letter.
|
|
When you see this you will know that it is for you and that
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes loves you.
|
|
|
|
As he stood, straight as a young Indian, by the door, waiting
|
|
after he had finished the message, there came to his keen
|
|
ears a familiar sound. It was the passing of a great ape
|
|
through the lower branches of the forest.
|
|
|
|
For an instant he listened intently, and then from the jungle
|
|
came the agonized scream of a woman, and Tarzan of the
|
|
Apes, dropping his first love letter upon the ground, shot like
|
|
a panther into the forest.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, also, heard the scream, and Professor Porter and
|
|
Mr. Philander, and in a few minutes they came panting to
|
|
the cabin, calling out to each other a volley of excited
|
|
questions as they approached. A glance within confirmed
|
|
their worst fears.
|
|
|
|
Jane and Esmeralda were not there.
|
|
|
|
Instantly, Clayton, followed by the two old men, plunged
|
|
into the jungle, calling the girl's name aloud. For half an
|
|
hour they stumbled on, until Clayton, by merest chance,
|
|
came upon the prostrate form of Esmeralda.
|
|
|
|
He stopped beside her, feeling for her pulse and then
|
|
listening for her heartbeats. She lived. He shook her.
|
|
|
|
"Esmeralda!" he shrieked in her ear. "Esmeralda! For God's
|
|
sake, where is Miss Porter? What has happened? Esmeralda!"
|
|
|
|
Slowly Esmeralda opened her eyes. She saw Clayton. She
|
|
saw the jungle about her.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Gaberelle!" she screamed, and fainted again.
|
|
|
|
By this time Professor Porter and Mr. Philander had come up.
|
|
|
|
"What shall we do, Mr. Clayton?" asked the old professor.
|
|
"Where shall we look? God could not have been so cruel as
|
|
to take my little girl away from me now."
|
|
|
|
"We must arouse Esmeralda first," replied Clayton. "She
|
|
can tell us what has happened. Esmeralda!" he cried again,
|
|
shaking the black woman roughly by the shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"O Gaberelle, I want to die!" cried the poor woman, but
|
|
with eyes fast closed. "Let me die, dear Lord, don't let
|
|
me see that awful face again."
|
|
|
|
"Come, come, Esmeralda," cried Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"The Lord isn't here; it's Mr. Clayton. Open your eyes."
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda did as she was bade.
|
|
|
|
"O Gaberelle! Thank the Lord," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Where's Miss Porter? What happened?" questioned Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"Ain't Miss Jane here?" cried Esmeralda, sitting up with
|
|
wonderful celerity for one of her bulk. "Oh, Lord, now I
|
|
remember! It must have took her away," and the Negress
|
|
commenced to sob, and wail her lamentations.
|
|
|
|
"What took her away?" cried Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"A great big giant all covered with hair."
|
|
|
|
"A gorilla, Esmeralda?" questioned Mr. Philander, and the
|
|
three men scarcely breathed as he voiced the horrible thought.
|
|
|
|
"I thought it was the devil; but I guess it must have been
|
|
one of them gorilephants. Oh, my poor baby, my poor little
|
|
honey," and again Esmeralda broke into uncontrollable sobbing.
|
|
|
|
Clayton immediately began to look about for tracks, but he
|
|
could find nothing save a confusion of trampled grasses in
|
|
the close vicinity, and his woodcraft was too meager for the
|
|
translation of what he did see.
|
|
|
|
All the balance of the day they sought through the jungle;
|
|
but as night drew on they were forced to give up in despair
|
|
and hopelessness, for they did not even know in what
|
|
direction the thing had borne Jane.
|
|
|
|
It was long after dark ere they reached the cabin, and a sad
|
|
and grief-stricken party it was that sat silently within the
|
|
little structure.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter finally broke the silence. His tones were
|
|
no longer those of the erudite pedant theorizing upon the
|
|
abstract and the unknowable; but those of the man of action--
|
|
determined, but tinged also by a note of indescribable
|
|
hopelessness and grief which wrung an answering pang from
|
|
Clayton's heart.
|
|
|
|
"I shall lie down now," said the old man, "and try to sleep.
|
|
Early to-morrow, as soon as it is light, I shall take what food
|
|
I can carry and continue the search until I have found Jane. I
|
|
will not return without her."
|
|
|
|
His companions did not reply at once. Each was immersed
|
|
in his own sorrowful thoughts, and each knew, as did the old
|
|
professor, what the last words meant--Professor Porter
|
|
would never return from the jungle.
|
|
|
|
At length Clayton arose and laid his hand gently upon
|
|
Professor Porter's bent old shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"I shall go with you, of course," he said.
|
|
|
|
"I knew that you would offer--that you would wish to go,
|
|
Mr. Clayton; but you must not. Jane is beyond human
|
|
assistance now. What was once my dear little girl shall
|
|
not lie alone and friendless in the awful jungle.
|
|
|
|
"The same vines and leaves will cover us, the same rains beat
|
|
upon us; and when the spirit of her mother is abroad, it will
|
|
find us together in death, as it has always found us in life.
|
|
|
|
"No; it is I alone who may go, for she was my daughter--
|
|
all that was left on earth for me to love."
|
|
|
|
"I shall go with you," said Clayton simply.
|
|
|
|
The old man looked up, regarding the strong, handsome face
|
|
of William Cecil Clayton intently. Perhaps he read there the
|
|
love that lay in the heart beneath--the love for his daughter.
|
|
|
|
He had been too preoccupied with his own scholarly
|
|
thoughts in the past to consider the little occurrences, the
|
|
chance words, which would have indicated to a more practical
|
|
man that these young people were being drawn more and
|
|
more closely to one another. Now they came back to him,
|
|
one by one.
|
|
|
|
"As you wish," he said.
|
|
|
|
"You may count on me, also," said Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
"No, my dear old friend," said Professor Porter. "We may not
|
|
all go. It would be cruelly wicked to leave poor Esmeralda here
|
|
alone, and three of us would be no more successful than one.
|
|
|
|
"There be enough dead things in the cruel forest as it is.
|
|
Come--let us try to sleep a little."
|
|
|
|
Chapter 19
|
|
|
|
The Call of the Primitive
|
|
|
|
From the time Tarzan left the tribe of great anthropoids in
|
|
which he had been raised, it was torn by continual strife
|
|
and discord. Terkoz proved a cruel and capricious king, so
|
|
that, one by one, many of the older and weaker apes, upon whom
|
|
he was particularly prone to vent his brutish nature, took their
|
|
families and sought the quiet and safety of the far interior.
|
|
|
|
But at last those who remained were driven to desperation
|
|
by the continued truculence of Terkoz, and it so happened
|
|
that one of them recalled the parting admonition of Tarzan:
|
|
|
|
"If you have a chief who is cruel, do not do as the other
|
|
apes do, and attempt, any one of you, to pit yourself against
|
|
him alone. But, instead, let two or three or four of you attack
|
|
him together. Then, if you will do this, no chief will dare to
|
|
be other than he should be, for four of you can kill any chief
|
|
who may ever be over you."
|
|
|
|
And the ape who recalled this wise counsel repeated it to
|
|
several of his fellows, so that when Terkoz returned to the
|
|
tribe that day he found a warm reception awaiting him.
|
|
|
|
There were no formalities. As Terkoz reached the group,
|
|
five huge, hairy beasts sprang upon him.
|
|
|
|
At heart he was an arrant coward, which is the way with
|
|
bullies among apes as well as among men; so he did not remain
|
|
to fight and die, but tore himself away from them as quickly
|
|
as he could and fled into the sheltering boughs of the forest.
|
|
|
|
Two more attempts he made to rejoin the tribe, but on
|
|
each occasion he was set upon and driven away. At last he
|
|
gave it up, and turned, foaming with rage and hatred, into
|
|
the jungle.
|
|
|
|
For several days he wandered aimlessly, nursing his spite and
|
|
looking for some weak thing on which to vent his pent anger.
|
|
|
|
It was in this state of mind that the horrible, man-like
|
|
beast, swinging from tree to tree, came suddenly upon two
|
|
women in the jungle.
|
|
|
|
He was right above them when he discovered them. The
|
|
first intimation Jane Porter had of his presence was when the
|
|
great hairy body dropped to the earth beside her, and she saw
|
|
the awful face and the snarling, hideous mouth thrust within
|
|
a foot of her.
|
|
|
|
One piercing scream escaped her lips as the brute hand
|
|
clutched her arm. Then she was dragged toward those awful
|
|
fangs which yawned at her throat. But ere they touched that
|
|
fair skin another mood claimed the anthropoid.
|
|
|
|
The tribe had kept his women. He must find others to replace
|
|
them. This hairless white ape would be the first of his new
|
|
household, and so he threw her roughly across his broad, hairy
|
|
shoulders and leaped back into the trees, bearing Jane away.
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda's scream of terror had mingled once with that
|
|
of Jane, and then, as was Esmeralda's manner under stress of
|
|
emergency which required presence of mind, she swooned.
|
|
|
|
But Jane did not once lose consciousness. It is true that
|
|
that awful face, pressing close to hers, and the stench of the
|
|
foul breath beating upon her nostrils, paralyzed her with terror;
|
|
but her brain was clear, and she comprehended all that transpired.
|
|
|
|
With what seemed to her marvelous rapidity the brute bore her
|
|
through the forest, but still she did not cry out or struggle.
|
|
The sudden advent of the ape had confused her to such an extent
|
|
that she thought now that he was bearing her toward the beach.
|
|
|
|
For this reason she conserved her energies and her voice
|
|
until she could see that they had approached near enough to
|
|
the camp to attract the succor she craved.
|
|
|
|
She could not have known it, but she was being borne farther
|
|
and farther into the impenetrable jungle.
|
|
|
|
The scream that had brought Clayton and the two older
|
|
men stumbling through the undergrowth had led Tarzan of the
|
|
Apes straight to where Esmeralda lay, but it was not
|
|
Esmeralda in whom his interest centered, though pausing
|
|
over her he saw that she was unhurt.
|
|
|
|
For a moment he scrutinized the ground below and the
|
|
trees above, until the ape that was in him by virtue of
|
|
training and environment, combined with the intelligence that was
|
|
his by right of birth, told his wondrous woodcraft the whole
|
|
story as plainly as though he had seen the thing happen with
|
|
his own eyes.
|
|
|
|
And then he was gone again into the swaying trees, following
|
|
the high-flung spoor which no other human eye could
|
|
have detected, much less translated.
|
|
|
|
At boughs' ends, where the anthropoid swings from one tree
|
|
to another, there is most to mark the trail, but least to
|
|
point the direction of the quarry; for there the pressure is
|
|
downward always, toward the small end of the branch, whether
|
|
the ape be leaving or entering a tree. Nearer the center of
|
|
the tree, where the signs of passage are fainter, the direction
|
|
is plainly marked.
|
|
|
|
Here, on this branch, a caterpillar has been crushed by the
|
|
fugitive's great foot, and Tarzan knows instinctively where
|
|
that same foot would touch in the next stride. Here he looks
|
|
to find a tiny particle of the demolished larva, ofttimes not
|
|
more than a speck of moisture.
|
|
|
|
Again, a minute bit of bark has been upturned by the
|
|
scraping hand, and the direction of the break indicates the
|
|
direction of the passage. Or some great limb, or the stem of the
|
|
tree itself has been brushed by the hairy body, and a tiny
|
|
shred of hair tells him by the direction from which it is
|
|
wedged beneath the bark that he is on the right trail.
|
|
|
|
Nor does he need to check his speed to catch these seemingly
|
|
faint records of the fleeing beast.
|
|
|
|
To Tarzan they stand out boldly against all the myriad
|
|
other scars and bruises and signs upon the leafy way. But
|
|
strongest of all is the scent, for Tarzan is pursuing up the
|
|
wind, and his trained nostrils are as sensitive as a hound's.
|
|
|
|
There are those who believe that the lower orders are
|
|
specially endowed by nature with better olfactory nerves
|
|
than man, but it is merely a matter of development.
|
|
|
|
Man's survival does not hinge so greatly upon the perfection
|
|
of his senses. His power to reason has relieved them of
|
|
many of their duties, and so they have, to some extent,
|
|
atrophied, as have the muscles which move the ears and scalp,
|
|
merely from disuse.
|
|
|
|
The muscles are there, about the ears and beneath the scalp,
|
|
and so are the nerves which transmit sensations to the brain,
|
|
but they are under-developed because they are not needed.
|
|
|
|
Not so with Tarzan of the Apes. From early infancy his
|
|
survival had depended upon acuteness of eyesight, hearing,
|
|
smell, touch, and taste far more than upon the more slowly
|
|
developed organ of reason.
|
|
|
|
The least developed of all in Tarzan was the sense of taste,
|
|
for he could eat luscious fruits, or raw flesh, long buried
|
|
with almost equal appreciation; but in that he differed but
|
|
slightly from more civilized epicures.
|
|
|
|
Almost silently the ape-man sped on in the track of Terkoz
|
|
and his prey, but the sound of his approach reached the ears
|
|
of the fleeing beast and spurred it on to greater speed.
|
|
|
|
Three miles were covered before Tarzan overtook them, and
|
|
then Terkoz, seeing that further flight was futile, dropped
|
|
to the ground in a small open glade, that he might turn and
|
|
fight for his prize or be free to escape unhampered if he saw
|
|
that the pursuer was more than a match for him.
|
|
|
|
He still grasped Jane in one great arm as Tarzan bounded
|
|
like a leopard into the arena which nature had provided for
|
|
this primeval-like battle.
|
|
|
|
When Terkoz saw that it was Tarzan who pursued him, he
|
|
jumped to the conclusion that this was Tarzan's woman, since
|
|
they were of the same kind--white and hairless--and so he
|
|
rejoiced at this opportunity for double revenge upon his
|
|
hated enemy.
|
|
|
|
To Jane the strange apparition of this god-like man was as
|
|
wine to sick nerves.
|
|
|
|
From the description which Clayton and her father and
|
|
Mr. Philander had given her, she knew that it must be the
|
|
same wonderful creature who had saved them, and she saw in
|
|
him only a protector and a friend.
|
|
|
|
But as Terkoz pushed her roughly aside to meet Tarzan's
|
|
charge, and she saw the great proportions of the ape and the
|
|
mighty muscles and the fierce fangs, her heart quailed. How
|
|
could any vanquish such a mighty antagonist?
|
|
|
|
Like two charging bulls they came together, and like two
|
|
wolves sought each other's throat. Against the long canines of
|
|
the ape was pitted the thin blade of the man's knife.
|
|
|
|
Jane--her lithe, young form flattened against the trunk of
|
|
a great tree, her hands tight pressed against her rising and
|
|
falling bosom, and her eyes wide with mingled horror,
|
|
fascination, fear, and admiration--watched the primordial ape
|
|
battle with the primeval man for possession of a woman--for her.
|
|
|
|
As the great muscles of the man's back and shoulders knotted
|
|
beneath the tension of his efforts, and the huge biceps
|
|
and forearm held at bay those mighty tusks, the veil of
|
|
centuries of civilization and culture was swept from the
|
|
blurred vision of the Baltimore girl.
|
|
|
|
When the long knife drank deep a dozen times of Terkoz'
|
|
heart's blood, and the great carcass rolled lifeless upon
|
|
the ground, it was a primeval woman who sprang forward with
|
|
outstretched arms toward the primeval man who had fought
|
|
for her and won her.
|
|
|
|
And Tarzan?
|
|
|
|
He did what no red-blooded man needs lessons in doing.
|
|
He took his woman in his arms and smothered her upturned,
|
|
panting lips with kisses.
|
|
|
|
For a moment Jane lay there with half-closed eyes. For a
|
|
moment--the first in her young life--she knew the meaning
|
|
of love.
|
|
|
|
But as suddenly as the veil had been withdrawn it dropped
|
|
again, and an outraged conscience suffused her face with its
|
|
scarlet mantle, and a mortified woman thrust Tarzan of the
|
|
Apes from her and buried her face in her hands.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had been surprised when he had found the girl he had
|
|
learned to love after a vague and abstract manner a willing
|
|
prisoner in his arms. Now he was surprised that she repulsed him.
|
|
|
|
He came close to her once more and took hold of her arm.
|
|
She turned upon him like a tigress, striking his great breast
|
|
with her tiny hands.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan could not understand it.
|
|
|
|
A moment ago and it had been his intention to hasten Jane
|
|
back to her people, but that little moment was lost now in the
|
|
dim and distant past of things which were but can never be again,
|
|
and with it the good intentions had gone to join the impossible.
|
|
|
|
Since then Tarzan of the Apes had felt a warm, lithe form
|
|
close pressed to his. Hot, sweet breath against his cheek and
|
|
mouth had fanned a new flame to life within his breast, and
|
|
perfect lips had clung to his in burning kisses that had seared
|
|
a deep brand into his soul--a brand which marked a new Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Again he laid his hand upon her arm. Again she repulsed
|
|
him. And then Tarzan of the Apes did just what his first
|
|
ancestor would have done.
|
|
|
|
He took his woman in his arms and carried her into the jungle.
|
|
|
|
??
|
|
Early the following morning the four within the little cabin
|
|
by the beach were awakened by the booming of a cannon.
|
|
Clayton was the first to rush out, and there, beyond the
|
|
harbor's mouth, he saw two vessels lying at anchor.
|
|
|
|
One was the Arrow and the other a small French cruiser.
|
|
The sides of the latter were crowded with men gazing shoreward,
|
|
and it was evident to Clayton, as to the others who had now
|
|
joined him, that the gun which they had heard had been fired
|
|
to attract their attention if they still remained at the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Both vessels lay at a considerable distance from shore, and
|
|
it was doubtful if their glasses would locate the waving hats
|
|
of the little party far in between the harbor's points.
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda had removed her red apron and was waving it
|
|
frantically above her head; but Clayton, still fearing that even
|
|
this might not be seen, hurried off toward the northern point
|
|
where lay his signal pyre ready for the match.
|
|
|
|
It seemed an age to him, as to those who waited breathlessly
|
|
behind, ere he reached the great pile of dry branches
|
|
and underbrush.
|
|
|
|
As he broke from the dense wood and came in sight of the
|
|
vessels again, he was filled with consternation to see that the
|
|
Arrow was making sail and that the cruiser was already
|
|
under way.
|
|
|
|
Quickly lighting the pyre in a dozen places, he hurried to
|
|
the extreme point of the promontory, where he stripped off
|
|
his shirt, and, tying it to a fallen branch, stood waving it back
|
|
and forth above him.
|
|
|
|
But still the vessels continued to stand out; and he had
|
|
given up all hope, when the great column of smoke, rising
|
|
above the forest in one dense vertical shaft, attracted the
|
|
attention of a lookout aboard the cruiser, and instantly a
|
|
dozen glasses were leveled on the beach.
|
|
|
|
Presently Clayton saw the two ships come about again; and
|
|
while the Arrow lay drifting quietly on the ocean, the
|
|
cruiser steamed slowly back toward shore.
|
|
|
|
At some distance away she stopped, and a boat was lowered
|
|
and dispatched toward the beach.
|
|
|
|
As it was drawn up a young officer stepped out.
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Clayton, I presume?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Thank God, you have come!" was Clayton's reply. "And
|
|
it may be that it is not too late even now."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean, Monsieur?" asked the officer.
|
|
|
|
Clayton told of the abduction of Jane Porter and the need
|
|
of armed men to aid in the search for her.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU!" exclaimed the officer, sadly. "Yesterday and
|
|
it would not have been too late. Today and it may be better
|
|
that the poor lady were never found. It is horrible, Monsieur.
|
|
It is too horrible."
|
|
|
|
Other boats had now put off from the cruiser, and Clayton,
|
|
having pointed out the harbor's entrance to the officer,
|
|
entered the boat with him and its nose was turned toward the
|
|
little landlocked bay, into which the other craft followed.
|
|
|
|
Soon the entire party had landed where stood Professor
|
|
Porter, Mr. Philander and the weeping Esmeralda.
|
|
|
|
Among the officers in the last boats to put off from the
|
|
cruiser was the commander of the vessel; and when he had
|
|
heard the story of Jane's abduction, he generously called
|
|
for volunteers to accompany Professor Porter and Clayton
|
|
in their search.
|
|
|
|
Not an officer or a man was there of those brave and
|
|
sympathetic Frenchmen who did not quickly beg leave to
|
|
be one of the expedition.
|
|
|
|
The commander selected twenty men and two officers,
|
|
Lieutenant D'Arnot and Lieutenant Charpentier. A boat was
|
|
dispatched to the cruiser for provisions, ammunition, and
|
|
carbines; the men were already armed with revolvers.
|
|
|
|
Then, to Clayton's inquiries as to how they had happened
|
|
to anchor off shore and fire a signal gun, the commander,
|
|
Captain Dufranne, explained that a month before they had
|
|
sighted the Arrow bearing southwest under considerable
|
|
canvas, and that when they had signaled her to come about she
|
|
had but crowded on more sail.
|
|
|
|
They had kept her hull-up until sunset, firing several shots
|
|
after her, but the next morning she was nowhere to be seen.
|
|
They had then continued to cruise up and down the coast for
|
|
several weeks, and had about forgotten the incident of the
|
|
recent chase, when, early one morning a few days before the
|
|
lookout had described a vessel laboring in the trough of a
|
|
heavy sea and evidently entirely out of control.
|
|
|
|
As they steamed nearer to the derelict they were surprised
|
|
to note that it was the same vessel that had run from them a
|
|
few weeks earlier. Her forestaysail and mizzen spanker were
|
|
set as though an effort had been made to hold her head up
|
|
into the wind, but the sheets had parted, and the sails were
|
|
tearing to ribbons in the half gale of wind.
|
|
|
|
In the high sea that was running?? it was a difficult and
|
|
dangerous task to attempt to put a prize crew aboard her; and as
|
|
no signs of life had been seen above deck, it was decided to
|
|
stand by until the wind and sea abated; but just then a figure
|
|
was seen clinging to the rail and feebly waving a mute signal
|
|
of despair toward them.
|
|
|
|
Immediately a boat's crew was ordered out and an attempt
|
|
was successfully made to board the Arrow.
|
|
|
|
The sight that met the Frenchmen's eyes as they clambered
|
|
over the ship's side was appalling.
|
|
|
|
A dozen dead and dying men rolled hither and thither upon
|
|
the pitching deck, the living intermingled with the dead.
|
|
Two of the corpses appeared to have been partially devoured
|
|
as though by wolves.
|
|
|
|
The prize crew soon had the vessel under proper sail once
|
|
more and the living members of the ill-starred company
|
|
carried below to their hammocks.
|
|
|
|
The dead were wrapped in tarpaulins and lashed on deck
|
|
to be identified by their comrades before being consigned to
|
|
the deep.
|
|
|
|
None of the living was conscious when the Frenchmen
|
|
reached the Arrow's deck. Even the poor devil who had
|
|
waved the single despairing signal of distress had lapsed into
|
|
unconsciousness before he had learned whether it had availed
|
|
or not.
|
|
|
|
It did not take the French officer long to learn what had
|
|
caused the terrible condition aboard; for when water and
|
|
brandy were sought to restore the men, it was found that
|
|
there was none, nor even food of any description.
|
|
|
|
He immediately signalled to the cruiser to send water,
|
|
medicine, and provisions, and another boat made the perilous
|
|
trip to the Arrow.
|
|
|
|
When restoratives had been applied several of the men regained
|
|
consciousness, and then the whole story was told. That part of
|
|
it we know up to the sailing of the Arrow after the murder
|
|
of Snipes, and the burial of his body above the treasure chest.
|
|
|
|
It seems that the pursuit by the cruiser had so terrorized
|
|
the mutineers that they had continued out across the Atlantic
|
|
for several days after losing her; but on discovering the
|
|
meager supply of water and provisions aboard, they had
|
|
turned back toward the east.
|
|
|
|
With no one on board who understood navigation, discussions
|
|
soon arose as to their whereabouts; and as three days'
|
|
sailing to the east did not raise land, they bore off to the
|
|
north, fearing that the high north winds that had prevailed
|
|
had driven them south of the southern extremity of Africa.
|
|
|
|
They kept on a north-northeasterly course for two days,
|
|
when they were overtaken by a calm which lasted for nearly
|
|
a week. Their water was gone, and in another day they would
|
|
be without food.
|
|
|
|
Conditions changed rapidly from bad to worse. One man
|
|
went mad and leaped overboard. Soon another opened his
|
|
veins and drank his own blood.
|
|
|
|
When he died they threw him overboard also, though there
|
|
were those among them who wanted to keep the corpse on board.
|
|
Hunger was changing them from human beasts to wild beasts.
|
|
|
|
Two days before they had been picked up by the cruiser
|
|
they had become too weak to handle the vessel, and that
|
|
same day three men died. On the following morning it was
|
|
seen that one of the corpses had been partially devoured.
|
|
|
|
All that day the men lay glaring at each other like beasts
|
|
of prey, and the following morning two of the corpses lay
|
|
almost entirely stripped of flesh.
|
|
|
|
The men were but little stronger for their ghoulish repast,
|
|
for the want of water was by far the greatest agony with
|
|
which they had to contend. And then the cruiser had come.
|
|
|
|
When those who could had recovered, the entire story had
|
|
been told to the French commander; but the men were too
|
|
ignorant to be able to tell him at just what point on the coast
|
|
the professor and his party had been marooned, so the cruiser
|
|
had steamed slowly along within sight of land, firing occasional
|
|
signal guns and scanning every inch of the beach with glasses.
|
|
|
|
They had anchored by night so as not to neglect a particle
|
|
of the shore line, and it had happened that the preceding
|
|
night had brought them off the very beach where lay the
|
|
little camp they sought.
|
|
|
|
The signal guns of the afternoon before had not been
|
|
heard by those on shore, it was presumed, because they had
|
|
doubtless been in the thick of the jungle searching for Jane
|
|
Porter, where the noise of their own crashing through the
|
|
underbrush would have drowned the report of a far distant gun.
|
|
|
|
By the time the two parties had narrated their several
|
|
adventures, the cruiser's boat had returned with supplies
|
|
and arms for the expedition.
|
|
|
|
Within a few minutes the little body of sailors and the two
|
|
French officers, together with Professor Porter and Clayton,
|
|
set off upon their hopeless and ill-fated quest into the
|
|
untracked jungle.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 20
|
|
|
|
Heredity
|
|
|
|
When Jane realized that she was being borne away a captive
|
|
by the strange forest creature who had rescued her from
|
|
the clutches of the ape she struggled desperately to escape,
|
|
but the strong arms that held her as easily as though she
|
|
had been but a day-old babe only pressed a little more tightly.
|
|
|
|
So presently she gave up the futile effort and lay quietly,
|
|
looking through half-closed lids at the faces of the man who
|
|
strode easily through the tangled undergrowth with her.
|
|
|
|
The face above her was one of extraordinary beauty.
|
|
|
|
A perfect type of the strongly masculine, unmarred by
|
|
dissipation, or brutal or degrading passions. For, though Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes was a killer of men and of beasts, he killed as the
|
|
hunter kills, dispassionately, except on those rare occasions
|
|
when he had killed for hate--though not the brooding, malevolent
|
|
hate which marks the features of its own with hideous lines.
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan killed he more often smiled than scowled,
|
|
and smiles are the foundation of beauty.
|
|
|
|
One thing the girl had noticed particularly when she had
|
|
seen Tarzan rushing upon Terkoz--the vivid scarlet band
|
|
upon his forehead, from above the left eye to the scalp; but
|
|
now as she scanned his features she noticed that it was gone,
|
|
and only a thin white line marked the spot where it had been.
|
|
|
|
As she lay more quietly in his arms Tarzan slightly relaxed
|
|
his grip upon her.
|
|
|
|
Once he looked down into her eyes and smiled, and the
|
|
girl had to close her own to shut out the vision of that
|
|
handsome, winning face.
|
|
|
|
Presently Tarzan took to the trees, and Jane, wondering
|
|
that she felt no fear, began to realize that in many respects
|
|
she had never felt more secure in her whole life than now as
|
|
she lay in the arms of this strong, wild creature, being borne,
|
|
God alone knew where or to what fate, deeper and deeper
|
|
into the savage fastness of the untamed forest.
|
|
|
|
When, with closed eyes, she commenced to speculate upon
|
|
the future, and terrifying fears were conjured by a vivid
|
|
imagination, she had but to raise her lids and look upon that
|
|
noble face so close to hers to dissipate the last remnant of
|
|
apprehension.
|
|
|
|
No, he could never harm her; of that she was convinced
|
|
when she translated the fine features and the frank, brave
|
|
eyes above her into the chivalry which they proclaimed.
|
|
|
|
On and on they went through what seemed to Jane a solid
|
|
mass of verdure, yet ever there appeared to open before this
|
|
forest god a passage, as by magic, which closed behind them
|
|
as they passed.
|
|
|
|
Scarce a branch scraped against her, yet above and below,
|
|
before and behind, the view presented naught but a solid
|
|
mass of inextricably interwoven branches and creepers.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan moved steadily onward his mind was occupied
|
|
with many strange and new thoughts. Here was a problem
|
|
the like of which he had never encountered, and he felt
|
|
rather than reasoned that he must meet it as a man and not
|
|
as an ape.
|
|
|
|
The free movement through the middle terrace, which was the
|
|
route he had followed for the most part, had helped to cool
|
|
the ardor of the first fierce passion of his new found love.
|
|
|
|
Now he discovered himself speculating upon the fate
|
|
which would have fallen to the girl had he not rescued her
|
|
from Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
He knew why the ape had not killed her, and he commenced
|
|
to compare his intentions with those of Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
True, it was the order of the jungle for the male to take his
|
|
mate by force; but could Tarzan be guided by the laws of the
|
|
beasts? Was not Tarzan a Man? But what did men do? He
|
|
was puzzled; for he did not know.
|
|
|
|
He wished that he might ask the girl, and then it came to
|
|
him that she had already answered him in the futile struggle
|
|
she had made to escape and to repulse him.
|
|
|
|
But now they had come to their destination, and Tarzan of
|
|
the Apes with Jane in his strong arms, swung lightly to the
|
|
turf of the arena where the great apes held their councils
|
|
and danced the wild orgy of the Dum-Dum.
|
|
|
|
Though they had come many miles, it was still but
|
|
midafternoon, and the amphitheater was bathed in the half
|
|
light which filtered through the maze of encircling foliage.
|
|
|
|
The green turf looked soft and cool and inviting. The myriad
|
|
noises of the jungle seemed far distant and hushed to a
|
|
mere echo of blurred sounds, rising and falling like the surf
|
|
upon a remote shore.
|
|
|
|
A feeling of dreamy peacefulness stole over Jane as she
|
|
sank down upon the grass where Tarzan had placed her, and
|
|
as she looked up at his great figure towering above her, there
|
|
was added a strange sense of perfect security.
|
|
|
|
As she watched him from beneath half-closed lids, Tarzan
|
|
crossed the little circular clearing toward the trees upon the
|
|
further side. She noted the graceful majesty of his carriage,
|
|
the perfect symmetry of his magnificent figure and the poise
|
|
of his well-shaped head upon his broad shoulders.
|
|
|
|
What a perfect creature! There could be naught of cruelty
|
|
or baseness beneath that godlike exterior. Never, she thought
|
|
had such a man strode the earth since God created the first in
|
|
his own image.
|
|
|
|
With a bound Tarzan sprang into the trees and disappeared.
|
|
Jane wondered where he had gone. Had he left her
|
|
there to her fate in the lonely jungle?
|
|
|
|
She glanced nervously about. Every vine and bush seemed but the
|
|
lurking-place of some huge and horrible beast waiting to bury
|
|
gleaming fangs into her soft flesh. Every sound she magnified
|
|
into the stealthy creeping of a sinuous and malignant body.
|
|
|
|
How different now that he had left her!
|
|
|
|
For a few minutes that seemed hours to the frightened girl,
|
|
she sat with tense nerves waiting for the spring of the
|
|
crouching thing that was to end her misery of apprehension.
|
|
|
|
She almost prayed for the cruel teeth that would give her
|
|
unconsciousness and surcease from the agony of fear.
|
|
|
|
She heard a sudden, slight sound behind her. With a cry
|
|
she sprang to her feet and turned to face her end.
|
|
|
|
There stood Tarzan, his arms filled with ripe and luscious fruit.
|
|
|
|
Jane reeled and would have fallen, had not Tarzan, dropping
|
|
his burden, caught her in his arms. She did not lose
|
|
consciousness, but she clung tightly to him, shuddering and
|
|
trembling like a frightened deer.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes stroked her soft hair and tried to comfort
|
|
and quiet her as Kala had him, when, as a little ape, he had
|
|
been frightened by Sabor, the lioness, or Histah, the snake.
|
|
|
|
Once he pressed his lips lightly upon her forehead, and she
|
|
did not move, but closed her eyes and sighed.
|
|
|
|
She could not analyze her feelings, nor did she wish to attempt
|
|
it. She was satisfied to feel the safety of those strong
|
|
arms, and to leave her future to fate; for the last few hours
|
|
had taught her to trust this strange wild creature of the forest
|
|
as she would have trusted but few of the men of her acquaintance.
|
|
|
|
As she thought of the strangeness of it, there commenced
|
|
to dawn upon her the realization that she had, possibly,
|
|
learned something else which she had never really known
|
|
before--love. She wondered and then she smiled.
|
|
|
|
And still smiling, she pushed Tarzan gently away; and
|
|
looking at him with a half-smiling, half-quizzical expression
|
|
that made her face wholly entrancing, she pointed to the fruit
|
|
upon the ground, and seated herself upon the edge of the
|
|
earthen drum of the anthropoids, for hunger was asserting itself.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan quickly gathered up the fruit, and, bringing it, laid
|
|
it at her feet; and then he, too, sat upon the drum beside her,
|
|
and with his knife opened and prepared the various fruits for
|
|
her meal.
|
|
|
|
Together and in silence they ate, occasionally stealing sly
|
|
glances at one another, until finally Jane broke into a merry
|
|
laugh in which Tarzan joined.
|
|
|
|
"I wish you spoke English," said the girl.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan shook his head, and an expression of wistful and
|
|
pathetic longing sobered his laughing eyes.
|
|
|
|
Then Jane tried speaking to him in French, and then in
|
|
German; but she had to laugh at her own blundering attempt
|
|
at the latter tongue.
|
|
|
|
"Anyway," she said to him in English, "you understand my
|
|
German as well as they did in Berlin."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had long since reached a decision as to what his
|
|
future procedure should be. He had had time to recollect all
|
|
that he had read of the ways of men and women in the books
|
|
at the cabin. He would act as he imagined the men in the
|
|
books would have acted were they in his place.
|
|
|
|
Again he rose and went into the trees, but first he tried to
|
|
explain by means of signs that he would return shortly, and
|
|
he did so well that Jane understood and was not afraid when
|
|
he had gone.
|
|
|
|
Only a feeling of loneliness came over her and she watched
|
|
the point where he had disappeared, with longing eyes, awaiting
|
|
his return. As before, she was appraised of his presence
|
|
by a soft sound behind her, and turned to see him coming
|
|
across the turf with a great armful of branches.
|
|
|
|
Then he went back again into the jungle and in a few minutes
|
|
reappeared with a quantity of soft grasses and ferns.
|
|
|
|
Two more trips he made until he had quite a pile of material
|
|
at hand.
|
|
|
|
Then he spread the ferns and grasses upon the ground in a
|
|
soft flat bed, and above it leaned many branches together so
|
|
that they met a few feet over its center. Upon these he spread
|
|
layers of huge leaves of the great elephant's ear, and with
|
|
more branches and more leaves he closed one end of the little
|
|
shelter he had built.
|
|
|
|
Then they sat down together again upon the edge of the
|
|
drum and tried to talk by signs.
|
|
|
|
The magnificent diamond locket which hung about Tarzan's
|
|
neck, had been a source of much wonderment to Jane.
|
|
She pointed to it now, and Tarzan removed it and handed the
|
|
pretty bauble to her.
|
|
|
|
She saw that it was the work of a skilled artisan and that
|
|
the diamonds were of great brilliancy and superbly set, but
|
|
the cutting of them denoted that they were of a former day.
|
|
She noticed too that the locket opened, and, pressing the
|
|
hidden clasp, she saw the two halves spring apart to reveal in
|
|
either section an ivory miniature.
|
|
|
|
One was of a beautiful woman and the other might have
|
|
been a likeness of the man who sat beside her, except for a
|
|
subtle difference of expression that was scarcely definable.
|
|
|
|
She looked up at Tarzan to find him leaning toward her
|
|
gazing on the miniatures with an expression of astonishment.
|
|
He reached out his hand for the locket and took it away
|
|
from her, examining the likenesses within with unmistakable
|
|
signs of surprise and new interest. His manner clearly
|
|
denoted that he had never before seen them, nor imagined that
|
|
the locket opened.
|
|
|
|
This fact caused Jane to indulge in further speculation, and
|
|
it taxed her imagination to picture how this beautiful ornament
|
|
came into the possession of a wild and savage creature
|
|
of the unexplored jungles of Africa.
|
|
|
|
Still more wonderful was how it contained the likeness of
|
|
one who might be a brother, or, more likely, the father of
|
|
this woodland demi-god who was even ignorant of the fact
|
|
that the locket opened.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was still gazing with fixity at the two faces.
|
|
Presently he removed the quiver from his shoulder, and
|
|
emptying the arrows upon the ground reached into the bottom of
|
|
the bag-like receptacle and drew forth a flat object wrapped
|
|
in many soft leaves and tied with bits of long grass.
|
|
|
|
Carefully he unwrapped it, removing layer after layer of
|
|
leaves until at length he held a photograph in his hand.
|
|
|
|
Pointing to the miniature of the man within the locket he
|
|
handed the photograph to Jane, holding the open locket beside it.
|
|
|
|
The photograph only served to puzzle the girl still more, for
|
|
it was evidently another likeness of the same man whose picture
|
|
rested in the locket beside that of the beautiful young woman.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was looking at her with an expression of puzzled
|
|
bewilderment in his eyes as she glanced up at him. He
|
|
seemed to be framing a question with his lips.
|
|
|
|
The girl pointed to the photograph and then to the miniature
|
|
and then to him, as though to indicate that she thought
|
|
the likenesses were of him, but he only shook his head, and
|
|
then shrugging his great shoulders, he took the photograph
|
|
from her and having carefully rewrapped it, placed it again
|
|
in the bottom of his quiver.
|
|
|
|
For a few moments he sat in silence, his eyes bent upon
|
|
the ground, while Jane held the little locket in her hand,
|
|
turning it over and over in an endeavor to find some further
|
|
clue that might lead to the identity of its original owner.
|
|
|
|
At length a simple explanation occurred to her.
|
|
|
|
The locket had belonged to Lord Greystoke, and the
|
|
likenesses were of himself and Lady Alice.
|
|
|
|
This wild creature had simply found it in the cabin by the beach.
|
|
How stupid of her not to have thought of that solution before.
|
|
|
|
But to account for the strange likeness between Lord
|
|
Greystoke and this forest god--that was quite beyond her,
|
|
and it is not strange that she could not imagine that this
|
|
naked savage was indeed an English nobleman.
|
|
|
|
At length Tarzan looked up to watch the girl as she examined
|
|
the locket. He could not fathom the meaning of the
|
|
faces within, but he could read the interest and fascination
|
|
upon the face of the live young creature by his side.
|
|
|
|
She noticed that he was watching her and thinking that he
|
|
wished his ornament again she held it out to him. He took it
|
|
from her and taking the chain in his two hands he placed it
|
|
about her neck, smiling at her expression of surprise at his
|
|
unexpected gift.
|
|
|
|
Jane shook her head vehemently and would have removed the
|
|
golden links from about her throat, but Tarzan would not let
|
|
her. Taking her hands in his, when she insisted upon it, he
|
|
held them tightly to prevent her.
|
|
|
|
At last she desisted and with a little laugh raised the locket
|
|
to her lips.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan did not know precisely what she meant, but he
|
|
guessed correctly that it was her way of acknowledging the
|
|
gift, and so he rose, and taking the locket in his hand,
|
|
stooped gravely like some courtier of old, and pressed his
|
|
lips upon it where hers had rested.
|
|
|
|
It was a stately and gallant little compliment performed
|
|
with the grace and dignity of utter unconsciousness of self.
|
|
It was the hall-mark of his aristocratic birth, the natural
|
|
outcropping of many generations of fine breeding, an hereditary
|
|
instinct of graciousness which a lifetime of uncouth and savage
|
|
training and environment could not eradicate.
|
|
|
|
It was growing dark now, and so they ate again of the fruit
|
|
which was both food and drink for them; then Tarzan rose,
|
|
and leading Jane to the little bower he had erected, motioned
|
|
her to go within.
|
|
|
|
For the first time in hours a feeling of fear swept over her,
|
|
and Tarzan felt her draw away as though shrinking from him.
|
|
|
|
Contact with this girl for half a day had left a very diferent
|
|
Tarzan from the one on whom the morning's sun had risen.
|
|
|
|
Now, in every fiber of his being, heredity spoke louder
|
|
than training.
|
|
|
|
He had not in one swift transition become a polished
|
|
gentleman from a savage ape-man, but at last the instincts
|
|
of the former predominated, and over all was the desire to
|
|
please the woman he loved, and to appear well in her eyes.
|
|
|
|
So Tarzan of the Apes did the only thing he knew to assure
|
|
Jane of her safety. He removed his hunting knife from its
|
|
sheath and handed it to her hilt first, again motioning her
|
|
into the bower.
|
|
|
|
The girl understood, and taking the long knife she entered
|
|
and lay down upon the soft grasses while Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
stretched himself upon the ground across the entrance.
|
|
|
|
And thus the rising sun found them in the morning.
|
|
|
|
When Jane awoke, she did not at first recall the strange
|
|
events of the preceding day, and so she wondered at her odd
|
|
surroundings--the little leafy bower, the soft grasses of her
|
|
bed, the unfamiliar prospect from the opening at her feet.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the circumstances of her position crept one by one
|
|
into her mind. And then a great wonderment arose in her
|
|
heart--a mighty wave of thankfulness and gratitude that
|
|
though she had been in such terrible danger, yet she was unharmed.
|
|
|
|
She moved to the entrance of the shelter to look for Tarzan.
|
|
He was gone; but this time no fear assailed her for she
|
|
knew that he would return.
|
|
|
|
In the grass at the entrance to her bower she saw the imprint
|
|
of his body where he had lain all night to guard her.
|
|
She knew that the fact that he had been there was all that
|
|
had permitted her to sleep in such peaceful security.
|
|
|
|
With him near, who could entertain fear? She wondered if
|
|
there was another man on earth with whom a girl could feel
|
|
so safe in the heart of this savage African jungle. Even the
|
|
lions and panthers had no fears for her now.
|
|
|
|
She looked up to see his lithe form drop softly from a
|
|
near-by tree. As he caught her eyes upon him his face lighted
|
|
with that frank and radiant smile that had won her confidence
|
|
the day before.
|
|
|
|
As he approached her Jane's heart beat faster and her eyes
|
|
brightened as they had never done before at the approach of any man.
|
|
|
|
He had again been gathering fruit and this he laid at the
|
|
entrance of her bower. Once more they sat down together to eat.
|
|
|
|
Jane commenced to wonder what his plans were. Would he
|
|
take her back to the beach or would he keep her here?
|
|
Suddenly she realized that the matter did not seem to
|
|
give her much concern. Could it be that she did not care!
|
|
|
|
She began to comprehend, also, that she was entirely contented
|
|
sitting here by the side of this smiling giant eating delicious
|
|
fruit in a sylvan paradise far within the remote depths of
|
|
an African jungle--that she was contented and very happy.
|
|
|
|
She could not understand it. Her reason told her that she
|
|
should be torn by wild anxieties, weighted by dread fears,
|
|
cast down by gloomy forebodings; but instead, her heart was
|
|
singing and she was smiling into the answering face of the
|
|
man beside her.
|
|
|
|
When they had finished their breakfast Tarzan went to her
|
|
bower and recovered his knife. The girl had entirely forgotten
|
|
it. She realized that it was because she had forgotten the
|
|
fear that prompted her to accept it.
|
|
|
|
Motioning her to follow, Tarzan walked toward the trees
|
|
at the edge of the arena, and taking her in one strong arm
|
|
swung to the branches above.
|
|
|
|
The girl knew that he was taking her back to her people, and
|
|
she could not understand the sudden feeling of loneliness
|
|
and sorrow which crept over her.
|
|
|
|
For hours they swung slowly along.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes did not hurry. He tried to draw out the
|
|
sweet pleasure of that journey with those dear arms about his
|
|
neck as long as possible, and so he went far south of the direct
|
|
route to the beach.
|
|
|
|
Several times they halted for brief rests, which Tarzan did
|
|
not need, and at noon they stopped for an hour at a little
|
|
brook, where they quenched their thirst, and ate.
|
|
|
|
So it was nearly sunset when they came to the clearing, and
|
|
Tarzan, dropping to the ground beside a great tree, parted
|
|
the tall jungle grass and pointed out the little cabin to her.
|
|
|
|
She took him by the hand to lead him to it, that she might
|
|
tell her father that this man had saved her from death and
|
|
worse than death, that he had watched over her as carefully
|
|
as a mother might have done.
|
|
|
|
But again the timidity of the wild thing in the face of
|
|
human habitation swept over Tarzan of the Apes. He drew
|
|
back, shaking his head.
|
|
|
|
The girl came close to him, looking up with pleading eyes.
|
|
Somehow she could not bear the thought of his going back
|
|
into the terrible jungle alone.
|
|
|
|
Still he shook his head, and finally he drew her to him very
|
|
gently and stooped to kiss her, but first he looked into her
|
|
eyes and waited to learn if she were pleased, or if she would
|
|
repulse him.
|
|
|
|
Just an instant the girl hesitated, and then she realized the
|
|
truth, and throwing her arms about his neck she drew his
|
|
face to hers and kissed him--unashamed.
|
|
|
|
"I love you--I love you," she murmured.
|
|
|
|
From far in the distance came the faint sound of many
|
|
guns. Tarzan and Jane raised their heads.
|
|
|
|
From the cabin came Mr. Philander and Esmeralda.
|
|
|
|
From where Tarzan and the girl stood they could not see
|
|
the two vessels lying at anchor in the harbor.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan pointed toward the sounds, touched his breast and
|
|
pointed again. She understood. He was going, and something
|
|
told her that it was because he thought her people were in danger.
|
|
|
|
Again he kissed her.
|
|
|
|
"Come back to me," she whispered. "I shall wait for you--always."
|
|
|
|
He was gone--and Jane turned to walk across the clearing
|
|
to the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander was the first to see her. It was dusk and Mr.
|
|
Philander was very near sighted.
|
|
|
|
"Quickly, Esmeralda!" he cried. "Let us seek safety within;
|
|
it is a lioness. Bless me!"
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda did not bother to verify Mr. Philander's vision.
|
|
His tone was enough. She was within the cabin and had
|
|
slammed and bolted the door before he had finished pronouncing
|
|
her name. The "Bless me" was startled out of Mr. Philander
|
|
by the discovery that Esmeralda, in the exuberance
|
|
of her haste, had fastened him upon the same side of the
|
|
door as was the close-approaching lioness.
|
|
|
|
He beat furiously upon the heavy portal.
|
|
|
|
"Esmeralda! Esmeralda!" he shrieked. "Let me in. I am
|
|
being devoured by a lion."
|
|
|
|
Esmeralda thought that the noise upon the door was made
|
|
by the lioness in her attempts to pursue her, so, after her
|
|
custom, she fainted.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander cast a frightened glance behind him.
|
|
|
|
Horrors! The thing was quite close now. He tried to
|
|
scramble up the side of the cabin, and succeeded in
|
|
catching a fleeting hold upon the thatched roof.
|
|
|
|
For a moment he hung there, clawing with his feet like a
|
|
cat on a clothesline, but presently a piece of the thatch came
|
|
away, and Mr. Philander, preceding it, was precipitated upon
|
|
his back.
|
|
|
|
At the instant he fell a remarkable item of natural history
|
|
leaped to his mind. If one feigns death lions and lionesses are
|
|
supposed to ignore one, according to Mr. Philander's faulty memory.
|
|
|
|
So Mr. Philander lay as he had fallen, frozen into the horrid
|
|
semblance of death. As his arms and legs had been extended
|
|
stiffly upward as he came to earth upon his back the
|
|
attitude of death was anything but impressive.
|
|
|
|
Jane had been watching his antics in mild-eyed surprise.
|
|
Now she laughed--a little choking gurgle of a laugh; but it
|
|
was enough. Mr. Philander rolled over upon his side and
|
|
peered about. At length he discovered her.
|
|
|
|
"Jane!" he cried. "Jane Porter. Bless me!"
|
|
|
|
He scrambled to his feet and rushed toward her. He could
|
|
not believe that it was she, and alive.
|
|
|
|
"Bless me!" Where did you come from? Where in the world
|
|
have you been? How--"
|
|
|
|
"Mercy, Mr. Philander," interrupted the girl, "I can never
|
|
remember so many questions."
|
|
|
|
"Well, well," said Mr. Philander. "Bless me! I am so filled
|
|
with surprise and exuberant delight at seeing you safe and
|
|
well again that I scarcely know what I am saying, really. But
|
|
come, tell me all that has happened to you."
|
|
|
|
Chapter 21
|
|
|
|
The Village of Torture
|
|
|
|
As the little expedition of sailors toiled through the dense
|
|
jungle searching for signs of Jane Porter, the futility of
|
|
their venture became more and more apparent, but the grief
|
|
of the old man and the hopeless eyes of the young Englishman
|
|
prevented the kind hearted D'Arnot from turning back.
|
|
|
|
He thought that there might be a bare possibility of finding
|
|
her body, or the remains of it, for he was positive that she
|
|
had been devoured by some beast of prey. He deployed his
|
|
men into a skirmish line from the point where Esmeralda had
|
|
been found, and in this extended formation they pushed their
|
|
way, sweating and panting, through the tangled vines and
|
|
creepers. It was slow work. Noon found them but a few
|
|
miles inland. They halted for a brief rest then, and after
|
|
pushing on for a short distance further one of the men
|
|
discovered a well-marked trail.
|
|
|
|
It was an old elephant track, and D'Arnot after consulting
|
|
with Professor Porter and Clayton decided to follow it.
|
|
|
|
The path wound through the jungle in a northeasterly
|
|
direction, and along it the column moved in single file.
|
|
|
|
Lieutenant D'Arnot was in the lead and moving at a quick
|
|
pace, for the trail was comparatively open. Immediately
|
|
behind him came Professor Porter, but as he could not keep
|
|
pace with the younger man D'Arnot was a hundred yards in
|
|
advance when suddenly a half dozen black warriors arose
|
|
about him.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot gave a warning shout to his column as the blacks
|
|
closed on him, but before he could draw his revolver he had
|
|
been pinioned and dragged into the jungle.
|
|
|
|
His cry had alarmed the sailors and a dozen of them
|
|
sprang forward past Professor Porter, running up the trail to
|
|
their officer's aid.
|
|
|
|
They did not know the cause of his outcry, only that it was
|
|
a warning of danger ahead. They had rushed past the spot
|
|
where D'Arnot had been seized when a spear hurled from the
|
|
jungle transfixed one of the men, and then a volley of arrows
|
|
fell among them.
|
|
|
|
Raising their rifles they fired into the underbrush in the
|
|
direction from which the missiles had come.
|
|
|
|
By this time the balance of the party had come up, and
|
|
volley after volley was fired toward the concealed foe. It was
|
|
these shots that Tarzan and Jane Porter had heard.
|
|
|
|
Lieutenant Charpentier, who had been bringing up the rear
|
|
of the column, now came running to the scene, and on hearing
|
|
the details of the ambush ordered the men to follow him,
|
|
and plunged into the tangled vegetation.
|
|
|
|
In an instant they were in a hand-to-hand fight with some
|
|
fifty black warriors of Mbonga's village. Arrows and bullets
|
|
flew thick and fast.
|
|
|
|
Queer African knives and French gun butts mingled for a
|
|
moment in savage and bloody duels, but soon the natives fled
|
|
into the jungle, leaving the Frenchmen to count their losses.
|
|
|
|
Four of the twenty were dead, a dozen others were
|
|
wounded, and Lieutenant D'Arnot was missing. Night was
|
|
falling rapidly, and their predicament was rendered doubly
|
|
worse when they could not even find the elephant trail which
|
|
they had been following.
|
|
|
|
There was but one thing to do, make camp where they
|
|
were until daylight. Lieutenant Charpentier ordered a
|
|
clearing made and a circular abatis of underbrush constructed
|
|
about the camp.
|
|
|
|
This work was not completed until long after dark, the
|
|
men building a huge fire in the center of the clearing to give
|
|
them light to work by.
|
|
|
|
When all was safe as possible against attack of wild beasts
|
|
and savage men, Lieutenant Charpentier placed sentries
|
|
about the little camp and the tired and hungry men threw
|
|
themselves upon the ground to sleep.
|
|
|
|
The groans of the wounded, mingled with the roaring and
|
|
growling of the great beasts which the noise and firelight had
|
|
attracted, kept sleep, except in its most fitful form, from the
|
|
tired eyes. It was a sad and hungry party that lay through the
|
|
long night praying for dawn.
|
|
|
|
The blacks who had seized D'Arnot had not waited to participate
|
|
in the fight which followed, but instead had dragged their
|
|
prisoner a little way through the jungle and then struck
|
|
the trail further on beyond the scene of the fighting in which
|
|
their fellows were engaged.
|
|
|
|
They hurried him along, the sounds of battle growing fainter
|
|
and fainter as they drew away from the contestants until there
|
|
suddenly broke upon D'Arnot's vision a good-sized clearing
|
|
at one end of which stood a thatched and palisaded village.
|
|
|
|
It was now dusk, but the watchers at the gate saw the
|
|
approaching trio and distinguished one as a prisoner ere they
|
|
reached the portals.
|
|
|
|
A cry went up within the palisade. A great throng of
|
|
women and children rushed out to meet the party.
|
|
|
|
And then began for the French officer the most terrifying
|
|
experience which man can encounter upon earth--the reception
|
|
of a white prisoner into a village of African cannibals.
|
|
|
|
To add to the fiendishness of their cruel savagery was the
|
|
poignant memory of still crueler barbarities practiced upon
|
|
them and theirs by the white officers of that arch hypocrite,
|
|
Leopold II of Belgium, because of whose atrocities they had
|
|
fled the Congo Free State--a pitiful remnant of what once
|
|
had been a mighty tribe.
|
|
|
|
They fell upon D'Arnot tooth and nail, beating him with
|
|
sticks and stones and tearing at him with claw-like hands.
|
|
Every vestige of clothing was torn from him, and the merciless
|
|
blows fell upon his bare and quivering flesh. But not
|
|
once did the Frenchman cry out in pain. He breathed a silent
|
|
prayer that he be quickly delivered from his torture.
|
|
|
|
But the death he prayed for was not to be so easily had.
|
|
Soon the warriors beat the women away from their prisoner.
|
|
He was to be saved for nobler sport than this, and the first
|
|
wave of their passion having subsided they contented themselves
|
|
with crying out taunts and insults and spitting upon him.
|
|
|
|
Presently they reached the center of the village. There
|
|
D'Arnot was bound securely to the great post from which no
|
|
live man had ever been released.
|
|
|
|
A number of the women scattered to their several huts to
|
|
fetch pots and water, while others built a row of fires on
|
|
which portions of the feast were to be boiled while the balance
|
|
would be slowly dried in strips for future use, as they
|
|
expected the other warriors to return with many prisoners.
|
|
The festivities were delayed awaiting the return of the warriors
|
|
who had remained to engage in the skirmish with the white men,
|
|
so that it was quite late when all were in the village,
|
|
and the dance of death commenced to circle around the
|
|
doomed officer.
|
|
|
|
Half fainting from pain and exhaustion, D'Arnot watched from
|
|
beneath half-closed lids what seemed but the vagary of delirium,
|
|
or some horrid nightmare from which he must soon awake.
|
|
|
|
The bestial faces, daubed with color--the huge mouths and
|
|
flabby hanging lips--the yellow teeth, sharp filed--the rolling,
|
|
demon eyes--the shining naked bodies--the cruel spears.
|
|
Surely no such creatures really existed upon earth--he must
|
|
indeed be dreaming.
|
|
|
|
The savage, whirling bodies circled nearer. Now a spear
|
|
sprang forth and touched his arm. The sharp pain and the
|
|
feel of hot, trickling blood assured him of the awful
|
|
reality of his hopeless position.
|
|
|
|
Another spear and then another touched him. He closed
|
|
his eyes and held his teeth firm set--he would not cry out.
|
|
|
|
He was a soldier of France, and he would teach these
|
|
beasts how an officer and a gentleman died.
|
|
|
|
??
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes needed no interpreter to translate the
|
|
story of those distant shots. With Jane Porter's kisses still
|
|
warm upon his lips he was swinging with incredible rapidity
|
|
through the forest trees straight toward the village of Mbonga.
|
|
|
|
He was not interested in the location of the encounter, for
|
|
he judged that that would soon be over. Those who were
|
|
killed he could not aid, those who escaped would not need
|
|
his assistance.
|
|
|
|
It was to those who had neither been killed or escaped that
|
|
he hastened. And he knew that he would find them by the
|
|
great post in the center of Mbonga village.
|
|
|
|
Many times had Tarzan seen Mbonga's black raiding parties
|
|
return from the northward with prisoners, and always
|
|
were the same scenes enacted about that grim stake,
|
|
beneath the flaring light of many fires.
|
|
|
|
He knew, too, that they seldom lost much time before
|
|
consummating the fiendish purpose of their captures.
|
|
He doubted that he would arrive in time to do more
|
|
than avenge.
|
|
|
|
On he sped. Night had fallen and he traveled high along
|
|
the upper terrace where the gorgeous tropic moon lighted the
|
|
dizzy pathway through the gently undulating branches of the
|
|
tree tops.
|
|
|
|
Presently he caught the reflection of a distant blaze. It lay
|
|
to the right of his path. It must be the light from the camp
|
|
fire the two men had built before they were attacked--Tarzan
|
|
knew nothing of the presence of the sailors.
|
|
|
|
So sure was Tarzan of his jungle knowledge that he did not
|
|
turn from his course, but passed the glare at a distance of a
|
|
half mile. It was the camp fire of the Frenchmen.
|
|
|
|
In a few minutes more Tarzan swung into the trees above
|
|
Mbonga's village. Ah, he was not quite too late! Or, was he?
|
|
He could not tell. The figure at the stake was very still, yet
|
|
the black warriors were but pricking it.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan knew their customs. The death blow had not been
|
|
struck. He could tell almost to a minute how far the dance
|
|
had gone.
|
|
|
|
In another instant Mbonga's knife would sever one of the
|
|
victim's ears--that would mark the beginning of the end, for
|
|
very shortly after only a writhing mass of mutilated flesh
|
|
would remain.
|
|
|
|
There would still be life in it, but death then would be the
|
|
only charity it craved.
|
|
|
|
The stake stood forty feet from the nearest tree. Tarzan
|
|
coiled his rope. Then there rose suddenly above the fiendish
|
|
cries of the dancing demons the awful challenge of the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
The dancers halted as though turned to stone.
|
|
|
|
The rope sped with singing whir high above the heads of
|
|
the blacks. It was quite invisible in the flaring lights
|
|
of the camp fires.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot opened his eyes. A huge black, standing directly before
|
|
him, lunged backward as though felled by an invisible hand.
|
|
|
|
Struggling and shrieking, his body, rolling from side to
|
|
side, moved quickly toward the shadows beneath the trees.
|
|
|
|
The blacks, their eyes protruding in horror, watched spellbound.
|
|
|
|
Once beneath the trees, the body rose straight into the air,
|
|
and as it disappeared into the foliage above, the terrified
|
|
negroes, screaming with fright, broke into a mad race for the
|
|
village gate.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot was left alone.
|
|
|
|
He was a brave man, but he had felt the short hairs bristle
|
|
upon the nape of his neck when that uncanny cry rose upon
|
|
the air.
|
|
|
|
As the writhing body of the black soared, as though by
|
|
unearthly power, into the dense foliage of the forest, D'Arnot
|
|
felt an icy shiver run along his spine, as though death had
|
|
risen from a dark grave and laid a cold and clammy finger on
|
|
his flesh.
|
|
|
|
As D'Arnot watched the spot where the body had entered
|
|
the tree he heard the sounds of movement there.
|
|
|
|
The branches swayed as though under the weight of a
|
|
man's body--there was a crash and the black came sprawling
|
|
to earth again,--to lie very quietly where he had fallen.
|
|
|
|
Immediately after him came a white body, but this one
|
|
alighted erect.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot saw a clean-limbed young giant emerge from the
|
|
shadows into the firelight and come quickly toward him.
|
|
|
|
What could it mean? Who could it be? Some new creature
|
|
of torture and destruction, doubtless.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot waited. His eyes never left the face of the advancing
|
|
man. Nor did the other's frank, clear eyes waver beneath
|
|
D'Arnot's fixed gaze.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot was reassured, but still without much hope,
|
|
though he felt that that face could not mask a cruel heart.
|
|
|
|
Without a word Tarzan of the Apes cut the bonds which
|
|
held the Frenchman. Weak from suffering and loss of blood,
|
|
he would have fallen but for the strong arm that caught him.
|
|
|
|
He felt himself lifted from the ground. There was a sensation
|
|
as of flying, and then he lost consciousness.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 22
|
|
|
|
The Search Party
|
|
|
|
When dawn broke upon the little camp of Frenchmen in the
|
|
heart of the jungle it found a sad and disheartened group.
|
|
|
|
As soon as it was light enough to see their surroundings
|
|
Lieutenant Charpentier sent men in groups of three in several
|
|
directions to locate the trail, and in ten minutes it was found
|
|
and the expedition was hurrying back toward the beach.
|
|
|
|
It was slow work, for they bore the bodies of six dead
|
|
men, two more having succumbed during the night, and several
|
|
of those who were wounded required support to move
|
|
even very slowly.
|
|
|
|
Charpentier had decided to return to camp for reinforcements,
|
|
and then make an attempt to track down the natives
|
|
and rescue D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
It was late in the afternoon when the exhausted men
|
|
reached the clearing by the beach, but for two of them the
|
|
return brought so great a happiness that all their suffering
|
|
and heartbreaking grief was forgotten on the instant.
|
|
|
|
As the little party emerged from the jungle the first person
|
|
that Professor Porter and Cecil Clayton saw was Jane, standing
|
|
by the cabin door.
|
|
|
|
With a little cry of joy and relief she ran forward to greet
|
|
them, throwing her arms about her father's neck and bursting
|
|
into tears for the first time since they had been cast upon
|
|
this hideous and adventurous shore.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter strove manfully to suppress his own emotions,
|
|
but the strain upon his nerves and weakened vitality
|
|
were too much for him, and at length, burying his old face in
|
|
the girl's shoulder, he sobbed quietly like a tired child.
|
|
|
|
Jane led him toward the cabin, and the Frenchmen turned
|
|
toward the beach from which several of their fellows were
|
|
advancing to meet them.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, wishing to leave father and daughter alone, joined the
|
|
sailors and remained talking with the officers until their boat
|
|
pulled away toward the cruiser whither Lieutenant Charpentier
|
|
was bound to report the unhappy outcome of his adventure.
|
|
|
|
Then Clayton turned back slowly toward the cabin. His heart
|
|
was filled with happiness. The woman he loved was safe.
|
|
|
|
He wondered by what manner of miracle she had been
|
|
spared. To see her alive seemed almost unbelievable.
|
|
|
|
As he approached the cabin he saw Jane coming out.
|
|
When she saw him she hurried forward to meet him.
|
|
|
|
"Jane!" he cried, "God has been good to us, indeed. Tell
|
|
me how you escaped--what form Providence took to save
|
|
you for--us."
|
|
|
|
He had never before called her by her given name. Forty-eight
|
|
hours before it would have suffused Jane with a soft glow of
|
|
pleasure to have heard that name from Clayton's lips--now
|
|
it frightened her.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Clayton," she said quietly, extending her hand, "first
|
|
let me thank you for your chivalrous loyalty to my dear father.
|
|
He has told me how noble and self-sacrificing you have
|
|
been. How can we repay you!"
|
|
|
|
Clayton noticed that she did not return his familiar salutation,
|
|
but he felt no misgivings on that score. She had been
|
|
through so much. This was no time to force his love upon
|
|
her, he quickly realized.
|
|
|
|
"I am already repaid," he said. "Just to see you and Professor
|
|
Porter both safe, well, and together again. I do not
|
|
think that I could much longer have endured the pathos of
|
|
his quiet and uncomplaining grief.
|
|
|
|
"It was the saddest experience of my life, Miss Porter; and
|
|
then, added to it, there was my own grief--the greatest I
|
|
have ever known. But his was so hopeless--his was pitiful. It
|
|
taught me that no love, not even that of a man for his wife
|
|
may be so deep and terrible and self-sacrificing as the love of
|
|
a father for his daughter."
|
|
|
|
The girl bowed her head. There was a question she wanted
|
|
to ask, but it seemed almost sacrilegious in the face of the
|
|
love of these two men and the terrible suffering they had
|
|
endured while she sat laughing and happy beside a godlike
|
|
creature of the forest, eating delicious fruits and looking
|
|
with eyes of love into answering eyes.
|
|
|
|
But love is a strange master, and human nature is still
|
|
stranger, so she asked her question.
|
|
|
|
"Where is the forest man who went to rescue you? Why
|
|
did he not return?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not understand," said Clayton. "Whom do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"He who has saved each of us--who saved me from the gorilla."
|
|
|
|
"Oh," cried Clayton, in surprise. "It was he who rescued you?
|
|
You have not told me anything of your adventure, you know."
|
|
|
|
"But the wood man," she urged. "Have you not seen him?
|
|
When we heard the shots in the jungle, very faint and far
|
|
away, he left me. We had just reached the clearing, and he
|
|
hurried off in the direction of the fighting. I know he went
|
|
to aid you."
|
|
|
|
Her tone was almost pleading--her manner tense with suppressed
|
|
emotion. Clayton could not but notice it, and he wondered,
|
|
vaguely, why she was so deeply moved--so anxious to
|
|
know the whereabouts of this strange creature.
|
|
|
|
Yet a feeling of apprehension of some impending sorrow
|
|
haunted him, and in his breast, unknown to himself, was
|
|
implanted the first germ of jealousy and suspicion of the
|
|
ape-man, to whom he owed his life.
|
|
|
|
"We did not see him," he replied quietly. "He did not join
|
|
us." And then after a moment of thoughtful pause: "Possibly
|
|
he joined his own tribe--the men who attacked us." He did
|
|
not know why he had said it, for he did not believe it.
|
|
|
|
The girl looked at him wide eyed for a moment.
|
|
|
|
"No!" she exclaimed vehemently, much too vehemently he
|
|
thought. "It could not be. They were savages."
|
|
|
|
Clayton looked puzzled.
|
|
|
|
"He is a strange, half-savage creature of the jungle, Miss
|
|
Porter. We know nothing of him. He neither speaks nor
|
|
understands any European tongue--and his ornaments and
|
|
weapons are those of the West Coast savages."
|
|
|
|
Clayton was speaking rapidly.
|
|
|
|
"There are no other human beings than savages within
|
|
hundreds of miles, Miss Porter. He must belong to the tribes
|
|
which attacked us, or to some other equally savage--he may
|
|
even be a cannibal."
|
|
|
|
Jane blanched.
|
|
|
|
"I will not believe it," she half whispered. "It is not true.
|
|
You shall see," she said, addressing Clayton, "that he will
|
|
come back and that he will prove that you are wrong. You
|
|
do not know him as I do. I tell you that he is a gentleman."
|
|
|
|
Clayton was a generous and chivalrous man, but something
|
|
in the girl's breathless defense of the forest man stirred him
|
|
to unreasoning jealousy, so that for the instant he forgot all
|
|
that they owed to this wild demi-god, and he answered her
|
|
with a half sneer upon his lip.
|
|
|
|
"Possibly you are right, Miss Porter," he said, "but I do
|
|
not think that any of us need worry about our carrion-eating
|
|
acquaintance. The chances are that he is some half-demented
|
|
castaway who will forget us more quickly, but no more
|
|
surely, than we shall forget him. He is only a beast of
|
|
the jungle, Miss Porter."
|
|
|
|
The girl did not answer, but she felt her heart shrivel
|
|
within her.
|
|
|
|
She knew that Clayton spoke merely what he thought, and
|
|
for the first time she began to analyze the structure which
|
|
supported her newfound love, and to subject its object to a
|
|
critical examination.
|
|
|
|
Slowly she turned and walked back to the cabin. She tried
|
|
to imagine her wood-god by her side in the saloon of an
|
|
ocean liner. She saw him eating with his hands, tearing his
|
|
food like a beast of prey, and wiping his greasy fingers upon
|
|
his thighs. She shuddered.
|
|
|
|
She saw him as she introduced him to her friends--uncouth,
|
|
illiterate--a boor; and the girl winced.
|
|
|
|
She had reached her room now, and as she sat upon the
|
|
edge of her bed of ferns and grasses, with one hand resting
|
|
upon her rising and falling bosom, she felt the hard outlines
|
|
of the man's locket.
|
|
|
|
She drew it out, holding it in the palm of her hand for a
|
|
moment with tear-blurred eyes bent upon it. Then she raised
|
|
it to her lips, and crushing it there buried her face in
|
|
the soft ferns, sobbing.
|
|
|
|
"Beast?" she murmured. "Then God make me a beast; for,
|
|
man or beast, I am yours."
|
|
|
|
She did not see Clayton again that day. Esmeralda brought
|
|
her supper to her, and she sent word to her father that she
|
|
was suffering from the reaction following her adventure.
|
|
|
|
The next morning Clayton left early with the relief expedition
|
|
in search of Lieutenant D'Arnot. There were two hundred
|
|
armed men this time, with ten officers and two surgeons,
|
|
and provisions for a week.
|
|
|
|
They carried bedding and hammocks, the latter for transporting
|
|
their sick and wounded.
|
|
|
|
It was a determined and angry company--a punitive expedition
|
|
as well as one of relief. They reached the sight of the
|
|
skirmish of the previous expedition shortly after noon, for
|
|
they were now traveling a known trail and no time was lost
|
|
in exploring.
|
|
|
|
From there on the elephant-track led straight to Mbonga's
|
|
village. It was but two o'clock when the head of the column
|
|
halted upon the edge of the clearing.
|
|
|
|
Lieutenant Charpentier, who was in command, immediately
|
|
sent a portion of his force through the jungle to the opposite
|
|
side of the village. Another detachment was dispatched
|
|
to a point before the village gate, while he remained with the
|
|
balance upon the south side of the clearing.
|
|
|
|
It was arranged that the party which was to take its position
|
|
to the north, and which would be the last to gain its station
|
|
should commence the assault, and that their opening volley
|
|
should be the signal for a concerted rush from all sides in an
|
|
attempt to carry the village by storm at the first charge.
|
|
|
|
For half an hour the men with Lieutenant Charpentier
|
|
crouched in the dense foliage of the jungle, waiting the
|
|
signal. To them it seemed like hours. They could see natives in
|
|
the fields, and others moving in and out of the village gate.
|
|
|
|
At length the signal came--a sharp rattle of musketry, and
|
|
like one man, an answering volley tore from the jungle to the
|
|
west and to the south.
|
|
|
|
The natives in the field dropped their implements and
|
|
broke madly for the palisade. The French bullets mowed
|
|
them down, and the French sailors bounded over their
|
|
prostrate bodies straight for the village gate.
|
|
|
|
So sudden and unexpected the assault had been that the
|
|
whites reached the gates before the frightened natives could
|
|
bar them, and in another minute the village street was filled
|
|
with armed men fighting hand to hand in an inextricable tangle.
|
|
|
|
For a few moments the blacks held their ground within the
|
|
entrance to the street, but the revolvers, rifles and cutlasses
|
|
of the Frenchmen crumpled the native spearmen and struck
|
|
down the black archers with their bows halfdrawn.
|
|
|
|
Soon the battle turned to a wild rout, and then to a grim
|
|
massacre; for the French sailors had seen bits of D'Arnot's
|
|
uniform upon several of the black warriors who opposed them.
|
|
|
|
They spared the children and those of the women whom
|
|
they were not forced to kill in self-defense, but when at
|
|
length they stopped, parting, blood covered and sweating, it
|
|
was because there lived to oppose them no single warrior of
|
|
all the savage village of Mbonga.
|
|
|
|
Carefully they ransacked every hut and corner of the village,
|
|
but no sign of D'Arnot could they find. They questioned
|
|
the prisoners by signs, and finally one of the sailors who had
|
|
served in the French Congo found that he could make them
|
|
understand the bastard tongue that passes for language between
|
|
the whites and the more degraded tribes of the coast,
|
|
but even then they could learn nothing definite regarding the
|
|
fate of D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
Only excited gestures and expressions of fear could they
|
|
obtain in response to their inquiries concerning their fellow;
|
|
and at last they became convinced that these were but evidences
|
|
of the guilt of these demons who had slaughtered and
|
|
eaten their comrade two nights before.
|
|
|
|
At length all hope left them, and they prepared to camp
|
|
for the night within the village. The prisoners were herded
|
|
into three huts where they were heavily guarded. Sentries
|
|
were posted at the barred gates, and finally the village was
|
|
wrapped in the silence of slumber, except for the wailing of
|
|
the native women for their dead.
|
|
|
|
??
|
|
The next morning they set out upon the return march.
|
|
Their original intention had been to burn the village, but
|
|
this idea was abandoned and the prisoners were left behind,
|
|
weeping and moaning, but with roofs to cover them and a
|
|
palisade for refuge from the beasts of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the expedition retraced its steps of the preceding
|
|
day. Ten loaded hammocks retarded its pace. In eight of
|
|
them lay the more seriously wounded, while two swung beneath
|
|
the weight of the dead.
|
|
|
|
Clayton and Lieutenant Charpentier brought up the rear of
|
|
the column; the Englishman silent in respect for the other's
|
|
grief, for D'Arnot and Charpentier had been inseparable
|
|
friends since boyhood.
|
|
|
|
Clayton could not but realize that the Frenchman felt his
|
|
grief the more keenly because D'Arnot's sacrifice had been so
|
|
futile, since Jane had been rescued before D'Arnot had fallen
|
|
into the hands of the savages, and again because the service
|
|
in which he had lost his life had been outside his duty and
|
|
for strangers and aliens; but when he spoke of it to Lieutenant
|
|
Charpentier, the latter shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"No, Monsieur," he said, "D'Arnot would have chosen to
|
|
die thus. I only grieve that I could not have died for him, or
|
|
at least with him. I wish that you could have known him better,
|
|
Monsieur. He was indeed an officer and a gentleman--a
|
|
title conferred on many, but deserved by so few.
|
|
|
|
"He did not die futilely, for his death in the cause of a
|
|
strange American girl will make us, his comrades, face our
|
|
ends the more bravely, however they may come to us."
|
|
|
|
Clayton did not reply, but within him rose a new respect
|
|
for Frenchmen which remained undimmed ever after.
|
|
|
|
It was quite late when they reached the cabin by the beach.
|
|
A single shot before they emerged from the jungle had announced
|
|
to those in camp as well as on the ship that the expedition
|
|
had been too late--for it had been prearranged that
|
|
when they came within a mile or two of camp one shot was
|
|
to be fired to denote failure, or three for success, while two
|
|
would have indicated that they had found no sign of either
|
|
D'Arnot or his black captors.
|
|
|
|
So it was a solemn party that awaited their coming, and few
|
|
words were spoken as the dead and wounded men were tenderly
|
|
placed in boats and rowed silently toward the cruiser.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, exhausted from his five days of laborious marching
|
|
through the jungle and from the effects of his two battles
|
|
with the blacks, turned toward the cabin to seek a mouthful
|
|
of food and then the comparative ease of his bed of grasses
|
|
after two nights in the jungle.
|
|
|
|
By the cabin door stood Jane.
|
|
|
|
"The poor lieutenant?" she asked. "Did you find no trace
|
|
of him?"
|
|
|
|
"We were too late, Miss Porter," he replied sadly.
|
|
|
|
"Tell me. What had happened?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot, Miss Porter, it is too horrible."
|
|
|
|
"You do not mean that they had tortured him?" she whispered.
|
|
|
|
"We do not know what they did to him BEFORE they killed
|
|
him," he answered, his face drawn with fatigue and the sorrow
|
|
he felt for poor D'Arnot and he emphasized the word before.
|
|
|
|
"BEFORE they killed him! What do you mean? They are
|
|
not--? They are not--?"
|
|
|
|
She was thinking of what Clayton had said of the forest
|
|
man's probable relationship to this tribe and she could not
|
|
frame the awful word.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Miss Porter, they were--cannibals," he said, almost
|
|
bitterly, for to him too had suddenly come the thought of the
|
|
forest man, and the strange, unaccountable jealousy he had
|
|
felt two days before swept over him once more.
|
|
|
|
And then in sudden brutality that was as unlike Clayton as
|
|
courteous consideration is unlike an ape, he blurted out:
|
|
|
|
"When your forest god left you he was doubtless hurrying
|
|
to the feast."
|
|
|
|
He was sorry ere the words were spoken though he did not
|
|
know how cruelly they had cut the girl. His regret was for his
|
|
baseless disloyalty to one who had saved the lives of every
|
|
member of his party, and offered harm to none.
|
|
|
|
The girl's head went high.
|
|
|
|
"There could be but one suitable reply to your assertion,
|
|
Mr. Clayton," she said icily, "and I regret that I am not a
|
|
man, that I might make it." She turned quickly and entered
|
|
the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Clayton was an Englishman, so the girl had passed quite out
|
|
of sight before he deduced what reply a man would have made.
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word," he said ruefully, "she called me a liar.
|
|
And I fancy I jolly well deserved it," he added thoughtfully.
|
|
"Clayton, my boy, I know you are tired out and unstrung,
|
|
but that's no reason why you should make an ass of yourself.
|
|
You'd better go to bed."
|
|
|
|
But before he did so he called gently to Jane upon the opposite
|
|
side of the sailcloth partition, for he wished to apologize,
|
|
but he might as well have addressed the Sphinx. Then he wrote
|
|
upon a piece of paper and shoved it beneath the partition.
|
|
|
|
Jane saw the little note and ignored it, for she was very
|
|
angry and hurt and mortified, but--she was a woman, and so
|
|
eventually she picked it up and read it.
|
|
|
|
MY DEAR MISS PORTER:
|
|
|
|
I had no reason to insinuate what I did. My only excuse is
|
|
that my nerves must be unstrung--which is no excuse at all.
|
|
|
|
Please try and think that I did not say it. I am very sorry. I
|
|
would not have hurt YOU, above all others in the world. Say
|
|
that you forgive me.
|
|
WM. CECIL CLAYTON.
|
|
|
|
"He did think it or he never would have said it," reasoned
|
|
the girl, "but it cannot be true--oh, I know it is not true!"
|
|
|
|
One sentence in the letter frightened her: "I would not
|
|
have hurt YOU above all others in the world."
|
|
|
|
A week ago that sentence would have filled her with delight,
|
|
now it depressed her.
|
|
|
|
She wished she had never met Clayton. She was sorry that
|
|
she had ever seen the forest god. No, she was glad. And there
|
|
was that other note she had found in the grass before the
|
|
cabin the day after her return from the jungle, the love note
|
|
signed by Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
Who could be this new suitor? If he were another of the
|
|
wild denizens of this terrible forest what might he not do to
|
|
claim her?
|
|
|
|
"Esmeralda! Wake up," she cried.
|
|
|
|
"You make me so irritable, sleeping there peacefully when
|
|
you know perfectly well that the world is filled with sorrow."
|
|
|
|
"Gaberelle!" screamed Esmeralda, sitting up. "What is it
|
|
now? A hipponocerous? Where is he, Miss Jane?"
|
|
|
|
"Nonsense, Esmeralda, there is nothing. Go back to sleep.
|
|
You are bad enough asleep, but you are infinitely worse awake."
|
|
|
|
"Yes honey, but what's the matter with you, precious? You
|
|
acts sort of disgranulated this evening."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Esmeralda, I'm just plain ugly to-night," said the girl.
|
|
"Don't pay any attention to me--that's a dear."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, honey; now you go right to sleep. Your nerves are
|
|
all on edge. What with all these ripotamuses and man eating
|
|
geniuses that Mister Philander been telling about--Lord, it
|
|
ain't no wonder we all get nervous prosecution."
|
|
|
|
Jane crossed the little room, laughing, and kissing the
|
|
faithful woman, bid Esmeralda good night.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 23
|
|
|
|
Brother Men.
|
|
|
|
When D'Arnot regained consciousness, he found himself
|
|
lying upon a bed of soft ferns and grasses beneath a
|
|
little "A" shaped shelter of boughs.
|
|
|
|
At his feet an opening looked out upon a green sward, and at a
|
|
little distance beyond was the dense wall of jungle and forest.
|
|
|
|
He was very lame and sore and weak, and as full consciousness
|
|
returned he felt the sharp torture of many cruel
|
|
wounds and the dull aching of every bone and muscle in his
|
|
body as a result of the hideous beating he had received.
|
|
|
|
Even the turning of his head caused him such excruciating
|
|
agony that he lay still with closed eyes for a long time.
|
|
|
|
He tried to piece out the details of his adventure prior to
|
|
the time he lost consciousness to see if they would explain his
|
|
present whereabouts--he wondered if he were among friends
|
|
or foes.
|
|
|
|
At length he recollected the whole hideous scene at the
|
|
stake, and finally recalled the strange white figure in whose
|
|
arms he had sunk into oblivion.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot wondered what fate lay in store for him now. He
|
|
could neither see nor hear any signs of life about him.
|
|
|
|
The incessant hum of the jungle--the rustling of millions
|
|
of leaves--the buzz of insects--the voices of the birds and
|
|
monkeys seemed blended into a strangely soothing purr, as
|
|
though he lay apart, far from the myriad life whose sounds
|
|
came to him only as a blurred echo.
|
|
|
|
At length he fell into a quiet slumber, nor did he awake
|
|
again until afternoon.
|
|
|
|
Once more he experienced the strange sense of utter
|
|
bewilderment that had marked his earlier awakening, but soon he
|
|
recalled the recent past, and looking through the opening at
|
|
his feet he saw the figure of a man squatting on his haunches.
|
|
|
|
The broad, muscular back was turned toward him, but,
|
|
tanned though it was, D'Arnot saw that it was the back of a
|
|
white man, and he thanked God.
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman called faintly. The man turned, and rising,
|
|
came toward the shelter. His face was very handsome--the
|
|
handsomest, thought D'Arnot, that he had ever seen.
|
|
|
|
Stooping, he crawled into the shelter beside the wounded
|
|
officer, and placed a cool hand upon his forehead.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot spoke to him in French, but the man only shook
|
|
his head--sadly, it seemed to the Frenchman.
|
|
|
|
Then D'Arnot tried English, but still the man shook his head.
|
|
Italian, Spanish and German brought similar discouragement.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot knew a few words of Norwegian, Russian, Greek,
|
|
and also had a smattering of the language of one of the
|
|
West Coast negro tribes--the man denied them all.
|
|
|
|
After examining D'Arnot's wounds the man left the shelter
|
|
and disappeared. In half an hour he was back with fruit and
|
|
a hollow gourd-like vegetable filled with water.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot drank and ate a little. He was surprised that he
|
|
had no fever. Again he tried to converse with his strange
|
|
nurse, but the attempt was useless.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly the man hastened from the shelter only to return
|
|
a few minutes later with several pieces of bark and--wonder
|
|
of wonders--a lead pencil.
|
|
|
|
Squatting beside D'Arnot he wrote for a minute on the
|
|
smooth inner surface of the bark; then he handed it to the
|
|
Frenchman.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot was astonished to see, in plain print-like characters,
|
|
a message in English:
|
|
|
|
I am Tarzan of the Apes. Who are you? Can you read this
|
|
language?
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot seized the pencil--then he stopped. This strange
|
|
man wrote English--evidently he was an Englishman.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said D'Arnot, "I read English. I speak it also. Now
|
|
we may talk. First let me thank you for all that you have
|
|
done for me."
|
|
|
|
The man only shook his head and pointed to the pencil
|
|
and the bark.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU!" cried D'Arnot. "If you are English why is it
|
|
then that you cannot speak English?"
|
|
|
|
And then in a flash it came to him--the man was a mute,
|
|
possibly a deaf mute.
|
|
|
|
So D'Arnot wrote a message on the bark, in English.
|
|
|
|
I am Paul d'Arnot, Lieutenant in the navy of France. I
|
|
thank you for what you have done for me. You have saved
|
|
my life, and all that I have is yours. May I ask how it
|
|
is that one who writes English does not speak it?
|
|
|
|
Tarzan's reply filled D'Arnot with still greater wonder:
|
|
|
|
I speak only the language of my tribe--the great apes who
|
|
were Kerchak's; and a little of the languages of Tantor, the
|
|
elephant, and Numa, the lion, and of the other folks of the
|
|
jungle I understand. With a human being I have never spoken,
|
|
except once with Jane Porter, by signs. This is the first time
|
|
I have spoken with another of my kind through written words.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot was mystified. It seemed incredible that there
|
|
lived upon earth a full-grown man who had never spoken
|
|
with a fellow man, and still more preposterous that such a
|
|
one could read and write.
|
|
|
|
He looked again at Tarzan's message--"except once, with
|
|
Jane Porter." That was the American girl who had been
|
|
carried into the jungle by a gorilla.
|
|
|
|
A sudden light commenced to dawn on D'Arnot--this then
|
|
was the "gorilla." He seized the pencil and wrote:
|
|
|
|
Where is Jane Porter?
|
|
|
|
And Tarzan replied, below:
|
|
|
|
Back with her people in the cabin of Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
She is not dead then? Where was she? What happened to her?
|
|
|
|
She is not dead. She was taken by Terkoz to be his wife;
|
|
but Tarzan of the Apes took her away from Terkoz and
|
|
killed him before he could harm her.
|
|
|
|
None in all the jungle may face Tarzan of the Apes in battle,
|
|
and live. I am Tarzan of the Apes--mighty fighter.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot wrote:
|
|
|
|
I am glad she is safe. It pains me to write, I will rest a
|
|
while.
|
|
|
|
And then Tarzan:
|
|
|
|
Yes, rest. When you are well I shall take you back to your people.
|
|
|
|
For many days D'Arnot lay upon his bed of soft ferns.
|
|
The second day a fever had come and D'Arnot thought that
|
|
it meant infection and he knew that he would die.
|
|
|
|
An idea came to him. He wondered why he had not
|
|
thought of it before.
|
|
|
|
He called Tarzan and indicated by signs that he would
|
|
write, and when Tarzan had fetched the bark and pencil,
|
|
D'Arnot wrote:
|
|
|
|
Can you go to my people and lead them here? I will write
|
|
a message that you may take to them, and they will follow you.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan shook his head and taking the bark, wrote:
|
|
|
|
I had thought of that--the first day; but I dared not. The
|
|
great apes come often to this spot, and if they found you
|
|
here, wounded and alone, they would kill you.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot turned on his side and closed his eyes. He did not
|
|
wish to die; but he felt that he was going, for the fever was
|
|
mounting higher and higher. That night he lost consciousness.
|
|
|
|
For three days he was in delirium, and Tarzan sat beside
|
|
him and bathed his head and hands and washed his wounds.
|
|
|
|
On the fourth day the fever broke as suddenly as it had
|
|
come, but it left D'Arnot a shadow of his former self, and
|
|
very weak. Tarzan had to lift him that he might drink from
|
|
the gourd.
|
|
|
|
The fever had not been the result of infection, as D'Arnot
|
|
had thought, but one of those that commonly attack whites in
|
|
the jungles of Africa, and either kill or leave them as
|
|
suddenly as D'Arnot's had left him.
|
|
|
|
Two days later, D'Arnot was tottering about the amphitheater,
|
|
Tarzan's strong arm about him to keep him from falling.
|
|
|
|
They sat beneath the shade of a great tree, and Tarzan
|
|
found some smooth bark that they might converse.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot wrote the first message:
|
|
|
|
What can I do to repay you for all that you have done for me?
|
|
|
|
And Tarzan, in reply:
|
|
|
|
Teach me to speak the language of men.
|
|
|
|
And so D'Arnot commenced at once, pointing out familiar
|
|
objects and repeating their names in French, for he thought
|
|
that it would be easier to teach this man his own language,
|
|
since he understood it himself best of all.
|
|
|
|
It meant nothing to Tarzan, of course, for he could not tell
|
|
one language from another, so when he pointed to the word
|
|
man which he had printed upon a piece of bark he learned
|
|
from D'Arnot that it was pronounced HOMME, and in the
|
|
same way he was taught to pronounce ape, SINGE and tree,
|
|
ARBRE.
|
|
|
|
He was a most eager student, and in two more days had
|
|
mastered so much French that he could speak little sentences
|
|
such as: "That is a tree," "this is grass," "I am hungry," and
|
|
the like, but D'Arnot found that it was difficult to teach him
|
|
the French construction upon a foundation of English.
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman wrote little lessons for him in English and
|
|
had Tarzan repeat them in French, but as a literal translation
|
|
was usually very poor French Tarzan was often confused.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot realized now that he had made a mistake, but it
|
|
seemed too late to go back and do it all over again and force
|
|
Tarzan to unlearn all that he had learned, especially as they
|
|
were rapidly approaching a point where they would be able
|
|
to converse.
|
|
|
|
On the third day after the fever broke Tarzan wrote a message
|
|
asking D'Arnot if he felt strong enough to be carried
|
|
back to the cabin. Tarzan was as anxious to go as D'Arnot,
|
|
for he longed to see Jane again.
|
|
|
|
It had been hard for him to remain with the Frenchman
|
|
all these days for that very reason, and that he had
|
|
unselfishly done so spoke more glowingly of his nobility
|
|
of character than even did his rescuing the French officer
|
|
from Mbonga's clutches.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot, only too willing to attempt the journey, wrote:
|
|
|
|
But you cannot carry me all the distance through this tangled forest.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan laughed.
|
|
|
|
"MAIS OUI," he said, and D'Arnot laughed aloud to hear
|
|
the phrase that he used so often glide from Tarzan's tongue.
|
|
|
|
So they set out, D'Arnot marveling as had Clayton and
|
|
Jane at the wondrous strength and agility of the apeman.
|
|
|
|
Mid-afternoon brought them to the clearing, and as Tarzan
|
|
dropped to earth from the branches of the last tree his heart
|
|
leaped and bounded against his ribs in anticipation of seeing
|
|
Jane so soon again.
|
|
|
|
No one was in sight outside the cabin, and D'Arnot was
|
|
perplexed to note that neither the cruiser nor the Arrow was
|
|
at anchor in the bay.
|
|
|
|
An atmosphere of loneliness pervaded the spot, which
|
|
caught suddenly at both men as they strode toward the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Neither spoke, yet both knew before they opened the
|
|
closed door what they would find beyond.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan lifted the latch and pushed the great door in upon
|
|
its wooden hinges. It was as they had feared. The cabin was
|
|
deserted.
|
|
|
|
The men turned and looked at one another. D'Arnot knew
|
|
that his people thought him dead; but Tarzan thought only of
|
|
the woman who had kissed him in love and now had fled
|
|
from him while he was serving one of her people.
|
|
|
|
A great bitterness rose in his heart. He would go away, far
|
|
into the jungle and join his tribe. Never would he see one of
|
|
his own kind again, nor could he bear the thought of returning
|
|
to the cabin. He would leave that forever behind him
|
|
with the great hopes he had nursed there of finding his own
|
|
race and becoming a man among men.
|
|
|
|
And the Frenchman? D'Arnot? What of him? He could get
|
|
along as Tarzan had. Tarzan did not want to see him more.
|
|
He wanted to get away from everything that might remind
|
|
him of Jane.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan stood upon the threshold brooding, D'Arnot
|
|
had entered the cabin. Many comforts he saw that had been
|
|
left behind. He recognized numerous articles from the cruiser
|
|
--a camp oven, some kitchen utensils, a rifle and many
|
|
rounds of ammunition, canned foods, blankets, two chairs
|
|
and a cot--and several books and periodicals, mostly American.
|
|
|
|
"They must intend returning," thought D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
He walked over to the table that John Clayton had built so
|
|
many years before to serve as a desk, and on it he saw two
|
|
notes addressed to Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
One was in a strong masculine hand and was unsealed. The
|
|
other, in a woman's hand, was sealed.
|
|
|
|
"Here are two messages for you, Tarzan of the Apes,"
|
|
cried D'Arnot, turning toward the door; but his companion
|
|
was not there.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot walked to the door and looked out. Tarzan was
|
|
nowhere in sight. He called aloud but there was no response.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU!" exclaimed D'Arnot, "he has left me. I feel it.
|
|
He has gone back into his jungle and left me here alone."
|
|
|
|
And then he remembered the look on Tarzan's face when
|
|
they had discovered that the cabin was empty--such a look
|
|
as the hunter sees in the eyes of the wounded deer he has
|
|
wantonly brought down.
|
|
|
|
The man had been hard hit--D'Arnot realized it now--
|
|
but why? He could not understand.
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman looked about him. The loneliness and the
|
|
horror of the place commenced to get on his nerves--already
|
|
weakened by the ordeal of suffering and sickness he had
|
|
passed through.
|
|
|
|
To be left here alone beside this awful jungle--never to
|
|
hear a human voice or see a human face--in constant dread
|
|
of savage beasts and more terribly savage men--a prey to
|
|
solitude and hopelessness. It was awful.
|
|
|
|
And far to the east Tarzan of the Apes was speeding
|
|
through the middle terrace back to his tribe. Never had he
|
|
traveled with such reckless speed. He felt that he was running
|
|
away from himself--that by hurtling through the forest like
|
|
a frightened squirrel he was escaping from his own thoughts.
|
|
But no matter how fast he went he found them always with him.
|
|
|
|
He passed above the sinuous body of Sabor, the lioness, going
|
|
in the opposite direction--toward the cabin, thought Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
What could D'Arnot do against Sabor--or if Bolgani, the gorilla,
|
|
should come upon him--or Numa, the lion, or cruel Sheeta?
|
|
|
|
Tarzan paused in his flight.
|
|
|
|
"What are you, Tarzan?" he asked aloud. "An ape or a man?"
|
|
|
|
"If you are an ape you will do as the apes would do--
|
|
leave one of your kind to die in the jungle if it suited
|
|
your whim to go elsewhere.
|
|
|
|
"If you are a man, you will return to protect your kind.
|
|
You will not run away from one of your own people, because
|
|
one of them has run away from you."
|
|
|
|
??
|
|
D'Arnot closed the cabin door. He was very nervous. Even
|
|
brave men, and D'Arnot was a brave man, are sometimes
|
|
frightened by solitude.
|
|
|
|
He loaded one of the rifles and placed it within easy reach.
|
|
Then he went to the desk and took up the unsealed letter
|
|
addressed to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Possibly it contained word that his people had but left the
|
|
beach temporarily. He felt that it would be no breach of ethics
|
|
to read this letter, so he took the enclosure from the envelope
|
|
and read:
|
|
|
|
TO TARZAN OF THE APES:
|
|
|
|
We thank you for the use of your cabin, and are sorry that
|
|
you did not permit us the pleasure of seeing and thanking
|
|
you in person.
|
|
|
|
We have harmed nothing, but have left many things for
|
|
you which may add to your comfort and safety here in your
|
|
lonely home.
|
|
|
|
If you know the strange white man who saved our lives so
|
|
many times, and brought us food, and if you can converse
|
|
with him, thank him, also, for his kindness.
|
|
|
|
We sail within the hour, never to return; but we wish you
|
|
and that other jungle friend to know that we shall always
|
|
thank you for what you did for strangers on your shore, and
|
|
that we should have done infinitely more to reward you both
|
|
had you given us the opportunity.
|
|
Very respectfully,
|
|
WM. CECIL CLAYTON.
|
|
|
|
"`Never to return,'" muttered D'Arnot, and threw himself
|
|
face downward upon the cot.
|
|
|
|
An hour later he started up listening. Something was at the
|
|
door trying to enter.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot reached for the loaded rifle and placed it to his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
Dusk was falling, and the interior of the cabin was very
|
|
dark; but the man could see the latch moving from its place.
|
|
|
|
He felt his hair rising upon his scalp.
|
|
|
|
Gently the door opened until a thin crack showed something
|
|
standing just beyond.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot sighted along the blue barrel at the crack of the
|
|
door--and then he pulled the trigger.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 24
|
|
|
|
Lost Treasure
|
|
|
|
When the expedition returned, following their fruitless
|
|
endeavor to succor D'Arnot, Captain Dufranne was
|
|
anxious to steam away as quickly as possible, and all save
|
|
Jane had acquiesced.
|
|
|
|
"No," she said, determinedly, "I shall not go, nor should
|
|
you, for there are two friends in that jungle who will come
|
|
out of it some day expecting to find us awaiting them.
|
|
|
|
"Your officer, Captain Dufranne, is one of them, and the
|
|
forest man who has saved the lives of every member of my
|
|
father's party is the other.
|
|
|
|
"He left me at the edge of the jungle two days ago to hasten
|
|
to the aid of my father and Mr. Clayton, as he thought,
|
|
and he has stayed to rescue Lieutenant D'Arnot; of that you
|
|
may be sure.
|
|
|
|
"Had he been too late to be of service to the lieutenant he
|
|
would have been back before now--the fact that he is not
|
|
back is sufficient proof to me that he is delayed because
|
|
Lieutenant D'Arnot is wounded, or he has had to follow his
|
|
captors further than the village which your sailors attacked."
|
|
|
|
"But poor D'Arnot's uniform and all his belongings were
|
|
found in that village, Miss Porter," argued the captain, "and
|
|
the natives showed great excitement when questioned as to
|
|
the white man's fate."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Captain, but they did not admit that he was dead
|
|
and as for his clothes and accouterments being in their
|
|
possession--why more civilized peoples than these poor savage
|
|
negroes strip their prisoners of every article of value whether
|
|
they intend killing them or not.
|
|
|
|
"Even the soldiers of my own dear South looted not only the
|
|
living but the dead. It is strong circumstantial evidence,
|
|
I will admit, but it is not positive proof."
|
|
|
|
"Possibly your forest man, himself was captured or killed
|
|
by the savages," suggested Captain Dufranne.
|
|
|
|
The girl laughed.
|
|
|
|
"You do not know him," she replied, a little thrill of pride
|
|
setting her nerves a-tingle at the thought that she spoke
|
|
of her own.
|
|
|
|
"I admit that he would be worth waiting for, this superman
|
|
of yours," laughed the captain. "I most certainly should
|
|
like to see him."
|
|
|
|
"Then wait for him, my dear captain," urged the girl, "for
|
|
I intend doing so."
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman would have been a very much surprised man
|
|
could he have interpreted the true meaning of the girl's words.
|
|
|
|
They had been walking from the beach toward the cabin
|
|
as they talked, and now they joined a little group sitting on
|
|
camp stools in the shade of a great tree beside the cabin.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter was there, and Mr. Philander and Clayton,
|
|
with Lieutenant Charpentier and two of his brother
|
|
officers, while Esmeralda hovered in the background, ever
|
|
and anon venturing opinions and comments with the freedom
|
|
of an old and much-indulged family servant.
|
|
|
|
The officers arose and saluted as their superior approached,
|
|
and Clayton surrendered his camp stool to Jane.
|
|
|
|
"We were just discussing poor Paul's fate," said Captain
|
|
Dufranne. "Miss Porter insists that we have no absolute
|
|
proof of his death--nor have we. And on the other hand she
|
|
maintains that the continued absence of your omnipotent jungle
|
|
friend indicates that D'Arnot is still in need of his services,
|
|
either because he is wounded, or still is a prisoner in a
|
|
more distant native village."
|
|
|
|
"It has been suggested," ventured Lieutenant Charpentier,
|
|
"that the wild man may have been a member of the tribe of
|
|
blacks who attacked our party--that he was hastening to aid
|
|
THEM--his own people."
|
|
|
|
Jane shot a quick glance at Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"It seems vastly more reasonable," said Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"I do not agree with you," objected Mr. Philander. "He had
|
|
ample opportunity to harm us himself, or to lead his people
|
|
against us. Instead, during our long residence here, he has
|
|
been uniformly consistent in his role of protector and provider."
|
|
|
|
"That is true," interjected Clayton, "yet we must not overlook
|
|
the fact that except for himself the only human beings
|
|
within hundreds of miles are savage cannibals. He was armed
|
|
precisely as are they, which indicates that he has maintained
|
|
relations of some nature with them, and the fact that he is
|
|
but one against possibly thousands suggests that these relations
|
|
could scarcely have been other than friendly."
|
|
|
|
"It seems improbable then that he is not connected with
|
|
them," remarked the captain; "possibly a member of this tribe."
|
|
|
|
"Otherwise," added another of the officers, "how could he
|
|
have lived a sufficient length of time among the savage
|
|
denizens of the jungle, brute and human, to have become
|
|
proficient in woodcraft, or in the use of African weapons."
|
|
|
|
"You are judging him according to your own standards,
|
|
gentlemen," said Jane. "An ordinary white man such as any
|
|
of you--pardon me, I did not mean just that--rather, a white
|
|
man above the ordinary in physique and intelligence could
|
|
never, I grant you, have lived a year alone and naked in this
|
|
tropical jungle; but this man not only surpasses the average
|
|
white man in strength and agility, but as far transcends our
|
|
trained athletes and `strong men' as they surpass a day-old
|
|
babe; and his courage and ferocity in battle are those of the
|
|
wild beast."
|
|
|
|
"He has certainly won a loyal champion, Miss Porter,"
|
|
said Captain Dufranne, laughing. "I am sure that there be
|
|
none of us here but would willingly face death a hundred
|
|
times in its most terrifying forms to deserve the tributes
|
|
of one even half so loyal--or so beautiful."
|
|
|
|
"You would not wonder that I defend him," said the girl,
|
|
"could you have seen him as I saw him, battling in my behalf
|
|
with that huge hairy brute.
|
|
|
|
"Could you have seen him charge the monster as a bull
|
|
might charge a grizzly--absolutely without sign of fear or
|
|
hesitation--you would have believed him more than human.
|
|
|
|
"Could you have seen those mighty muscles knotting under
|
|
the brown skin--could you have seen them force back those
|
|
awful fangs--you too would have thought him invincible.
|
|
|
|
"And could you have seen the chivalrous treatment which
|
|
he accorded a strange girl of a strange race, you would
|
|
feel the same absolute confidence in him that I feel."
|
|
|
|
"You have won your suit, my fair pleader," cried the captain.
|
|
"This court finds the defendant not guilty, and the
|
|
cruiser shall wait a few days longer that he may have an
|
|
opportunity to come and thank the divine Portia."
|
|
|
|
"For the Lord's sake honey," cried Esmeralda. "You all don't
|
|
mean to tell ME that you're going to stay right here in this
|
|
here land of carnivable animals when you all got the opportunity
|
|
to escapade on that boat? Don't you tell me THAT, honey."
|
|
|
|
"Why, Esmeralda! You should be ashamed of yourself,"
|
|
cried Jane. "Is this any way to show your gratitude to the
|
|
man who saved your life twice?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, Miss Jane, that's all jest as you say; but that there
|
|
forest man never did save us to stay here. He done save us so
|
|
we all could get AWAY from here. I expect he be mighty
|
|
peevish when he find we ain't got no more sense than to stay
|
|
right here after he done give us the chance to get away.
|
|
|
|
"I hoped I'd never have to sleep in this here geological garden
|
|
another night and listen to all them lonesome noises that
|
|
come out of that jumble after dark."
|
|
|
|
"I don't blame you a bit, Esmeralda," said Clayton, "and you
|
|
certainly did hit it off right when you called them `lonesome'
|
|
noises. I never have been able to find the right word for
|
|
them but that's it, don't you know, lonesome noises."
|
|
|
|
"You and Esmeralda had better go and live on the cruiser,"
|
|
said Jane, in fine scorn. "What would you think if you
|
|
HAD to live all of your life in that jungle as our forest
|
|
man has done?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm afraid I'd be a blooming bounder as a wild man,"
|
|
laughed Clayton, ruefully. "Those noises at night make the
|
|
hair on my head bristle. I suppose that I should be ashamed
|
|
to admit it, but it's the truth."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know about that," said Lieutenant Charpentier. "I
|
|
never thought much about fear and that sort of thing--never
|
|
tried to determine whether I was a coward or brave man; but
|
|
the other night as we lay in the jungle there after poor
|
|
D'Arnot was taken, and those jungle noises rose and fell
|
|
around us I began to think that I was a coward indeed. It
|
|
was not the roaring and growling of the big beasts that
|
|
affected me so much as it was the stealthy noises--the ones
|
|
that you heard suddenly close by and then listened vainly for
|
|
a repetition of--the unaccountable sounds as of a great body
|
|
moving almost noiselessly, and the knowledge that you didn't
|
|
KNOW how close it was, or whether it were creeping closer
|
|
after you ceased to hear it? It was those noises--and the eyes.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU! I shall see them in the dark forever--the eyes
|
|
that you see, and those that you don't see, but feel--ah, they
|
|
are the worst."
|
|
|
|
All were silent for a moment, and then Jane spoke.
|
|
|
|
"And he is out there," she said, in an awe-hushed whisper.
|
|
"Those eyes will be glaring at him to-night, and at your
|
|
comrade Lieutenant D'Arnot. Can you leave them, gentlemen,
|
|
without at least rendering them the passive succor which
|
|
remaining here a few days longer might insure them?"
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, child," said Professor Porter. "Captain Dufranne
|
|
is willing to remain, and for my part I am perfectly willing,
|
|
perfectly willing--as I always have been to humor your
|
|
childish whims."
|
|
|
|
"We can utilize the morrow in recovering the chest,
|
|
Professor," suggested Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
"Quite so, quite so, Mr. Philander, I had almost forgotten
|
|
the treasure," exclaimed Professor Porter. "Possibly we can
|
|
borrow some men from Captain Dufranne to assist us, and
|
|
one of the prisoners to point out the location of the chest."
|
|
|
|
"Most assuredly, my dear Professor, we are all yours to
|
|
command," said the captain.
|
|
|
|
And so it was arranged that on the next day Lieutenant
|
|
Charpentier was to take a detail of ten men, and one of the
|
|
mutineers of the Arrow as a guide, and unearth the treasure;
|
|
and that the cruiser would remain for a full week in the little
|
|
harbor. At the end of that time it was to be assumed that
|
|
D'Arnot was truly dead, and that the forest man would not
|
|
return while they remained. Then the two vessels were to
|
|
leave with all the party.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter did not accompany the treasure-seekers
|
|
on the following day, but when he saw them returning
|
|
empty-handed toward noon, he hastened forward to meet them
|
|
--his usual preoccupied indifference entirely vanished, and in
|
|
its place a nervous and excited manner.
|
|
|
|
"Where is the treasure?" he cried to Clayton, while yet a
|
|
hundred feet separated them.
|
|
|
|
Clayton shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"Gone," he said, as he neared the professor.
|
|
|
|
"Gone! It cannot be. Who could have taken it?" cried
|
|
Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"God only knows, Professor," replied Clayton. "We might
|
|
have thought the fellow who guided us was lying about the
|
|
location, but his surprise and consternation on finding no
|
|
chest beneath the body of the murdered Snipes were too real
|
|
to be feigned. And then our spades showed us that SOMETHING
|
|
had been buried beneath the corpse, for a hole had been
|
|
there and it had been filled with loose earth."
|
|
|
|
"But who could have taken it?" repeated Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"Suspicion might naturally fall on the men of the cruiser,"
|
|
said Lieutenant Charpentier, "but for the fact that sub-lieutenant
|
|
Janviers here assures me that no men have had shore
|
|
leave--that none has been on shore since we anchored here
|
|
except under command of an officer. I do not know that you
|
|
would suspect our men, but I am glad that there is now no
|
|
chance for suspicion to fall on them," he concluded.
|
|
|
|
"It would never have occurred to me to suspect the men to
|
|
whom we owe so much," replied Professor Porter, graciously.
|
|
"I would as soon suspect my dear Clayton here, or
|
|
Mr. Philander."
|
|
|
|
The Frenchmen smiled, both officers and sailors. It was
|
|
plain to see that a burden had been lifted from their minds.
|
|
|
|
"The treasure has been gone for some time," continued Clayton.
|
|
"In fact the body fell apart as we lifted it, which indicates
|
|
that whoever removed the treasure did so while the corpse was
|
|
still fresh, for it was intact when we first uncovered it."
|
|
|
|
"There must have been several in the party," said Jane,
|
|
who had joined them. "You remember that it took four men
|
|
to carry it."
|
|
|
|
"By jove!" cried Clayton. "That's right. It must have been
|
|
done by a party of blacks. Probably one of them saw the men
|
|
bury the chest and then returned immediately after with a
|
|
party of his friends, and carried it off."
|
|
|
|
"Speculation is futile," said Professor Porter sadly. "The
|
|
chest is gone. We shall never see it again, nor the treasure
|
|
that was in it."
|
|
|
|
Only Jane knew what the loss meant to her father, and
|
|
none there knew what it meant to her.
|
|
|
|
Six days later Captain Dufranne announced that they
|
|
would sail early on the morrow.
|
|
|
|
Jane would have begged for a further reprieve, had it not
|
|
been that she too had begun to believe that her forest lover
|
|
would return no more.
|
|
|
|
In spite of herself she began to entertain doubts and fears.
|
|
The reasonableness of the arguments of these disinterested
|
|
French officers commenced to convince her against her will.
|
|
|
|
That he was a cannibal she would not believe, but that he
|
|
was an adopted member of some savage tribe at length
|
|
seemed possible to her.
|
|
|
|
She would not admit that he could be dead. It was impossible
|
|
to believe that that perfect body, so filled with triumphant
|
|
life, could ever cease to harbor the vital spark--as soon
|
|
believe that immortality were dust.
|
|
|
|
As Jane permitted herself to harbor these thoughts, others
|
|
equally unwelcome forced themselves upon her.
|
|
|
|
If he belonged to some savage tribe he had a savage wife
|
|
--a dozen of them perhaps--and wild, half-caste children.
|
|
The girl shuddered, and when they told her that the cruiser
|
|
would sail on the morrow she was almost glad.
|
|
|
|
It was she, though, who suggested that arms, ammunition,
|
|
supplies and comforts be left behind in the cabin, ostensibly
|
|
for that intangible personality who had signed himself Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes, and for D'Arnot should he still be living, but
|
|
really, she hoped, for her forest god--even though his feet
|
|
should prove of clay.
|
|
|
|
And at the last minute she left a message for him, to be
|
|
transmitted by Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
She was the last to leave the cabin, returning on some trivial
|
|
pretext after the others had started for the boat.
|
|
|
|
She kneeled down beside the bed in which she had spent so
|
|
many nights, and offered up a prayer for the safety of her
|
|
primeval man, and crushing his locket to her lips she murmured:
|
|
|
|
"I love you, and because I love you I believe in you. But if
|
|
I did not believe, still should I love. Had you come back for
|
|
me, and had there been no other way, I would have gone into
|
|
the jungle with you--forever."
|
|
|
|
Chapter 25
|
|
|
|
The Outpost of the World
|
|
|
|
With the report of his gun D'Arnot saw the door fly open
|
|
and the figure of a man pitch headlong within onto the
|
|
cabin floor.
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman in his panic raised his gun to fire again
|
|
into the prostrate form, but suddenly in the half dusk of the
|
|
open door he saw that the man was white and in another instant
|
|
realized that he had shot his friend and protector, Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
With a cry of anguish D'Arnot sprang to the ape-man's side,
|
|
and kneeling, lifted the latter's head in his arms--calling
|
|
Tarzan's name aloud.
|
|
|
|
There was no response, and then D'Arnot placed his ear above
|
|
the man's heart. To his joy he heard its steady beating beneath.
|
|
|
|
Carefully he lifted Tarzan to the cot, and then, after closing
|
|
and bolting the door, he lighted one of the lamps and examined
|
|
the wound.
|
|
|
|
The bullet had struck a glancing blow upon the skull.
|
|
There was an ugly flesh wound, but no signs of a fracture of
|
|
the skull.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot breathed a sigh of relief, and went about bathing
|
|
the blood from Tarzan's face.
|
|
|
|
Soon the cool water revived him, and presently he opened
|
|
his eyes to look in questioning surprise at D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
The latter had bound the wound with pieces of cloth, and
|
|
as he saw that Tarzan had regained consciousness he arose
|
|
and going to the table wrote a message, which he handed to
|
|
the ape-man, explaining the terrible mistake he had made and
|
|
how thankful he was that the wound was not more serious.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan, after reading the message, sat on the edge of the
|
|
couch and laughed.
|
|
|
|
"It is nothing," he said in French, and then, his vocabulary
|
|
failing him, he wrote:
|
|
|
|
You should have seen what Bolgani did to me, and Kerchak,
|
|
and Terkoz, before I killed them--then you would
|
|
laugh at such a little scratch.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot handed Tarzan the two messages that had been
|
|
left for him.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan read the first one through with a look of sorrow on
|
|
his face. The second one he turned over and over, searching
|
|
for an opening--he had never seen a sealed envelope before.
|
|
At length he handed it to D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman had been watching him, and knew that Tarzan
|
|
was puzzled over the envelope. How strange it seemed that
|
|
to a full-grown white man an envelope was a mystery.
|
|
D'Arnot opened it and handed the letter back to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Sitting on a camp stool the ape-man spread the written
|
|
sheet before him and read:
|
|
|
|
TO TARZAN OF THE APES:
|
|
|
|
Before I leave let me add my thanks to those of Mr. Clayton
|
|
for the kindness you have shown in permitting us the use
|
|
of your cabin.
|
|
|
|
That you never came to make friends with us has been a
|
|
great regret to us. We should have liked so much to have
|
|
seen and thanked our host.
|
|
|
|
There is another I should like to thank also, but he did not
|
|
come back, though I cannot believe that he is dead.
|
|
|
|
I do not know his name. He is the great white giant who
|
|
wore the diamond locket upon his breast.
|
|
|
|
If you know him and can speak his language carry my
|
|
thanks to him, and tell him that I waited seven days for him
|
|
to return.
|
|
|
|
Tell him, also, that in my home in America, in the city of
|
|
Baltimore, there will always be a welcome for him if he cares
|
|
to come.
|
|
|
|
I found a note you wrote me lying among the leaves beneath
|
|
a tree near the cabin. I do not know how you learned to
|
|
love me, who have never spoken to me, and I am very sorry
|
|
if it is true, for I have already given my heart to another.
|
|
|
|
But know that I am always your friend,
|
|
JANE PORTER.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan sat with gaze fixed upon the floor for nearly an
|
|
hour. It was evident to him from the notes that they did not
|
|
know that he and Tarzan of the Apes were one and the same.
|
|
|
|
"I have given my heart to another," he repeated over and
|
|
over again to himself.
|
|
|
|
Then she did not love him! How could she have pretended
|
|
love, and raised him to such a pinnacle of hope only to cast
|
|
him down to such utter depths of despair!
|
|
|
|
Maybe her kisses were only signs of friendship. How did
|
|
he know, who knew nothing of the customs of human beings?
|
|
|
|
Suddenly he arose, and, bidding D'Arnot good night as he
|
|
had learned to do, threw himself upon the couch of ferns that
|
|
had been Jane Porter's.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot extinguished the lamp, and lay down upon the cot.
|
|
|
|
For a week they did little but rest, D'Arnot coaching Tarzan
|
|
in French. At the end of that time the two men could
|
|
converse quite easily.
|
|
|
|
One night, as they were sitting within the cabin before
|
|
retiring, Tarzan turned to D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Where is America?" he said.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot pointed toward the northwest.
|
|
|
|
"Many thousands of miles across the ocean," he replied. "Why?"
|
|
|
|
"I am going there."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"It is impossible, my friend," he said.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan rose, and, going to one of the cupboards, returned
|
|
with a well-thumbed geography.
|
|
|
|
Turning to a map of the world, he said:
|
|
|
|
"I have never quite understood all this; explain it to me, please."
|
|
|
|
When D'Arnot had done so, showing him that the blue
|
|
represented all the water on the earth, and the bits of other
|
|
colors the continents and islands, Tarzan asked him to point
|
|
out the spot where they now were.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot did so.
|
|
|
|
"Now point out America," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
And as D'Arnot placed his finger upon North America,
|
|
Tarzan smiled and laid his palm upon the page, spanning the
|
|
great ocean that lay between the two continents.
|
|
|
|
"You see it is not so very far," he said; "scarce the width
|
|
of my hand."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot laughed. How could he make the man understand?
|
|
|
|
Then he took a pencil and made a tiny point upon the
|
|
shore of Africa.
|
|
|
|
"This little mark," he said, "is many times larger upon this
|
|
map than your cabin is upon the earth. Do you see now how
|
|
very far it is?"
|
|
|
|
Tarzan thought for a long time.
|
|
|
|
"Do any white men live in Africa?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Where are the nearest?"
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot pointed out a spot on the shore just north of them.
|
|
|
|
"So close?" asked Tarzan, in surprise.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said D'Arnot; "but it is not close."
|
|
|
|
"Have they big boats to cross the ocean?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"We shall go there to-morrow," announced Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Again D'Arnot smiled and shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"It is too far. We should die long before we reached them."
|
|
|
|
"Do you wish to stay here then forever?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"No," said D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Then we shall start to-morrow. I do not like it here
|
|
longer. I should rather die than remain here."
|
|
|
|
"Well," answered D'Arnot, with a shrug, "I do not know,
|
|
my friend, but that I also would rather die than remain here.
|
|
If you go, I shall go with you."
|
|
|
|
"It is settled then," said Tarzan. "I shall start for America
|
|
to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"How will you get to America without money?" asked D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"What is money?" inquired Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
It took a long time to make him understand even imperfectly.
|
|
|
|
"How do men get money?" he asked at last.
|
|
|
|
"They work for it."
|
|
|
|
"Very well. I will work for it, then."
|
|
|
|
"No, my friend," returned D'Arnot, "you need not worry
|
|
about money, nor need you work for it. I have enough
|
|
money for two--enough for twenty. Much more than is good
|
|
for one man and you shall have all you need if ever we
|
|
reach civilization."
|
|
|
|
So on the following day they started north along the shore.
|
|
Each man carrying a rifle and ammunition, beside bedding
|
|
and some food and cooking utensils.
|
|
|
|
The latter seemed to Tarzan a most useless encumbrance,
|
|
so he threw his away.
|
|
|
|
"But you must learn to eat cooked food, my friend,"
|
|
remonstrated D'Arnot. "No civilized men eat raw flesh."
|
|
|
|
"There will be time enough when I reach civilization," said
|
|
Tarzan. "I do not like the things and they only spoil the taste
|
|
of good meat."
|
|
|
|
For a month they traveled north. Sometimes finding food
|
|
in plenty and again going hungry for days.
|
|
|
|
They saw no signs of natives nor were they molested by
|
|
wild beasts. Their journey was a miracle of ease.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan asked questions and learned rapidly. D'Arnot
|
|
taught him many of the refinements of civilization--even to
|
|
the use of knife and fork; but sometimes Tarzan would drop
|
|
them in disgust and grasp his food in his strong brown hands,
|
|
tearing it with his molars like a wild beast.
|
|
|
|
Then D'Arnot would expostulate with him, saying:
|
|
|
|
"You must not eat like a brute, Tarzan, while I am trying
|
|
to make a gentleman of you. MON DIEU! Gentlemen do not
|
|
thus--it is terrible."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan would grin sheepishly and pick up his knife and
|
|
fork again, but at heart he hated them.
|
|
|
|
On the journey he told D'Arnot about the great chest he had
|
|
seen the sailors bury; of how he had dug it up and carried
|
|
it to the gathering place of the apes and buried it there.
|
|
|
|
"It must be the treasure chest of Professor Porter," said
|
|
D'Arnot. "It is too bad, but of course you did not know."
|
|
|
|
Then Tarzan recalled the letter written by Jane to her
|
|
friend--the one he had stolen when they first came to his
|
|
cabin, and now he knew what was in the chest and what it
|
|
meant to Jane.
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow we shall go back after it," he announced to D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Go back?" exclaimed D'Arnot. "But, my dear fellow, we
|
|
have now been three weeks upon the march. It would require
|
|
three more to return to the treasure, and then, with that
|
|
enormous weight which required, you say, four sailors to carry,
|
|
it would be months before we had again reached this spot."
|
|
|
|
"It must be done, my friend," insisted Tarzan. "You may go
|
|
on toward civilization, and I will return for the treasure.
|
|
I can go very much faster alone."
|
|
|
|
"I have a better plan, Tarzan," exclaimed D'Arnot. "We
|
|
shall go on together to the nearest settlement, and there we
|
|
will charter a boat and sail back down the coast for the treasure
|
|
and so transport it easily. That will be safer and quicker
|
|
and also not require us to be separated. What do you think of
|
|
that plan?"
|
|
|
|
"Very well," said Tarzan. "The treasure will be there
|
|
whenever we go for it; and while I could fetch it now, and
|
|
catch up with you in a moon or two, I shall feel safer for you
|
|
to know that you are not alone on the trail. When I see how
|
|
helpless you are, D'Arnot, I often wonder how the human race
|
|
has escaped annihilation all these ages which you tell me about.
|
|
Why, Sabor, single handed, could exterminate a thousand of you."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot laughed.
|
|
|
|
"You will think more highly of your genus when you have
|
|
seen its armies and navies, its great cities, and its mighty
|
|
engineering works. Then you will realize that it is mind, and
|
|
not muscle, that makes the human animal greater than the
|
|
mighty beasts of your jungle.
|
|
|
|
"Alone and unarmed, a single man is no match for any of
|
|
the larger beasts; but if ten men were together, they would
|
|
combine their wits and their muscles against their savage
|
|
enemies, while the beasts, being unable to reason, would never
|
|
think of combining against the men. Otherwise, Tarzan of the
|
|
Apes, how long would you have lasted in the savage wilderness?"
|
|
|
|
"You are right, D'Arnot," replied Tarzan, "for if Kerchak
|
|
had come to Tublat's aid that night at the Dum-Dum, there
|
|
would have been an end of me. But Kerchak could never
|
|
think far enough ahead to take advantage of any such
|
|
opportunity. Even Kala, my mother, could never plan ahead.
|
|
She simply ate what she needed when she needed it, and if the
|
|
supply was very scarce, even though she found plenty for
|
|
several meals, she would never gather any ahead.
|
|
|
|
"I remember that she used to think it very silly of me to
|
|
burden myself with extra food upon the march, though she
|
|
was quite glad to eat it with me, if the way chanced to be
|
|
barren of sustenance."
|
|
|
|
"Then you knew your mother, Tarzan?" asked D'Arnot, in surprise.
|
|
|
|
"Yes. She was a great, fine ape, larger than I, and weighing
|
|
twice as much."
|
|
|
|
"And your father?" asked D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"I did not know him. Kala told me he was a white ape,
|
|
and hairless like myself. I know now that he must have
|
|
been a white man."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot looked long and earnestly at his companion.
|
|
|
|
"Tarzan," he said at length, "it is impossible that the ape,
|
|
Kala, was your mother. If such a thing can be, which I
|
|
doubt, you would have inherited some of the characteristics
|
|
of the ape, but you have not--you are pure man, and, I
|
|
should say, the offspring of highly bred and intelligent
|
|
parents. Have you not the slightest clue to your past?"
|
|
|
|
"Not the slightest," replied Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"No writings in the cabin that might have told something
|
|
of the lives of its original inmates?"
|
|
|
|
"I have read everything that was in the cabin with the
|
|
exception of one book which I know now to be written in a
|
|
language other than English. Possibly you can read it."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan fished the little black diary from the bottom of his
|
|
quiver, and handed it to his companion.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot glanced at the title page.
|
|
|
|
"It is the diary of John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, an
|
|
English nobleman, and it is written in French," he said.
|
|
|
|
Then he proceeded to read the diary that had been written
|
|
over twenty years before, and which recorded the details of
|
|
the story which we already know--the story of adventure,
|
|
hardships and sorrow of John Clayton and his wife Alice,
|
|
from the day they left England until an hour before he was
|
|
struck down by Kerchak.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot read aloud. At times his voice broke, and he was
|
|
forced to stop reading for the pitiful hopelessness that spoke
|
|
between the lines.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally he glanced at Tarzan; but the ape-man sat
|
|
upon his haunches, like a carven image, his eyes fixed upon
|
|
the ground.
|
|
|
|
Only when the little babe was mentioned did the tone of the
|
|
diary alter from the habitual note of despair which had crept
|
|
into it by degrees after the first two months upon the shore.
|
|
|
|
Then the passages were tinged with a subdued happiness
|
|
that was even sadder than the rest.
|
|
|
|
One entry showed an almost hopeful spirit.
|
|
|
|
To-day our little boy is six months old. He is sitting in
|
|
Alice's lap beside the table where I am writing--a happy,
|
|
healthy, perfect child.
|
|
|
|
Somehow, even against all reason, I seem to see him a
|
|
grown man, taking his father's place in the world--the
|
|
second John Clayton--and bringing added honors to the house
|
|
of Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
There--as though to give my prophecy the weight of his
|
|
endorsement--he has grabbed my pen in his chubby fists and
|
|
with his inkbegrimed little fingers has placed the seal of his
|
|
tiny finger prints upon the page.
|
|
|
|
??
|
|
And there, on the margin of the page, were the partially blurred
|
|
imprints of four wee fingers and the outer half of the thumb.
|
|
|
|
When D'Arnot had finished the diary the two men sat in
|
|
silence for some minutes.
|
|
|
|
"Well! Tarzan of the Apes, what think you?" asked D'Arnot.
|
|
"Does not this little book clear up the mystery of
|
|
your parentage?
|
|
|
|
"Why man, you are Lord Greystoke."
|
|
|
|
"The book speaks of but one child," he replied. "Its little
|
|
skeleton lay in the crib, where it died crying for nourishment,
|
|
from the first time I entered the cabin until Professor Porter's
|
|
party buried it, with its father and mother, beside the cabin.
|
|
|
|
"No, that was the babe the book speaks of--and the mystery
|
|
of my origin is deeper than before, for I have thought
|
|
much of late of the possibility of that cabin having been my
|
|
birthplace. I am afraid that Kala spoke the truth," he
|
|
concluded sadly.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot shook his head. He was unconvinced, and in his
|
|
mind had sprung the determination to prove the correctness
|
|
of his theory, for he had discovered the key which alone
|
|
could unlock the mystery, or consign it forever to the realms
|
|
of the unfathomable.
|
|
|
|
A week later the two men came suddenly upon a clearing
|
|
in the forest.
|
|
|
|
In the distance were several buildings surrounded by a
|
|
strong palisade. Between them and the enclosure stretched a
|
|
cultivated field in which a number of negroes were working.
|
|
|
|
The two halted at the edge of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan fitted his bow with a poisoned arrow, but D'Arnot
|
|
placed a hand upon his arm.
|
|
|
|
"What would you do, Tarzan?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"They will try to kill us if they see us," replied Tarzan.
|
|
"I prefer to be the killer."
|
|
|
|
"Maybe they are friends," suggested D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"They are black," was Tarzan's only reply.
|
|
|
|
And again he drew back his shaft.
|
|
|
|
"You must not, Tarzan!" cried D'Arnot. "White men do
|
|
not kill wantonly. MON DIEU! but you have much to learn.
|
|
|
|
"I pity the ruffian who crosses you, my wild man, when I
|
|
take you to Paris. I will have my hands full keeping your
|
|
neck from beneath the guillotine."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan lowered his bow and smiled.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know why I should kill the blacks back there in
|
|
my jungle, yet not kill them here. Suppose Numa, the lion,
|
|
should spring out upon us, I should say, then, I presume:
|
|
Good morning, Monsieur Numa, how is Madame Numa; eh?"
|
|
|
|
"Wait until the blacks spring upon you," replied D'Arnot,
|
|
"then you may kill them. Do not assume that men are your
|
|
enemies until they prove it."
|
|
|
|
"Come," said Tarzan, "let us go and present ourselves to
|
|
be killed," and he started straight across the field, his head
|
|
high held and the tropical sun beating upon his smooth,
|
|
brown skin.
|
|
|
|
Behind him came D'Arnot, clothed in some garments
|
|
which had been discarded at the cabin by Clayton when the
|
|
officers of the French cruiser had fitted him out in more
|
|
presentable fashion.
|
|
|
|
Presently one of the blacks looked up, and beholding Tarzan,
|
|
turned, shrieking, toward the palisade.
|
|
|
|
In an instant the air was filled with cries of terror from the
|
|
fleeing gardeners, but before any had reached the palisade a
|
|
white man emerged from the enclosure, rifle in hand, to discover
|
|
the cause of the commotion.
|
|
|
|
What he saw brought his rifle to his shoulder, and Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes would have felt cold lead once again had not
|
|
D'Arnot cried loudly to the man with the leveled gun:
|
|
|
|
"Do not fire! We are friends!"
|
|
|
|
"Halt, then!" was the reply.
|
|
|
|
"Stop, Tarzan!" cried D'Arnot. "He thinks we are enemies."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan dropped into a walk, and together he and D'Arnot
|
|
advanced toward the white man by the gate.
|
|
|
|
The latter eyed them in puzzled bewilderment.
|
|
|
|
"What manner of men are you?" he asked, in French.
|
|
|
|
"White men," replied D'Arnot. "We have been lost in the
|
|
jungle for a long time."
|
|
|
|
The man had lowered his rifle and now advanced with
|
|
outstretched hand.
|
|
|
|
"I am Father Constantine of the French Mission here," he
|
|
said, "and I am glad to welcome you."
|
|
|
|
"This is Monsieur Tarzan, Father Constantine," replied
|
|
D'Arnot, indicating the ape-man; and as the priest extended
|
|
his hand to Tarzan, D'Arnot added: "and I am Paul D'Arnot,
|
|
of the French Navy."
|
|
|
|
Father Constantine took the hand which Tarzan extended
|
|
in imitation of the priest's act, while the latter took in
|
|
the superb physique and handsome face in one quick, keen glance.
|
|
|
|
And thus came Tarzan of the Apes to the first outpost of
|
|
civilization.
|
|
|
|
For a week they remained there, and the ape-man, keenly
|
|
observant, learned much of the ways of men; meanwhile black
|
|
women sewed white duck garments for himself and D'Arnot so
|
|
that they might continue their journey properly clothed.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 26
|
|
|
|
The Height of Civilization
|
|
|
|
Another month brought them to a little group of buildings
|
|
at the mouth of a wide river, and there Tarzan saw many
|
|
boats, and was filled with the timidity of the wild thing by
|
|
the sight of many men.
|
|
|
|
Gradually he became accustomed to the strange noises and
|
|
the odd ways of civilization, so that presently none might
|
|
know that two short months before, this handsome Frenchman
|
|
in immaculate white ducks, who laughed and chatted
|
|
with the gayest of them, had been swinging naked through
|
|
primeval forests to pounce upon some unwary victim, which,
|
|
raw, was to fill his savage belly.
|
|
|
|
The knife and fork, so contemptuously flung aside a month
|
|
before, Tarzan now manipulated as exquisitely as did the
|
|
polished D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
So apt a pupil had he been that the young Frenchman had labored
|
|
assiduously to make of Tarzan of the Apes a polished gentleman
|
|
in so far as nicety of manners and speech were concerned.
|
|
|
|
"God made you a gentleman at heart, my friend," D'Arnot had
|
|
said; "but we want His works to show upon the exterior also."
|
|
|
|
As soon as they had reached the little port, D'Arnot had
|
|
cabled his government of his safety, and requested a three-
|
|
months' leave, which had been granted.
|
|
|
|
He had also cabled his bankers for funds, and the enforced
|
|
wait of a month, under which both chafed, was due to their
|
|
inability to charter a vessel for the return to Tarzan's jungle
|
|
after the treasure.
|
|
|
|
During their stay at the coast town "Monsieur Tarzan" became
|
|
the wonder of both whites and blacks because of several
|
|
occurrences which to Tarzan seemed the merest of nothings.
|
|
|
|
Once a huge black, crazed by drink, had run amuck and
|
|
terrorized the town, until his evil star had led him to where the
|
|
black-haired French giant lolled upon the veranda of the hotel.
|
|
|
|
Mounting the broad steps, with brandished knife, the
|
|
Negro made straight for a party of four men sitting at
|
|
a table sipping the inevitable absinthe.
|
|
|
|
Shouting in alarm, the four took to their heels, and then
|
|
the black spied Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
With a roar he charged the ape-man, while half a hundred
|
|
heads peered from sheltering windows and doorways to witness
|
|
the butchering of the poor Frenchman by the giant black.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan met the rush with the fighting smile that the joy of
|
|
battle always brought to his lips.
|
|
|
|
As the Negro closed upon him, steel muscles gripped the
|
|
black wrist of the uplifted knife-hand, and a single swift
|
|
wrench left the hand dangling below a broken bone.
|
|
|
|
With the pain and surprise, the madness left the black
|
|
man, and as Tarzan dropped back into his chair the fellow
|
|
turned, crying with agony, and dashed wildly toward the
|
|
native village.
|
|
|
|
On another occasion as Tarzan and D'Arnot sat at dinner
|
|
with a number of other whites, the talk fell upon lions and
|
|
lion hunting.
|
|
|
|
Opinion was divided as to the bravery of the king of beasts
|
|
--some maintaining that he was an arrant coward, but all
|
|
agreeing that it was with a feeling of greater security that
|
|
they gripped their express rifles when the monarch of the
|
|
jungle roared about a camp at night.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot and Tarzan had agreed that his past be kept secret,
|
|
and so none other than the French officer knew of the
|
|
ape-man's familiarity with the beasts of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Tarzan has not expressed himself," said one of
|
|
the party. "A man of his prowess who has spent some time in
|
|
Africa, as I understand Monsieur Tarzan has, must have had
|
|
experiences with lions--yes?"
|
|
|
|
"Some," replied Tarzan, dryly. "Enough to know that each
|
|
of you are right in your judgment of the characteristics of the
|
|
lions--you have met. But one might as well judge all blacks
|
|
by the fellow who ran amuck last week, or decide that all
|
|
whites are cowards because one has met a cowardly white.
|
|
|
|
"There is as much individuality among the lower orders,
|
|
gentlemen, as there is among ourselves. Today we may go out
|
|
and stumble upon a lion which is over-timid--he runs away
|
|
from us. To-morrow we may meet his uncle or his twin
|
|
brother, and our friends wonder why we do not return from
|
|
the jungle. For myself, I always assume that a lion is
|
|
ferocious, and so I am never caught off my guard."
|
|
|
|
"There would be little pleasure in hunting," retorted the
|
|
first speaker, "if one is afraid of the thing he hunts."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot smiled. Tarzan afraid!
|
|
|
|
"I do not exactly understand what you mean by fear," said
|
|
Tarzan. "Like lions, fear is a different thing in different men,
|
|
but to me the only pleasure in the hunt is the knowledge that
|
|
the hunted thing has power to harm me as much as I have to
|
|
harm him. If I went out with a couple of rifles and a gun
|
|
bearer, and twenty or thirty beaters, to hunt a lion, I should
|
|
not feel that the lion had much chance, and so the pleasure
|
|
of the hunt would be lessened in proportion to the increased
|
|
safety which I felt."
|
|
|
|
"Then I am to take it that Monsieur Tarzan would prefer
|
|
to go naked into the jungle, armed only with a jackknife, to
|
|
kill the king of beasts," laughed the other, good naturedly,
|
|
but with the merest touch of sarcasm in his tone.
|
|
|
|
"And a piece of rope," added Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Just then the deep roar of a lion sounded from the distant
|
|
jungle, as though to challenge whoever dared enter the lists
|
|
with him.
|
|
|
|
"There is your opportunity, Monsieur Tarzan," bantered
|
|
the Frenchman.
|
|
|
|
"I am not hungry," said Tarzan simply.
|
|
|
|
The men laughed, all but D'Arnot. He alone knew that a
|
|
savage beast had spoken its simple reason through the lips of
|
|
the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
"But you are afraid, just as any of us would be, to go out
|
|
there naked, armed only with a knife and a piece of rope,"
|
|
said the banterer. "Is it not so?"
|
|
|
|
"No," replied Tarzan. "Only a fool performs any act
|
|
without reason."
|
|
|
|
"Five thousand francs is a reason," said the other. "I
|
|
wager you that amount you cannot bring back a lion from
|
|
the jungle under the conditions we have named--naked and
|
|
armed only with a knife and a piece of rope."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan glanced toward D'Arnot and nodded his head.
|
|
|
|
"Make it ten thousand," said D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Done," replied the other.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan arose.
|
|
|
|
"I shall have to leave my clothes at the edge of the settlement,
|
|
so that if I do not return before daylight I shall have
|
|
something to wear through the streets."
|
|
|
|
"You are not going now," exclaimed the wagerer--"at night?"
|
|
|
|
"Why not?" asked Tarzan. "Numa walks abroad at night
|
|
--it will be easier to find him."
|
|
|
|
"No," said the other, "I do not want your blood upon my
|
|
hands. It will be foolhardy enough if you go forth by day."
|
|
|
|
"I shall go now," replied Tarzan, and went to his room for
|
|
his knife and rope.
|
|
|
|
The men accompanied him to the edge of the jungle,
|
|
where he left his clothes in a small storehouse.
|
|
|
|
But when he would have entered the blackness of the
|
|
undergrowth they tried to dissuade him; and the wagerer was
|
|
most insistent of all that he abandon his foolhardy venture.
|
|
|
|
"I will accede that you have won," he said, "and the ten
|
|
thousand francs are yours if you will but give up this
|
|
foolish attempt, which can only end in your death."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan laughed, and in another moment the jungle had
|
|
swallowed him.
|
|
|
|
The men stood silent for some moments and then slowly
|
|
turned and walked back to the hotel veranda.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had no sooner entered the jungle than he took to
|
|
the trees, and it was with a feeling of exultant freedom that
|
|
he swung once more through the forest branches.
|
|
|
|
This was life! Ah, how he loved it! Civilization held nothing
|
|
like this in its narrow and circumscribed sphere, hemmed
|
|
in by restrictions and conventionalities. Even clothes were a
|
|
hindrance and a nuisance.
|
|
|
|
At last he was free. He had not realized what a prisoner he
|
|
had been.
|
|
|
|
How easy it would be to circle back to the coast, and then
|
|
make toward the south and his own jungle and cabin.
|
|
|
|
Now he caught the scent of Numa, for he was traveling up
|
|
wind. Presently his quick ears detected the familiar sound of
|
|
padded feet and the brushing of a huge, fur-clad body
|
|
through the undergrowth.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan came quietly above the unsuspecting beast and silently
|
|
stalked him until he came into a little patch of moonlight.
|
|
|
|
Then the quick noose settled and tightened about the
|
|
tawny throat, and, as he had done it a hundred times in the
|
|
past, Tarzan made fast the end to a strong branch and, while
|
|
the beast fought and clawed for freedom, dropped to the
|
|
ground behind him, and leaping upon the great back, plunged
|
|
his long thin blade a dozen times into the fierce heart.
|
|
|
|
Then with his foot upon the carcass of Numa, he raised his
|
|
voice in the awesome victory cry of his savage tribe.
|
|
|
|
For a moment Tarzan stood irresolute, swayed by conflicting
|
|
emotions of loyalty to D'Arnot and a mighty lust for the
|
|
freedom of his own jungle. At last the vision of a beautiful
|
|
face, and the memory of warm lips crushed to his?? dissolved
|
|
the fascinating picture he had been drawing of his old life.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man threw the warm carcass of Numa across his
|
|
shoulders and took to the trees once more.
|
|
|
|
The men upon the veranda had sat for an hour, almost in silence.
|
|
|
|
They had tried ineffectually to converse on various subjects,
|
|
and always the thing uppermost in the mind of each
|
|
had caused the conversation to lapse.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU," said the wagerer at length, "I can endure it
|
|
no longer. I am going into the jungle with my express and
|
|
bring back that mad man."
|
|
|
|
"I will go with you," said one.
|
|
|
|
"And I"--"And I"--"And I," chorused the others.
|
|
|
|
As though the suggestion had broken the spell of some
|
|
horrid nightmare they hastened to their various quarters, and
|
|
presently were headed toward the jungle--each one heavily armed.
|
|
|
|
"God! What was that?" suddenly cried one of the party, an
|
|
Englishman, as Tarzan's savage cry came faintly to their ears.
|
|
|
|
"I heard the same thing once before," said a Belgian,
|
|
"when I was in the gorilla country. My carriers said it
|
|
was the cry of a great bull ape who has made a kill."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot remembered Clayton's description of the awful
|
|
roar with which Tarzan had announced his kills, and he half
|
|
smiled in spite of the horror which filled him to think that
|
|
the uncanny sound could have issued from a human throat
|
|
--from the lips of his friend.
|
|
|
|
As the party stood finally near the edge of the jungle,
|
|
debating as to the best distribution of their forces, they were
|
|
startled by a low laugh near them, and turning, beheld advancing
|
|
toward them a giant figure bearing a dead lion upon
|
|
its broad shoulders.
|
|
|
|
Even D'Arnot was thunderstruck, for it seemed impossible
|
|
that the man could have so quickly dispatched a lion with the
|
|
pitiful weapons he had taken, or that alone he could have
|
|
borne the huge carcass through the tangled jungle.
|
|
|
|
The men crowded about Tarzan with many questions, but
|
|
his only answer was a laughing depreciation of his feat.
|
|
|
|
To Tarzan it was as though one should eulogize a butcher
|
|
for his heroism in killing a cow, for Tarzan had killed so
|
|
often for food and for self-preservation that the act seemed
|
|
anything but remarkable to him. But he was indeed a hero in
|
|
the eyes of these men--men accustomed to hunting big game.
|
|
|
|
Incidentally, he had won ten thousand francs, for D'Arnot
|
|
insisted that he keep it all.
|
|
|
|
This was a very important item to Tarzan, who was just
|
|
commencing to realize the power which lay beyond the little
|
|
pieces of metal and paper which always changed hands when
|
|
human beings rode, or ate, or slept, or clothed themselves, or
|
|
drank, or worked, or played, or sheltered themselves from
|
|
the rain or cold or sun.
|
|
|
|
It had become evident to Tarzan that without money one
|
|
must die. D'Arnot had told him not to worry, since he had
|
|
more than enough for both, but the ape-man was learning
|
|
many things and one of them was that people looked down
|
|
upon one who accepted money from another without giving
|
|
something of equal value in exchange.
|
|
|
|
Shortly after the episode of the lion hunt, D'Arnot
|
|
succeeded in chartering an ancient tub for the coastwise
|
|
trip to Tarzan's land-locked harbor.
|
|
|
|
It was a happy morning for them both when the little vessel
|
|
weighed anchor and made for the open sea.
|
|
|
|
The trip to the beach was uneventful, and the morning
|
|
after they dropped anchor before the cabin, Tarzan, garbed
|
|
once more in his jungle regalia and carrying a spade, set out
|
|
alone for the amphitheater of the apes where lay the treasure.
|
|
|
|
Late the next day he returned, bearing the great chest upon
|
|
his shoulder, and at sunrise the little vessel worked through
|
|
the harbor's mouth and took up her northward journey.
|
|
|
|
Three weeks later Tarzan and D'Arnot were passengers on
|
|
board a French steamer bound for Lyons, and after a few
|
|
days in that city D'Arnot took Tarzan to Paris.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man was anxious to proceed to America, but
|
|
D'Arnot insisted that he must accompany him to Paris first,
|
|
nor would he divulge the nature of the urgent necessity upon
|
|
which he based his demand.
|
|
|
|
One of the first things which D'Arnot accomplished after
|
|
their arrival was to arrange to visit a high official of the
|
|
police department, an old friend; and to take Tarzan with him.
|
|
|
|
Adroitly D'Arnot led the conversation from point to point until
|
|
the policeman had explained to the interested Tarzan many of
|
|
the methods in vogue for apprehending and identifying criminals.
|
|
|
|
Not the least interesting to Tarzan was the part played by
|
|
finger prints in this fascinating science.
|
|
|
|
"But of what value are these imprints," asked Tarzan,
|
|
"when, after a few years the lines upon the fingers are
|
|
entirely changed by the wearing out of the old tissue and the
|
|
growth of new?"
|
|
|
|
"The lines never change," replied the official. "From infancy
|
|
to senility the fingerprints of an individual change only
|
|
in size, except as injuries alter the loops and whorls. But if
|
|
imprints have been taken of the thumb and four fingers of both
|
|
hands one must needs lose all entirely to escape identification."
|
|
|
|
"It is marvelous," exclaimed D'Arnot. "I wonder what the
|
|
lines upon my own fingers may resemble."
|
|
|
|
"We can soon see," replied the police officer, and ringing a
|
|
bell he summoned an assistant to whom he issued a few directions.
|
|
|
|
The man left the room, but presently returned with a little
|
|
hardwood box which he placed on his superior's desk.
|
|
|
|
"Now," said the officer, "you shall have your fingerprints
|
|
in a second."
|
|
|
|
He drew from the little case a square of plate glass, a little
|
|
tube of thick ink, a rubber roller, and a few snowy white cards.
|
|
|
|
Squeezing a drop of ink onto the glass, he spread it back
|
|
and forth with the rubber roller until the entire surface of the
|
|
glass was covered to his satisfaction with a very thin and uniform
|
|
layer of ink.
|
|
|
|
"Place the four fingers of your right hand upon the glass,
|
|
thus," he said to D'Arnot. "Now the thumb. That is right.
|
|
Now place them in just the same position upon this card,
|
|
here, no--a little to the right. We must leave room for the
|
|
thumb and the fingers of the left hand. There, that's it. Now
|
|
the same with the left."
|
|
|
|
"Come, Tarzan," cried D'Arnot, "let's see what your
|
|
whorls look like."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan complied readily, asking many questions of the officer
|
|
during the operation.
|
|
|
|
"Do fingerprints show racial characteristics?" he asked.
|
|
"Could you determine, for example, solely from fingerprints
|
|
whether the subject was Negro or Caucasian?"
|
|
|
|
"I think not," replied the officer.
|
|
|
|
"Could the finger prints of an ape be detected from those
|
|
of a man?"
|
|
|
|
"Probably, because the ape's would be far simpler than
|
|
those of the higher organism."
|
|
|
|
"But a cross between an ape and a man might show the
|
|
characteristics of either progenitor?" continued Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I should think likely," responded the official; "but
|
|
the science has not progressed sufficiently to render it exact
|
|
enough in such matters. I should hate to trust its findings
|
|
further than to differentiate between individuals. There it is
|
|
absolute. No two people born into the world probably have ever
|
|
had identical lines upon all their digits. It is very doubtful if
|
|
any single fingerprint will ever be exactly duplicated by any
|
|
finger other than the one which originally made it."
|
|
|
|
"Does the comparison require much time or labor?" asked D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Ordinarily but a few moments, if the impressions are distinct."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot drew a little black book from his pocket and commenced
|
|
turning the pages.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan looked at the book in surprise. How did D'Arnot
|
|
come to have his book?
|
|
|
|
Presently D'Arnot stopped at a page on which were five
|
|
tiny little smudges.
|
|
|
|
He handed the open book to the policeman.
|
|
|
|
"Are these imprints similar to mine or Monsieur Tarzan's
|
|
or can you say that they are identical with either?"
|
|
The officer drew a powerful glass from his desk and
|
|
examined all three specimens carefully, making notations
|
|
meanwhile upon a pad of paper.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan realized now what was the meaning of their visit to
|
|
the police officer.
|
|
|
|
The answer to his life's riddle lay in these tiny marks.
|
|
|
|
With tense nerves he sat leaning forward in his chair, but
|
|
suddenly he relaxed and dropped back, smiling.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot looked at him in surprise.
|
|
|
|
"You forget that for twenty years the dead body of the
|
|
child who made those fingerprints lay in the cabin of his
|
|
father, and that all my life I have seen it lying there,"
|
|
said Tarzan bitterly.
|
|
|
|
The policeman looked up in astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"Go ahead, captain, with your examination," said D'Arnot,
|
|
"we will tell you the story later--provided Monsieur Tarzan
|
|
is agreeable."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan nodded his head.
|
|
|
|
"But you are mad, my dear D'Arnot," he insisted. "Those
|
|
little fingers are buried on the west coast of Africa."
|
|
|
|
"I do not know as to that, Tarzan," replied D'Arnot. "It is
|
|
possible, but if you are not the son of John Clayton then how
|
|
in heaven's name did you come into that God forsaken jungle
|
|
where no white man other than John Clayton had ever set foot?"
|
|
|
|
"You forget--Kala," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"I do not even consider her," replied D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
The friends had walked to the broad window overlooking
|
|
the boulevard as they talked. For some time they stood there
|
|
gazing out upon the busy throng beneath, each wrapped in
|
|
his own thoughts.
|
|
|
|
"It takes some time to compare finger prints," thought
|
|
D'Arnot, turning to look at the police officer.
|
|
|
|
To his astonishment he saw the official leaning back in his
|
|
chair hastily scanning the contents of the little black diary.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot coughed. The policeman looked up, and, catching his
|
|
eye, raised his finger to admonish silence. D'Arnot turned
|
|
back to the window, and presently the police officer spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Gentlemen," he said.
|
|
|
|
Both turned toward him.
|
|
|
|
"There is evidently a great deal at stake which must hinge
|
|
to a greater or lesser extent upon the absolute correctness of
|
|
this comparison. I therefore ask that you leave the entire
|
|
matter in my hands until Monsieur Desquerc, our expert
|
|
returns. It will be but a matter of a few days."
|
|
|
|
"I had hoped to know at once," said D'Arnot. "Monsieur
|
|
Tarzan sails for America tomorrow."
|
|
|
|
"I will promise that you can cable him a report within two
|
|
weeks," replied the officer; "but what it will be I dare not say.
|
|
There are resemblances, yet--well, we had better leave it for
|
|
Monsieur Desquerc to solve."
|
|
|
|
Chapter 27
|
|
|
|
The Giant Again
|
|
|
|
A taxicab drew up before an oldfashioned residence upon
|
|
the outskirts of Baltimore.
|
|
|
|
A man of about forty, well built and with strong, regular
|
|
features, stepped out, and paying the chauffeur dismissed him.
|
|
|
|
A moment later the passenger was entering the library of
|
|
the old home.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, Mr. Canler!" exclaimed an old man, rising to greet him.
|
|
|
|
"Good evening, my dear Professor," cried the man, extending
|
|
a cordial hand.
|
|
|
|
"Who admitted you?" asked the professor.
|
|
|
|
"Esmeralda."
|
|
|
|
"Then she will acquaint Jane with the fact that you are
|
|
here," said the old man.
|
|
|
|
"No, Professor," replied Canler, "for I came primarily to
|
|
see you."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, I am honored," said Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"Professor," continued Robert Canler, with great deliberation,
|
|
as though carefully weighing his words, "I have come
|
|
this evening to speak with you about Jane."
|
|
|
|
"You know my aspirations, and you have been generous
|
|
enough to approve my suit."
|
|
|
|
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter fidgeted in his armchair.
|
|
The subject always made him uncomfortable. He could not
|
|
understand why. Canler was a splendid match.
|
|
|
|
"But Jane," continued Canler, "I cannot understand her.
|
|
She puts me off first on one ground and then another. I have
|
|
always the feeling that she breathes a sigh of relief every time
|
|
I bid her good-by."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut," said Professor Porter. "Tut, tut, Mr. Canler.
|
|
Jane is a most obedient daughter. She will do precisely as I
|
|
tell her."
|
|
|
|
"Then I can still count on your support?" asked Canler, a
|
|
tone of relief marking his voice.
|
|
|
|
"Certainly, sir; certainly, sir," exclaimed Professor Porter.
|
|
"How could you doubt it?"
|
|
|
|
"There is young Clayton, you know," suggested Canler. "He has
|
|
been hanging about for months. I don't know that Jane cares
|
|
for him; but beside his title they say he has inherited a
|
|
very considerable estate from his father, and it might not be
|
|
strange,--if he finally won her, unless--" and Canler paused.
|
|
|
|
"Tut--tut, Mr. Canler; unless--what?"
|
|
|
|
"Unless, you see fit to request that Jane and I be married
|
|
at once," said Canler, slowly and distinctly.
|
|
|
|
"I have already suggested to Jane that it would be desirable,"
|
|
said Professor Porter sadly, "for we can no longer afford to
|
|
keep up this house, and live as her associations demand."
|
|
|
|
"What was her reply?" asked Canler.
|
|
|
|
"She said she was not ready to marry anyone yet," replied
|
|
Professor Porter, "and that we could go and live upon the
|
|
farm in northern Wisconsin which her mother left her.
|
|
|
|
"It is a little more than self-supporting. The tenants have
|
|
always made a living from it, and been able to send Jane a
|
|
trifle beside, each year. She is planning on our going up there
|
|
the first of the week. Philander and Mr. Clayton have already
|
|
gone to get things in readiness for us."
|
|
|
|
"Clayton has gone there?" exclaimed Canler, visibly chagrined.
|
|
"Why was I not told? I would gladly have gone and
|
|
seen that every comfort was provided."
|
|
|
|
"Jane feels that we are already too much in your debt, Mr.
|
|
Canler," said Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
Canler was about to reply, when the sound of footsteps
|
|
came from the hall without, and Jane entered the room.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I beg your pardon!" she exclaimed, pausing on the
|
|
threshold. "I thought you were alone, papa."
|
|
|
|
"It is only I, Jane," said Canler, who had risen, "won't you
|
|
come in and join the family group? We were just speaking of you."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you," said Jane, entering and taking the chair Canler
|
|
placed for her. "I only wanted to tell papa that Tobey is
|
|
coming down from the college tomorrow to pack his books. I
|
|
want you to be sure, papa, to indicate all that you can do
|
|
without until fall. Please don't carry this entire library to
|
|
Wisconsin, as you would have carried it to Africa, if I had
|
|
not put my foot down."
|
|
|
|
"Was Tobey here?" asked Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I just left him. He and Esmeralda are exchanging
|
|
religious experiences on the back porch now."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, I must see him at once!" cried the professor.
|
|
"Excuse me just a moment, children," and the old man
|
|
hastened from the room.
|
|
|
|
As soon as he was out of earshot Canler turned to Jane.
|
|
|
|
"See here, Jane," he said bluntly. "How long is this thing
|
|
going on like this? You haven't refused to marry me, but you
|
|
haven't promised either. I want to get the license tomorrow,
|
|
so that we can be married quietly before you leave for Wisconsin.
|
|
I don't care for any fuss or feathers, and I'm sure you
|
|
don't either."
|
|
|
|
The girl turned cold, but she held her head bravely.
|
|
|
|
"Your father wishes it, you know," added Canler.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I know."
|
|
|
|
She spoke scarcely above a whisper.
|
|
|
|
"Do you realize that you are buying me, Mr. Canler?" she
|
|
said finally, and in a cold, level voice. "Buying me for a few
|
|
paltry dollars? Of course you do, Robert Canler, and the
|
|
hope of just such a contingency was in your mind when you
|
|
loaned papa the money for that hair-brained escapade, which
|
|
but for a most mysterious circumstance would have been
|
|
surprisingly successful.
|
|
|
|
"But you, Mr. Canler, would have been the most surprised.
|
|
You had no idea that the venture would succeed. You are too
|
|
good a businessman for that. And you are too good a
|
|
businessman to loan money for buried treasure seeking, or to
|
|
loan money without security--unless you had some special
|
|
object in view.
|
|
|
|
"You knew that without security you had a greater hold on
|
|
the honor of the Porters than with it. You knew the one best
|
|
way to force me to marry you, without seeming to force me.
|
|
|
|
"You have never mentioned the loan. In any other man I
|
|
should have thought that the prompting of a magnanimous
|
|
and noble character. But you are deep, Mr. Robert Canler. I
|
|
know you better than you think I know you.
|
|
|
|
"I shall certainly marry you if there is no other way, but
|
|
let us understand each other once and for all."
|
|
|
|
While she spoke Robert Canler had alternately flushed and
|
|
paled, and when she ceased speaking he arose, and with a
|
|
cynical smile upon his strong face, said:
|
|
|
|
"You surprise me, Jane. I thought you had more self??control
|
|
--more pride. Of course you are right. I am buying you,
|
|
and I knew that you knew it, but I thought you would prefer
|
|
to pretend that it was otherwise. I should have thought your
|
|
self respect and your Porter pride would have shrunk from
|
|
admitting, even to yourself, that you were a bought woman.
|
|
But have it your own way, dear girl," he added lightly. "I
|
|
am going to have you, and that is all that interests me."
|
|
|
|
Without a word the girl turned and left the room.
|
|
|
|
Jane was not married before she left with her father and
|
|
Esmeralda for her little Wisconsin farm, and as she coldly
|
|
bid Robert Canler goodby as her train pulled out, he called to
|
|
her that he would join them in a week or two.
|
|
|
|
At their destination they were met by Clayton and Mr.
|
|
Philander in a huge touring car belonging to the former, and
|
|
quickly whirled away through the dense northern woods toward
|
|
the little farm which the girl had not visited before
|
|
since childhood.
|
|
|
|
The farmhouse, which stood on a little elevation some
|
|
hundred yards from the tenant house, had undergone a complete
|
|
transformation during the three weeks that Clayton and
|
|
Mr. Philander had been there.
|
|
|
|
The former had imported a small army of carpenters and
|
|
plasterers, plumbers and painters from a distant city, and
|
|
what had been but a dilapidated shell when they reached it
|
|
was now a cosy little two-story house filled with every modern
|
|
convenience procurable in so short a time.
|
|
|
|
"Why, Mr. Clayton, what have you done?" cried Jane Porter,
|
|
her heart sinking within her as she realized the probable
|
|
size of the expenditure that had been made.
|
|
|
|
"S-sh," cautioned Clayton. "Don't let your father guess. If
|
|
you don't tell him he will never notice, and I simply couldn't
|
|
think of him living in the terrible squalor and sordidness
|
|
which Mr. Philander and I found. It was so little when I
|
|
would like to do so much, Jane. For his sake, please, never
|
|
mention it."
|
|
|
|
"But you know that we can't repay you," cried the girl.
|
|
"Why do you want to put me under such terrible obligations?"
|
|
|
|
"Don't, Jane," said Clayton sadly. "If it had been just you,
|
|
believe me, I wouldn't have done it, for I knew from the start
|
|
that it would only hurt me in your eyes, but I couldn't think
|
|
of that dear old man living in the hole we found here. Won't
|
|
you please believe that I did it just for him and give me that
|
|
little crumb of pleasure at least?"
|
|
|
|
"I do believe you, Mr. Clayton," said the girl, "because I
|
|
know you are big enough and generous enough to have done
|
|
it just for him--and, oh Cecil, I wish I might repay you as
|
|
you deserve--as you would wish."
|
|
|
|
"Why can't you, Jane?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I love another."
|
|
|
|
"Canler?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"But you are going to marry him. He told me as much
|
|
before I left Baltimore."
|
|
|
|
The girl winced.
|
|
|
|
"I do not love him," she said, almost proudly.
|
|
|
|
"Is it because of the money, Jane?"
|
|
|
|
She nodded.
|
|
|
|
"Then am I so much less desirable than Canler? I have
|
|
money enough, and far more, for every need," he said bitterly.
|
|
|
|
"I do not love you, Cecil," she said, "but I respect you. If I
|
|
must disgrace myself by such a bargain with any man, I prefer
|
|
that it be one I already despise. I should loathe the man
|
|
to whom I sold myself without love, whomsoever he might
|
|
be. You will be happier," she concluded, "alone--with my
|
|
respect and friendship, than with me and my contempt."
|
|
|
|
He did not press the matter further, but if ever a man had
|
|
murder in his heart it was William Cecil Clayton, Lord
|
|
Greystoke, when, a week later, Robert Canler drew up before
|
|
the farmhouse in his purring six cylinder.
|
|
|
|
A week passed; a tense, uneventful, but uncomfortable
|
|
week for all the inmates of the little Wisconsin farmhouse.
|
|
|
|
Canler was insistent that Jane marry him at once.
|
|
|
|
At length she gave in from sheer loathing of the continued
|
|
and hateful importuning.
|
|
|
|
It was agreed that on the morrow Canler was to drive to
|
|
town and bring back the license and a minister.
|
|
|
|
Clayton had wanted to leave as soon as the plan was
|
|
announced, but the girl's tired, hopeless look kept him.
|
|
He could not desert her.
|
|
|
|
Something might happen yet, he tried to console himself
|
|
by thinking. And in his heart, he knew that it would require
|
|
but a tiny spark to turn his hatred for Canler into the blood
|
|
lust of the killer.
|
|
|
|
Early the next morning Canler set out for town.
|
|
|
|
In the east smoke could be seen lying low over the forest,
|
|
for a fire had been raging for a week not far from them, but
|
|
the wind still lay in the west and no danger threatened them.
|
|
|
|
About noon Jane started off for a walk. She would not let
|
|
Clayton accompany her. She wanted to be alone, she said,
|
|
and he respected her wishes.
|
|
|
|
In the house Professor Porter and Mr. Philander were immersed
|
|
in an absorbing discussion of some weighty scientific problem.
|
|
Esmeralda dozed in the kitchen, and Clayton, heavy-eyed after
|
|
a sleepless night, threw himself down upon the couch in the
|
|
living room and soon dropped into a fitful slumber.
|
|
|
|
To the east the black smoke clouds rose higher into the
|
|
heavens, suddenly they eddied, and then commenced to drift
|
|
rapidly toward the west.
|
|
|
|
On and on they came. The inmates of the tenant house
|
|
were gone, for it was market day, and none was there to
|
|
see the rapid approach of the fiery demon.
|
|
|
|
Soon the flames had spanned the road to the south and cut
|
|
off Canler's return. A little fluctuation of the wind now
|
|
carried the path of the forest fire to the north, then blew back
|
|
and the flames nearly stood still as though held in leash by
|
|
some master hand.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly, out of the northeast, a great black car came
|
|
careening down the road.
|
|
|
|
With a jolt it stopped before the cottage, and a black-haired
|
|
giant leaped out to run up onto the porch. Without a
|
|
pause he rushed into the house. On the couch lay Clayton.
|
|
The man started in surprise, but with a bound was at the side
|
|
of the sleeping man.
|
|
|
|
Shaking him roughly by the shoulder, he cried:
|
|
|
|
"My God, Clayton, are you all mad here? Don't you know
|
|
you are nearly surrounded by fire? Where is Miss Porter?"
|
|
|
|
Clayton sprang to his feet. He did not recognize the man,
|
|
but he understood the words and was upon the veranda in a bound.
|
|
|
|
"Scott!" he cried, and then, dashing back into the house,
|
|
"Jane! Jane! where are you?"
|
|
|
|
In an instant Esmeralda, Professor Porter and Mr. Philander
|
|
had joined the two men.
|
|
|
|
"Where is Miss Jane?" cried Clayton, seizing Esmeralda by
|
|
the shoulders and shaking her roughly.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Gaberelle, Mister Clayton, she done gone for a walk."
|
|
|
|
"Hasn't she come back yet?" and, without waiting for a reply,
|
|
Clayton dashed out into the yard, followed by the others.
|
|
"Which way did she go?" cried the black-haired giant of Esmeralda.
|
|
|
|
"Down that road," cried the frightened woman, pointing
|
|
toward the south where a mighty wall of roaring flames shut
|
|
out the view.
|
|
|
|
"Put these people in the other car," shouted the stranger to
|
|
Clayton. "I saw one as I drove up--and get them out of here
|
|
by the north road.
|
|
|
|
"Leave my car here. If I find Miss Porter we shall need it.
|
|
If I don't, no one will need it. Do as I say," as Clayton
|
|
hesitated, and then they saw the lithe figure bound away cross
|
|
the clearing toward the northwest where the forest still stood,
|
|
untouched by flame.
|
|
|
|
In each rose the unaccountable feeling that a great
|
|
responsibility had been raised from their shoulders; a kind
|
|
of implicit confidence in the power of the stranger to save
|
|
Jane if she could be saved.
|
|
|
|
"Who was that?" asked Professor Porter.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know," replied Clayton. "He called me by name
|
|
and he knew Jane, for he asked for her. And he called
|
|
Esmeralda by name."
|
|
|
|
"There was something most startlingly familiar about him,"
|
|
exclaimed Mr. Philander, "And yet, bless me, I know I never
|
|
saw him before."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut!" cried Professor Porter. "Most remarkable!
|
|
Who could it have been, and why do I feel that Jane is safe,
|
|
now that he has set out in search of her?"
|
|
|
|
"I can't tell you, Professor," said Clayton soberly, "but I
|
|
know I have the same uncanny feeling."
|
|
|
|
"But come," he cried, "we must get out of here ourselves,
|
|
or we shall be shut off," and the party hastened toward
|
|
Clayton's car.
|
|
|
|
When Jane turned to retrace her steps homeward, she was
|
|
alarmed to note how near the smoke of the forest fire
|
|
seemed, and as she hastened onward her alarm became almost
|
|
a panic when she perceived that the rushing flames were
|
|
rapidly forcing their way between herself and the cottage.
|
|
|
|
At length she was compelled to turn into the dense thicket
|
|
and attempt to force her way to the west in an effort to circle
|
|
around the flames and reach the house.
|
|
|
|
In a short time the futility of her attempt became apparent
|
|
and then her one hope lay in retracing her steps to the road
|
|
and flying for her life to the south toward the town.
|
|
|
|
The twenty minutes that it took her to regain the road was
|
|
all that had been needed to cut off her retreat as effectually as
|
|
her advance had been cut off before.
|
|
|
|
A short run down the road brought her to a horrified
|
|
stand, for there before her was another wall of flame. An
|
|
arm of the main conflagration had shot out a half mile south
|
|
of its parent to embrace this tiny strip of road in its
|
|
implacable clutches.
|
|
|
|
Jane knew that it was useless again to attempt to force her
|
|
way through the undergrowth.
|
|
|
|
She had tried it once, and failed. Now she realized that it
|
|
would be but a matter of minutes ere the whole space between
|
|
the north and the south would be a seething mass of
|
|
billowing flames.
|
|
|
|
Calmly the girl kneeled down in the dust of the roadway
|
|
and prayed for strength to meet her fate bravely, and for the
|
|
delivery of her father and her friends from death.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly she heard her name being called aloud through
|
|
the forest:
|
|
|
|
"Jane! Jane Porter!" It rang strong and clear, but in a
|
|
strange voice.
|
|
|
|
"Here!" she called in reply. "Here! In the roadway!"
|
|
|
|
Then through the branches of the trees she saw a figure
|
|
swinging with the speed of a squirrel.
|
|
|
|
A veering of the wind blew a cloud of smoke about them
|
|
and she could no longer see the man who was speeding toward
|
|
her, but suddenly she felt a great arm about her. Then
|
|
she was lifted up, and she felt the rushing of the wind and
|
|
the occasional brush of a branch as she was borne along.
|
|
|
|
She opened her eyes.
|
|
|
|
Far below her lay the undergrowth and the hard earth.
|
|
|
|
About her was the waving foliage of the forest.
|
|
|
|
From tree to tree swung the giant figure which bore her,
|
|
and it seemed to Jane that she was living over in a dream the
|
|
experience that had been hers in that far African jungle.
|
|
|
|
Oh, if it were but the same man who had borne her so
|
|
swiftly through the tangled verdure on that other day! but
|
|
that was impossible! Yet who else in all the world was there
|
|
with the strength and agility to do what this man was now doing?
|
|
|
|
She stole a sudden glance at the face close to hers, and
|
|
then she gave a little frightened gasp. It was he!
|
|
|
|
"My forest man!" she murmured, "No, I must be delerious!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, your man, Jane Porter. Your savage, primeval man
|
|
come out of the jungle to claim his mate--the woman who
|
|
ran away from him," he added almost fiercely.
|
|
|
|
"I did not run away," she whispered. "I would only consent
|
|
to leave when they had waited a week for you to return."
|
|
|
|
They had come to a point beyond the fire now, and he had
|
|
turned back to the clearing.
|
|
|
|
Side by side they were walking toward the cottage. The
|
|
wind had changed once more and the fire was burning back
|
|
upon itself--another hour like that and it would be burned out.
|
|
|
|
"Why did you not return?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"I was nursing D'Arnot. He was badly wounded."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, I knew it!" she exclaimed.
|
|
|
|
"They said you had gone to join the blacks--that they
|
|
were your people."
|
|
|
|
He laughed.
|
|
|
|
"But you did not believe them, Jane?"
|
|
|
|
"No;??--what shall I call you?" she asked. "What is your name?"
|
|
|
|
"I was Tarzan of the Apes when you first knew me," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Tarzan of the Apes!" she cried--"and that was your note
|
|
I answered when I left?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, whose did you think it was?"
|
|
|
|
"I did not know; only that it could not be yours, for Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes had written in English, and you could not
|
|
understand a word of any language."
|
|
|
|
Again he laughed.
|
|
|
|
"It is a long story, but it was I who wrote what I could not
|
|
speak--and now D'Arnot has made matters worse by teaching
|
|
me to speak French instead of English.
|
|
|
|
"Come," he added, "jump into my car, we must overtake
|
|
your father, they are only a little way ahead."
|
|
|
|
As they drove along, he said:
|
|
|
|
"Then when you said in your note to Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
that you loved another--you might have meant me?"
|
|
|
|
"I might have," she answered, simply.
|
|
|
|
"But in Baltimore--Oh, how I have searched for you--they
|
|
told me you would possibly be married by now. That a
|
|
man named Canler had come up here to wed you. Is that true?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Do you love him?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Do you love me?"
|
|
|
|
She buried her face in her hands.
|
|
|
|
"I am promised to another. I cannot answer you, Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes," she cried.
|
|
|
|
"You have answered. Now, tell me why you would marry
|
|
one you do not love."
|
|
|
|
"My father owes him money."
|
|
|
|
Suddenly there came back to Tarzan the memory of the
|
|
letter he had read--and the name Robert Canler and the
|
|
hinted trouble which he had been unable to understand then.
|
|
|
|
He smiled.
|
|
|
|
"If your father had not lost the treasure you would not feel
|
|
forced to keep your promise to this man Canler?"
|
|
|
|
"I could ask him to release me."
|
|
|
|
"And if he refused?"
|
|
|
|
"I have given my promise."
|
|
|
|
He was silent for a moment. The car was plunging along the
|
|
uneven road at a reckless pace, for the fire showed threateningly
|
|
at their right, and another change of the wind might sweep it
|
|
on with raging fury across this one avenue of escape.
|
|
|
|
Finally they passed the danger point, and Tarzan reduced
|
|
their speed.
|
|
|
|
"Suppose I should ask him?" ventured Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"He would scarcely accede to the demand of a stranger,"
|
|
said the girl. "Especially one who wanted me himself."
|
|
|
|
"Terkoz did," said Tarzan, grimly.
|
|
|
|
Jane shuddered and looked fearfully up at the giant figure
|
|
beside her, for she knew that he meant the great anthropoid
|
|
he had killed in her defense.
|
|
|
|
"This is not the African jungle," she said. "You are no
|
|
longer a savage beast. You are a gentleman, and gentlemen
|
|
do not kill in cold blood."
|
|
|
|
"I am still a wild beast at heart," he said, in a low voice,
|
|
as though to himself.
|
|
|
|
Again they were silent for a time.
|
|
|
|
"Jane," said the man, at length, "if you were free, would
|
|
you marry me?"
|
|
|
|
She did not reply at once, but he waited patiently.
|
|
|
|
The girl was trying to collect her thoughts.
|
|
|
|
What did she know of this strange creature at her side?
|
|
What did he know of himself? Who was he? Who, his parents?
|
|
|
|
Why, his very name echoed his mysterious origin and his
|
|
savage life.
|
|
|
|
He had no name. Could she be happy with this jungle
|
|
waif? Could she find anything in common with a husband
|
|
whose life had been spent in the tree tops of an African
|
|
wilderness, frolicking and fighting with fierce anthropoids;
|
|
tearing his food from the quivering flank of fresh-killed prey,
|
|
sinking his strong teeth into raw flesh, and tearing away his
|
|
portion while his mates growled and fought about him for
|
|
their share?
|
|
|
|
Could he ever rise to her social sphere? Could she bear to
|
|
think of sinking to his? Would either be happy in such a
|
|
horrible misalliance?
|
|
|
|
"You do not answer," he said. "Do you shrink from
|
|
wounding me?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know what answer to make," said Jane sadly. "I
|
|
do not know my own mind."
|
|
|
|
"You do not love me, then?" he asked, in a level tone.
|
|
|
|
"Do not ask me. You will be happier without me. You
|
|
were never meant for the formal restrictions and
|
|
conventionalities of society--civilization would become
|
|
irksome to you, and in a little while you would long for the
|
|
freedom of your old life--a life to which I am as totally
|
|
unfitted as you to mine."
|
|
|
|
"I think I understand you," he replied quietly. "I shall not
|
|
urge you, for I would rather see you happy than to be happy
|
|
myself. I see now that you could not be happy with--an ape."
|
|
|
|
There was just the faintest tinge of bitterness in his voice.
|
|
|
|
"Don't," she remonstrated. "Don't say that. You do not
|
|
understand."
|
|
|
|
But before she could go on a sudden turn in the road
|
|
brought them into the midst of a little hamlet.
|
|
|
|
Before them stood Clayton's car surrounded by the party
|
|
he had brought from the cottage.
|
|
|
|
Chapter 28
|
|
|
|
Conclusion
|
|
|
|
At the sight of Jane, cries of relief and delight broke from
|
|
every lip, and as Tarzan's car stopped beside the other,
|
|
Professor Porter caught his daughter in his arms.
|
|
|
|
For a moment no one noticed Tarzan, sitting silently in his seat.
|
|
|
|
Clayton was the first to remember, and, turning, held out
|
|
his hand.
|
|
|
|
"How can we ever thank you?" he exclaimed. "You have
|
|
saved us all. You called me by name at the cottage, but I do
|
|
not seem to recall yours, though there is something very
|
|
familiar about you. It is as though I had known you well under
|
|
very different conditions a long time ago."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan smiled as he took the proffered hand.
|
|
|
|
"You are quite right, Monsieur Clayton," he said, in French.
|
|
"You will pardon me if I do not speak to you in English.
|
|
I am just learning it, and while I understand it fairly
|
|
well I speak it very poorly."
|
|
|
|
"But who are you?" insisted Clayton, speaking in French
|
|
this time himself.
|
|
|
|
"Tarzan of the Apes."
|
|
|
|
Clayton started back in surprise.
|
|
|
|
"By Jove!" he exclaimed. "It is true."
|
|
|
|
And Professor Porter and Mr. Philander pressed forward to add
|
|
their thanks to Clayton's, and to voice their surprise and
|
|
pleasure at seeing their jungle friend so far from his savage home.
|
|
|
|
The party now entered the modest little hostelry, where
|
|
Clayton soon made arrangements for their entertainment.
|
|
|
|
They were sitting in the little, stuffy parlor when the distant
|
|
chugging of an approaching automobile caught their attention.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander, who was sitting near the window, looked
|
|
out as the car drew in sight, finally stopping beside
|
|
the other automobiles.
|
|
|
|
"Bless me!" said Mr. Philander, a shade of annoyance in
|
|
his tone. "It is Mr. Canler. I had hoped, er--I had thought
|
|
or--er--how very happy we should be that he was not caught
|
|
in the fire," he ended lamely.
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut! Mr. Philander," said Professor Porter. "Tut,
|
|
tut! I have often admonished my pupils to count ten before
|
|
speaking. Were I you, Mr. Philander, I should count at least a
|
|
thousand, and then maintain a discreet silence."
|
|
|
|
"Bless me, yes!" acquiesced Mr. Philander. "But who is the
|
|
clerical appearing gentleman with him?"
|
|
|
|
Jane blanched.
|
|
|
|
Clayton moved uneasily in his chair.
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter removed his spectacles nervously, and breathed
|
|
upon them, but replaced them on his nose without wiping.
|
|
|
|
The ubiquitous Esmeralda grunted.
|
|
|
|
Only Tarzan did not comprehend.
|
|
|
|
Presently Robert Canler burst into the room.
|
|
|
|
"Thank God!" he cried. "I feared the worst, until I saw
|
|
your car, Clayton. I was cut off on the south road and had to
|
|
go away back to town, and then strike east to this road. I
|
|
thought we'd never reach the cottage."
|
|
|
|
No one seemed to enthuse much. Tarzan eyed Robert Canler
|
|
as Sabor eyes her prey.
|
|
|
|
Jane glanced at him and coughed nervously.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Canler," she said, "this is Monsieur Tarzan, an old friend."
|
|
|
|
Canler turned and extended his hand. Tarzan rose and
|
|
bowed as only D'Arnot could have taught a gentleman to do
|
|
it, but he did not seem to see Canler's hand.
|
|
|
|
Nor did Canler appear to notice the oversight.
|
|
|
|
"This is the Reverend Mr. Tousley, Jane," said Canler, turning
|
|
to the clerical party behind him. "Mr. Tousley, Miss Porter."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Tousley bowed and beamed.
|
|
|
|
Canler introduced him to the others.
|
|
|
|
"We can have the ceremony at once, Jane," said Canler.
|
|
"Then you and I can catch the midnight train in town."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan understood the plan instantly. He glanced out of
|
|
half-closed eyes at Jane, but he did not move.
|
|
|
|
The girl hesitated. The room was tense with the silence of
|
|
taut nerves.
|
|
|
|
All eyes turned toward Jane, awaiting her reply.
|
|
|
|
"Can't we wait a few days?" she asked. "I am all unstrung.
|
|
I have been through so much today."
|
|
|
|
Canler felt the hostility that emanated from each member
|
|
of the party. It made him angry.
|
|
|
|
"We have waited as long as I intend to wait," he said
|
|
roughly. "You have promised to marry me. I shall be played
|
|
with no longer. I have the license and here is the preacher.
|
|
Come Mr. Tousley; come Jane. There are plenty of witnesses
|
|
--more than enough," he added with a disagreeable inflection;
|
|
and taking Jane Porter by the arm, he started to lead
|
|
her toward the waiting minister.
|
|
|
|
But scarcely had he taken a single step ere a heavy hand
|
|
closed upon his arm with a grip of steel.
|
|
|
|
Another hand shot to his throat and in a moment he was being
|
|
shaken high above the floor, as a cat might shake a mouse.
|
|
|
|
Jane turned in horrified surprise toward Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
And, as she looked into his face, she saw the crimson band
|
|
upon his forehead that she had seen that other day in far
|
|
distant Africa, when Tarzan of the Apes had closed in mortal
|
|
combat with the great anthropoid--Terkoz.
|
|
|
|
She knew that murder lay in that savage heart, and with a little
|
|
cry of horror she sprang forward to plead with the ape-man.
|
|
But her fears were more for Tarzan than for Canler. She
|
|
realized the stern retribution which justice metes to the murderer.
|
|
|
|
Before she could reach them, however, Clayton had
|
|
jumped to Tarzan's side and attempted to drag Canler from
|
|
his grasp.
|
|
|
|
With a single sweep of one mighty arm the Englishman
|
|
was hurled across the room, and then Jane laid a firm white
|
|
hand upon Tarzan's wrist, and looked up into his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"For my sake," she said.
|
|
|
|
The grasp upon Canler's throat relaxed.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan looked down into the beautiful face before him.
|
|
|
|
"Do you wish this to live?" he asked in surprise.
|
|
|
|
"I do not wish him to die at your hands, my friend," she
|
|
replied. "I do not wish you to become a murderer."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan removed his hand from Canler's throat.
|
|
|
|
"Do you release her from her promise?" he asked. "It is
|
|
the price of your life."
|
|
|
|
Canler, gasping for breath, nodded.
|
|
|
|
"Will you go away and never molest her further?"
|
|
|
|
Again the man nodded his head, his face distorted by fear
|
|
of the death that had been so close.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan released him, and Canler staggered toward the
|
|
door. In another moment he was gone, and the terror-
|
|
stricken preacher with him.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan turned toward Jane.
|
|
|
|
"May I speak with you for a moment, alone," he asked.
|
|
|
|
The girl nodded and started toward the door leading to the
|
|
narrow veranda of the little hotel. She passed out to await
|
|
Tarzan and so did not hear the conversation which followed.
|
|
|
|
"Wait," cried Professor Porter, as Tarzan was about to follow.
|
|
|
|
The professor had been stricken dumb with surprise by the
|
|
rapid developments of the past few minutes.
|
|
|
|
"Before we go further, sir, I should like an explanation of
|
|
the events which have just transpired. By what right, sir, did
|
|
you interfere between my daughter and Mr. Canler? I had
|
|
promised him her hand, sir, and regardless of our personal
|
|
likes or dislikes, sir, that promise must be kept."
|
|
|
|
"I interfered, Professor Porter," replied Tarzan, "because
|
|
your daughter does not love Mr. Canler--she does not wish
|
|
to marry him. That is enough for me to know."
|
|
|
|
"You do not know what you have done," said Professor
|
|
Porter. "Now he will doubtless refuse to marry her."
|
|
|
|
"He most certainly will," said Tarzan, emphatically.
|
|
|
|
"And further," added Tarzan, "you need not fear that your
|
|
pride will suffer, Professor Porter, for you will be able to pay
|
|
the Canler person what you owe him the moment you reach home."
|
|
|
|
"Tut, tut, sir!" exclaimed Professor Porter. "What do you
|
|
mean, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"Your treasure has been found," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"What--what is that you are saying?" cried the professor.
|
|
"You are mad, man. It cannot be."
|
|
|
|
"It is, though. It was I who stole it, not knowing either its
|
|
value or to whom it belonged. I saw the sailors bury it, and,
|
|
ape-like, I had to dig it up and bury it again elsewhere. When
|
|
D'Arnot told me what it was and what it meant to you I returned
|
|
to the jungle and recovered it. It had caused so much
|
|
crime and suffering and sorrow that D'Arnot thought it best
|
|
not to attempt to bring the treasure itself on here, as had
|
|
been my intention, so I have brought a letter of credit instead.
|
|
|
|
"Here it is, Professor Porter," and Tarzan drew an envelope
|
|
from his pocket and handed it to the astonished professor,
|
|
"two hundred and forty-one thousand dollars. The treasure
|
|
was most carefully appraised by experts, but lest there
|
|
should be any question in your mind, D'Arnot himself bought
|
|
it and is holding it for you, should you prefer the treasure
|
|
to the credit."
|
|
|
|
"To the already great burden of the obligations we owe you,
|
|
sir," said Professor Porter, with trembling voice, "is now
|
|
added this greatest of all services. You have given me the
|
|
means to save my honor."
|
|
|
|
Clayton, who had left the room a moment after Canler,
|
|
now returned.
|
|
|
|
"Pardon me," he said. "I think we had better try to reach
|
|
town before dark and take the first train out of this forest. A
|
|
native just rode by from the north, who reports that the fire
|
|
is moving slowly in this direction."
|
|
|
|
This announcement broke up further conversation, and the
|
|
entire party went out to the waiting automobiles.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, with Jane, the professor and Esmeralda occupied
|
|
Clayton's car, while Tarzan took Mr. Philander in with him.
|
|
|
|
"Bless me!" exclaimed Mr. Philander, as the car moved off
|
|
after Clayton. "Who would ever have thought it possible! The
|
|
last time I saw you you were a veritable wild man, skipping
|
|
about among the branches of a tropical African forest, and
|
|
now you are driving me along a Wisconsin road in a French
|
|
automobile. Bless me! But it is most remarkable."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," assented Tarzan, and then, after a pause, "Mr. Philander,
|
|
do you recall any of the details of the finding and burying of
|
|
three skeletons found in my cabin beside that African jungle?"
|
|
|
|
"Very distinctly, sir, very distinctly," replied Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
"Was there anything peculiar about any of those skeletons?"
|
|
|
|
Mr. Philander eyed Tarzan narrowly.
|
|
|
|
"Why do you ask?"
|
|
|
|
"It means a great deal to me to know," replied Tarzan.
|
|
"Your answer may clear up a mystery. It can do no worse, at
|
|
any rate, than to leave it still a mystery. I have been
|
|
entertaining a theory concerning those skeletons for the past
|
|
two months, and I want you to answer my question to the best of
|
|
your knowledge--were the three skeletons you buried all
|
|
human skeletons?"
|
|
|
|
"No," said Mr. Philander, "the smallest one, the one found
|
|
in the crib, was the skeleton of an anthropoid ape."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
In the car ahead, Jane was thinking fast and furiously. She
|
|
had felt the purpose for which Tarzan had asked a few words
|
|
with her, and she knew that she must be prepared to give
|
|
him an answer in the very near future.
|
|
|
|
He was not the sort of person one could put off, and somehow
|
|
that very thought made her wonder if she did not really
|
|
fear him.
|
|
|
|
And could she love where she feared?
|
|
|
|
She realized the spell that had been upon her in the depths
|
|
of that far-off jungle, but there was no spell of enchantment
|
|
now in prosaic Wisconsin.
|
|
|
|
Nor did the immaculate young Frenchman appeal to the
|
|
primal woman in her, as had the stalwart forest god.
|
|
|
|
Did she love him? She did not know--now.
|
|
|
|
She glanced at Clayton out of the corner of her eye. Was
|
|
not here a man trained in the same school of environment in
|
|
which she had been trained--a man with social position and
|
|
culture such as she had been taught to consider as the prime
|
|
essentials to congenial association?
|
|
|
|
Did not her best judgment point to this young English nobleman,
|
|
whose love she knew to be of the sort a civilized woman
|
|
should crave, as the logical mate for such as herself?
|
|
|
|
Could she love Clayton? She could see no reason why she
|
|
could not. Jane was not coldly calculating by nature, but
|
|
training, environment and heredity had all combined to teach
|
|
her to reason even in matters of the heart.
|
|
|
|
That she had been carried off her feet by the strength of
|
|
the young giant when his great arms were about her in the
|
|
distant African forest, and again today, in the Wisconsin
|
|
woods, seemed to her only attributable to a temporary mental
|
|
reversion to type on her part--to the psychological appeal of
|
|
the primeval man to the primeval woman in her nature.
|
|
|
|
If he should never touch her again, she reasoned, she would
|
|
never feel attracted toward him. She had not loved him, then.
|
|
It had been nothing more than a passing hallucination,
|
|
super-induced by excitement and by personal contact.
|
|
|
|
Excitement would not always mark their future relations,
|
|
should she marry him, and the power of personal contact
|
|
eventually would be dulled by familiarity.
|
|
|
|
Again she glanced at Clayton. He was very handsome and every
|
|
inch a gentleman. She should be very proud of such a husband.
|
|
|
|
And then he spoke--a minute sooner or a minute later might
|
|
have made all the difference in the world to three lives
|
|
--but chance stepped in and pointed out to Clayton the
|
|
psychological moment.
|
|
|
|
"You are free now, Jane," he said. "Won't you say yes--I
|
|
will devote my life to making you very happy."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she whispered.
|
|
|
|
That evening in the little waiting room at the station Tarzan
|
|
caught Jane alone for a moment.
|
|
|
|
"You are free now, Jane," he said, "and _I_ have come
|
|
across the ages out of the dim and distant past from the lair
|
|
of the primeval man to claim you--for your sake I have become
|
|
a civilized man--for your sake I have crossed oceans
|
|
and continents--for your sake I will be whatever you will me
|
|
to be. I can make you happy, Jane, in the life you know and
|
|
love best. Will you marry me?"
|
|
|
|
For the first time she realized the depths of the man's love
|
|
--all that he had accomplished in so short a time solely for
|
|
love of her. Turning her head she buried her face in her arms.
|
|
|
|
What had she done? Because she had been afraid she
|
|
might succumb to the pleas of this giant, she had burned her
|
|
bridges behind her--in her groundless apprehension that she
|
|
might make a terrible mistake, she had made a worse one.
|
|
|
|
And then she told him all--told him the truth word by word,
|
|
without attempting to shield herself or condone her error.
|
|
|
|
"What can we do?" he asked. "You have admitted that you
|
|
love me. You know that I love you; but I do not know the
|
|
ethics of society by which you are governed. I shall leave the
|
|
decision to you, for you know best what will be for your
|
|
eventual welfare."
|
|
|
|
"I cannot tell him, Tarzan," she said. "He too, loves me,
|
|
and he is a good man. I could never face you nor any other
|
|
honest person if I repudiated my promise to Mr. Clayton. I
|
|
shall have to keep it--and you must help me bear the burden,
|
|
though we may not see each other again after tonight."
|
|
|
|
The others were entering the room now and Tarzan turned
|
|
toward the little window.
|
|
|
|
But he saw nothing outside--within he saw a patch of
|
|
greensward surrounded by a matted mass of gorgeous tropical
|
|
plants and flowers, and, above, the waving foliage of
|
|
mighty trees, and, over all, the blue of an equatorial sky.
|
|
|
|
In the center of the greensward a young woman sat upon a
|
|
little mound of earth, and beside her sat a young giant.
|
|
They ate pleasant fruit and looked into each other's eyes and
|
|
smiled. They were very happy, and they were all alone.
|
|
|
|
His thoughts were broken in upon by the station agent who
|
|
entered asking if there was a gentleman by the name of Tarzan
|
|
in the party.
|
|
|
|
"I am Monsieur Tarzan," said the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
"Here is a message for you, forwarded from Baltimore; it
|
|
is a cablegram from Paris."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan took the envelope and tore it open. The message
|
|
was from D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
It read:
|
|
|
|
Fingerprints prove you Greystoke. Congratulations.
|
|
D'ARNOT.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan finished reading, Clayton entered and came toward
|
|
him with extended hand.
|
|
|
|
Here was the man who had Tarzan's title, and Tarzan's estates,
|
|
and was going to marry the woman whom Tarzan loved--the
|
|
woman who loved Tarzan. A single word from Tarzan would
|
|
make a great difference in this man's life.
|
|
|
|
It would take away his title and his lands and his castles,
|
|
and--it would take them away from Jane Porter also.
|
|
"I say, old man," cried Clayton, "I haven't had a chance to
|
|
thank you for all you've done for us. It seems as though you
|
|
had your hands full saving our lives in Africa and here.
|
|
|
|
"I'm awfully glad you came on here. We must get better
|
|
acquainted. I often thought about you, you know, and the
|
|
remarkable circumstances of your environment.
|
|
|
|
"If it's any of my business, how the devil did you ever get
|
|
into that bally jungle?"
|
|
|
|
"I was born there," said Tarzan, quietly. "My mother was
|
|
an Ape, and of course she couldn't tell me much about it.
|
|
I never knew who my father was."
|
|
|
|
FOR THE
|
|
FURTHER ADVENTURES OF LORD GREYSTOKE
|
|
READ THE RETURN OF TARZAN
|
|
Available from Ballantine Books
|
|
|
|
[End.]
|
|
.
|